This is a modern-English version of The Writings of Thomas Paine — Volume 2 (1779-1792): The Rights of Man, originally written by Paine, Thomas.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
THE WRITINGS OF THOMAS PAINE
VOLUME II.
By Thomas Paine
Collected And Edited By Moncure Daniel Conway
1779 - 1792
[Redactor's Note: Reprinted from the "The Writings of Thomas Paine Volume I" (1894 - 1896). The author's notes are preceded by a "*". A Table of Contents has been added for each part for the convenience of the reader which is not included in the printed edition. Notes are at the end of Part II. ]
[Redactor's Note: Reprinted from the "The Writings of Thomas Paine Volume I" (1894 - 1896). The author's notes are marked with a "*". A Table of Contents has been added for each section for the reader's convenience, which is not included in the printed edition. Notes are at the end of Part II.]
CONTENTS
PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION
PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE FRENCH EDITION
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART THE FIRST BEING AN ANSWER TO MR. BURKE
OBSERVATIONS ON THE DECLARATION OF RIGHTS
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART SECOND, COMBINING PRINCIPLE AND PRACTICE.
CHAPTER I. OF SOCIETY AND CIVILISATION
CHAPTER II. OF THE ORIGIN OF THE PRESENT OLD GOVERNMENTS
CHAPTER III. OF THE OLD AND NEW SYSTEMS OF GOVERNMENT
CHAPTER V. WAYS AND MEANS OF IMPROVING THE CONDITION OF EUROPE
CONTENTS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION
PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE FRENCH EDITION
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART THE FIRST BEING AN ANSWER TO MR. BURKE
OBSERVATIONS ON THE DECLARATION OF RIGHTS
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART SECOND, COMBINING PRINCIPLE AND PRACTICE.
CHAPTER I. OF SOCIETY AND CIVILISATION
CHAPTER II. OF THE ORIGIN OF THE PRESENT OLD GOVERNMENTS
CHAPTER III. OF THE OLD AND NEW SYSTEMS OF GOVERNMENT
CHAPTER V. WAYS AND MEANS OF IMPROVING THE CONDITION OF EUROPE
XIII. RIGHTS OF MAN.
EDITOR'S INTRODUCTION.
WHEN Thomas Paine sailed from America for France, in April, 1787, he was perhaps as happy a man as any in the world. His most intimate friend, Jefferson, was Minister at Paris, and his friend Lafayette was the idol of France. His fame had preceded him, and he at once became, in Paris, the centre of the same circle of savants and philosophers that had surrounded Franklin. His main reason for proceeding at once to Paris was that he might submit to the Academy of Sciences his invention of an iron bridge, and with its favorable verdict he came to England, in September. He at once went to his aged mother at Thetford, leaving with a publisher (Ridgway), his "Prospects on the Rubicon." He next made arrangements to patent his bridge, and to construct at Rotherham the large model of it exhibited on Paddington Green, London. He was welcomed in England by leading statesmen, such as Lansdowne and Fox, and above all by Edmund Burke, who for some time had him as a guest at Beaconsfield, and drove him about in various parts of the country. He had not the slightest revolutionary purpose, either as regarded England or France. Towards Louis XVI. he felt only gratitude for the services he had rendered America, and towards George III. he felt no animosity whatever. His four months' sojourn in Paris had convinced him that there was approaching a reform of that country after the American model, except that the Crown would be preserved, a compromise he approved, provided the throne should not be hereditary. Events in France travelled more swiftly than he had anticipated, and Paine was summoned by Lafayette, Condorcet, and others, as an adviser in the formation of a new constitution.
WHEN Thomas Paine sailed from America to France in April 1787, he was likely as happy as anyone in the world. His close friend Jefferson was the Minister in Paris, and his friend Lafayette was a national hero in France. His reputation had already preceded him, and upon arriving in Paris, he immediately became the center of the same group of scholars and philosophers that had once surrounded Franklin. His main reason for heading to Paris was to present his invention of an iron bridge to the Academy of Sciences, and after receiving a positive response, he traveled to England in September. He first visited his elderly mother in Thetford, leaving his manuscript, "Prospects on the Rubicon," with a publisher (Ridgway). He then made arrangements to patent his bridge and to build a large model of it in Rotherham, which he later displayed on Paddington Green in London. In England, he was welcomed by prominent statesmen like Lansdowne and Fox, and especially by Edmund Burke, who hosted him as a guest at Beaconsfield and drove him around the country. He had no revolutionary intentions regarding either England or France. He felt nothing but gratitude towards Louis XVI for the support he had given America and held no animosity towards George III whatsoever. His four-month stay in Paris convinced him that a reform similar to the American model was on the horizon for France, although he hoped the Crown would be retained, as long as the throne wasn't hereditary. However, events in France unfolded more rapidly than he expected, and Paine was called upon by Lafayette, Condorcet, and others for advice in creating a new constitution.
Such was the situation immediately preceding the political and literary duel between Paine and Burke, which in the event turned out a tremendous war between Royalism and Republicanism in Europe. Paine was, both in France and in England, the inspirer of moderate counsels. Samuel Rogers relates that in early life he dined at a friend's house in London with Thomas Paine, when one of the toasts given was the "memory of Joshua,"—in allusion to the Hebrew leader's conquest of the kings of Canaan, and execution of them. Paine observed that he would not treat kings like Joshua. "I 'm of the Scotch parson's opinion," he said, "when he prayed against Louis XIV.—`Lord, shake him over the mouth of hell, but don't let him drop!'" Paine then gave as his toast, "The Republic of the World,"—which Samuel Rogers, aged twenty-nine, noted as a sublime idea. This was Paine's faith and hope, and with it he confronted the revolutionary storms which presently burst over France and England.
The situation right before the political and literary clash between Paine and Burke was a major conflict between Royalism and Republicanism in Europe. Paine inspired moderate ideas in both France and England. Samuel Rogers recalls dining at a friend's house in London when he was young, alongside Thomas Paine, where one of the toasts was to the "memory of Joshua," referencing the Hebrew leader's defeat of the kings of Canaan. Paine remarked that he wouldn't treat kings like Joshua. "I agree with the Scottish minister who prayed against Louis XIV—'Lord, shake him over the mouth of hell, but don't let him drop!'" Paine then proposed his own toast, "The Republic of the World," which Samuel Rogers, at twenty-nine, considered a profound concept. This was Paine's belief and hope as he faced the revolutionary upheaval that soon erupted in France and England.
Until Burke's arraignment of France in his parliamentary speech (February 9, 1790), Paine had no doubt whatever that he would sympathize with the movement in France, and wrote to him from that country as if conveying glad tidings. Burke's "Reflections on the Revolution in France" appeared November 1, 1790, and Paine at once set himself to answer it. He was then staying at the Angel Inn, Islington. The inn has been twice rebuilt since that time, and from its contents there is preserved only a small image, which perhaps was meant to represent "Liberty,"—possibly brought from Paris by Paine as an ornament for his study. From the Angel he removed to a house in Harding Street, Fetter Lane. Rickman says Part First of "Rights of Man" was finished at Versailles, but probably this has reference to the preface only, as I cannot find Paine in France that year until April 8. The book had been printed by Johnson, in time for the opening of Parliament, in February; but this publisher became frightened after a few copies were out (there is one in the British Museum), and the work was transferred to J. S. Jordan, 166 Fleet Street, with a preface sent from Paris (not contained in Johnson's edition, nor in the American editions). The pamphlet, though sold at the same price as Burke's, three shillings, had a vast circulation, and Paine gave the proceeds to the Constitutional Societies which sprang up under his teachings in various parts of the country.
Until Burke's criticism of France in his parliamentary speech on February 9, 1790, Paine was sure he would support the movement in France, and he wrote to him from that country as if sharing good news. Burke's "Reflections on the Revolution in France" was published on November 1, 1790, and Paine immediately set out to respond to it. At that time, he was staying at the Angel Inn in Islington. The inn has been rebuilt twice since then, and the only thing preserved from its contents is a small statue, which may have been intended to represent "Liberty," possibly brought from Paris by Paine as a decoration for his study. From the Angel, he moved to a house on Harding Street, Fetter Lane. Rickman notes that Part One of "Rights of Man" was completed in Versailles, but this probably only refers to the preface, as I can't find records of Paine being in France that year until April 8. The book was printed by Johnson in time for the opening of Parliament in February, but the publisher got nervous after a few copies were released (there's one in the British Museum), and the work was then taken over by J. S. Jordan at 166 Fleet Street, along with a preface sent from Paris (which isn't included in Johnson's edition or the American editions). The pamphlet, while sold at the same price as Burke's, three shillings, had a huge circulation, and Paine donated the profits to the Constitutional Societies that emerged under his teachings in various parts of the country.
Soon after appeared Burke's "Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs." In this Burke quoted a good deal from "Rights of Man," but replied to it only with exclamation points, saying that the only answer such ideas merited was "criminal justice." Paine's Part Second followed, published February 17, 1792. In Part First Paine had mentioned a rumor that Burke was a masked pensioner (a charge that will be noticed in connection with its detailed statement in a further publication); and as Burke had been formerly arraigned in Parliament, while Paymaster, for a very questionable proceeding, this charge no doubt hurt a good deal. Although the government did not follow Burke's suggestion of a prosecution at that time, there is little doubt that it was he who induced the prosecution of Part Second. Before the trial came on, December 18, 1792, Paine was occupying his seat in the French Convention, and could only be outlawed.
Soon after, Burke published "Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs." In this, Burke quoted extensively from "Rights of Man," but responded only with exclamation points, claiming that the only response such ideas deserved was "criminal justice." Paine's Part Second came out on February 17, 1792. In Part First, Paine mentioned a rumor that Burke was a masked pensioner (a claim that will be addressed in detail in a later publication); and since Burke had previously been criticized in Parliament while serving as Paymaster for a questionable action, this accusation likely stung quite a bit. Although the government did not act on Burke's suggestion for a prosecution at that time, it's clear that he was behind the prosecution of Part Second. Before the trial began on December 18, 1792, Paine was serving in the French Convention and could only be declared an outlaw.
Burke humorously remarked to a friend of Paine and himself, "We hunt in pairs." The severally representative character and influence of these two men in the revolutionary era, in France and England, deserve more adequate study than they have received. While Paine maintained freedom of discussion, Burke first proposed criminal prosecution for sentiments by no means libellous (such as Paine's Part First). While Paine was endeavoring to make the movement in France peaceful, Burke fomented the league of monarchs against France which maddened its people, and brought on the Reign of Terror. While Paine was endeavoring to preserve the French throne ("phantom" though he believed it), to prevent bloodshed, Burke was secretly writing to the Queen of France, entreating her not to compromise, and to "trust to the support of foreign armies" ("Histoire de France depuis 1789." Henri Martin, i., 151). While Burke thus helped to bring the King and Queen to the guillotine, Paine pleaded for their lives to the last moment. While Paine maintained the right of mankind to improve their condition, Burke held that "the awful Author of our being is the author of our place in the order of existence; and that, having disposed and marshalled us by a divine tactick, not according to our will, but according to his, he has, in and by that disposition, virtually subjected us to act the part which belongs to the place assigned us." Paine was a religious believer in eternal principles; Burke held that "political problems do not primarily concern truth or falsehood. They relate to good or evil. What in the result is likely to produce evil is politically false, that which is productive of good politically is true." Assuming thus the visionary's right to decide before the result what was "likely to produce evil," Burke vigorously sought to kindle war against the French Republic which might have developed itself peacefully, while Paine was striving for an international Congress in Europe in the interest of peace. Paine had faith in the people, and believed that, if allowed to choose representatives, they would select their best and wisest men; and that while reforming government the people would remain orderly, as they had generally remained in America during the transition from British rule to selfgovernment. Burke maintained that if the existing political order were broken up there would be no longer a people, but "a number of vague, loose individuals, and nothing more." "Alas!" he exclaims, "they little know how many a weary step is to be taken before they can form themselves into a mass, which has a true personality." For the sake of peace Paine wished the revolution to be peaceful as the advance of summer; he used every endeavor to reconcile English radicals to some modus vivendi with the existing order, as he was willing to retain Louis XVI. as head of the executive in France: Burke resisted every tendency of English statesmanship to reform at home, or to negotiate with the French Republic, and was mainly responsible for the King's death and the war that followed between England and France in February, 1793. Burke became a royal favorite, Paine was outlawed by a prosecution originally proposed by Burke. While Paine was demanding religious liberty, Burke was opposing the removal of penal statutes from Unitarians, on the ground that but for those statutes Paine might some day set up a church in England. When Burke was retiring on a large royal pension, Paine was in prison, through the devices of Burke's confederate, the American Minister in Paris. So the two men, as Burke said, "hunted in pairs."
Burke jokingly told a friend of both him and Paine, "We hunt in pairs." The distinct roles and impact of these two men during the revolutionary period in France and England deserve more thorough examination than they’ve gotten. While Paine advocated for free discussion, Burke first suggested criminal charges for opinions that were by no means libelous (like Paine’s Part First). While Paine was trying to ensure the movement in France was peaceful, Burke stirred up a coalition of monarchs against France, which enraged its citizens and led to the Reign of Terror. While Paine sought to protect the French monarchy (which he viewed as a "phantom") to prevent violence, Burke was secretly writing to the Queen of France, urging her not to compromise and to "trust in the support of foreign armies" ("Histoire de France depuis 1789." Henri Martin, i., 151). While Burke was indirectly pushing the King and Queen toward execution, Paine was advocating for their lives until the very last moment. While Paine upheld people's rights to improve their circumstances, Burke argued that "the awful Author of our being is the author of our place in the order of existence; and that, having disposed and marshalled us by a divine tactick, not according to our will, but according to his, he has, in and by that disposition, virtually subjected us to act the part which belongs to the place assigned us." Paine had a religious belief in eternal principles; Burke believed that "political problems do not primarily concern truth or falsehood. They relate to good or evil. What is likely to result in evil is politically false, while what is beneficial is politically true." By assuming the visionary's right to judge in advance what "might produce evil," Burke actively sought to ignite war against the French Republic, which might have unfolded peacefully, while Paine was working towards an international Congress in Europe for the sake of peace. Paine had confidence in the people, believing that if given the chance to choose representatives, they would pick their best and brightest. He thought that while reforming government, the people would stay orderly, similar to how they largely remained in America during the shift from British rule to self-government. Burke, however, argued that if the current political structure unraveled, there would be no real people left, just "a number of vague, loose individuals, and nothing more." "Alas!" he exclaimed, "they little know how many weary steps are needed before they can come together as a true collective." For the sake of peace, Paine wanted the revolution to be as calm as the arrival of summer; he made every effort to bring English radicals to some sort of agreement with the current order, as he was open to keeping Louis XVI as the head of the executive in France. Burke rejected every push from English statesmen to reform at home or negotiate with the French Republic and ultimately bore significant responsibility for the King’s execution and the war that broke out between England and France in February 1793. Burke became a favorite of the monarchy while Paine was declared an outlaw due to a prosecution originally initiated by Burke. While Paine demanded religious freedom, Burke fought against lifting penal laws aimed at Unitarians, arguing that without those laws, Paine might one day establish a church in England. While Burke was retiring on a generous royal pension, Paine was in prison, thanks to the machinations of Burke's ally, the American Minister in Paris. So the two men, as Burke put it, "hunted in pairs."
So far as Burke attempts to affirm any principle he is fairly quoted in Paine's work, and nowhere misrepresented. As for Paine's own ideas, the reader should remember that "Rights of Man" was the earliest complete statement of republican principles. They were pronounced to be the fundamental principles of the American Republic by Jefferson, Madison, and Jackson,-the three Presidents who above all others represented the republican idea which Paine first allied with American Independence. Those who suppose that Paine did but reproduce the principles of Rousseau and Locke will find by careful study of his well-weighed language that such is not the case. Paine's political principles were evolved out of his early Quakerism. He was potential in George Fox. The belief that every human soul was the child of God, and capable of direct inspiration from the Father of all, without mediator or priestly intervention, or sacramental instrumentality, was fatal to all privilege and rank. The universal Fatherhood implied universal Brotherhood, or human equality. But the fate of the Quakers proved the necessity of protecting the individual spirit from oppression by the majority as well as by privileged classes. For this purpose Paine insisted on surrounding the individual right with the security of the Declaration of Rights, not to be invaded by any government; and would reduce government to an association limited in its operations to the defence of those rights which the individual is unable, alone, to maintain.
As far as Burke tries to affirm any principle, he is accurately quoted in Paine's work and is never misrepresented. Regarding Paine's own ideas, readers should remember that "Rights of Man" was the first complete expression of republican principles. Jefferson, Madison, and Jackson—the three Presidents who notably embodied the republican idea that Paine first connected with American Independence—declared these principles to be fundamental to the American Republic. Those who think that Paine merely echoed the principles of Rousseau and Locke will discover through a careful examination of his carefully chosen words that this is not true. Paine's political principles developed from his early Quaker beliefs. He had the potential of George Fox. The belief that every human being is a child of God and capable of receiving direct inspiration from the Father of all, without the need for a mediator, priestly intervention, or any sacramental means, undermined all privileges and hierarchies. The universal Fatherhood implied a universal Brotherhood, or human equality. However, the experiences of the Quakers highlighted the need to protect individual spirit from oppression by both the majority and privileged classes. To this end, Paine insisted on securing individual rights with the Declaration of Rights, which should not be violated by any government; he aimed to limit government to an association focused solely on defending those rights that individuals cannot maintain on their own.
From the preceding chapter it will be seen that Part Second of "Rights of Man" was begun by Paine in the spring of 1791. At the close of that year, or early in 1792, he took up his abode with his friend Thomas "Clio" Rickman, at No. 7 Upper Marylebone Street. Rickman was a radical publisher; the house remains still a book-binding establishment, and seems little changed since Paine therein revised the proofs of Part Second on a table which Rickman marked with a plate, and which is now in possession of Mr. Edward Truelove. As the plate states, Paine wrote on the same table other works which appeared in England in 1792.
From the previous chapter, you can see that Part Two of "Rights of Man" was started by Paine in the spring of 1791. By the end of that year, or early in 1792, he moved in with his friend Thomas "Clio" Rickman at No. 7 Upper Marylebone Street. Rickman was a progressive publisher; the place is still a book-binding business and looks pretty much the same since Paine revised the proofs of Part Two on a table that Rickman marked with a plaque, which is now owned by Mr. Edward Truelove. As the plaque indicates, Paine wrote other works on the same table that were published in England in 1792.
In 1795 D. I. Eaton published an edition of "Rights of Man," with a preface purporting to have been written by Paine while in Luxembourg prison. It is manifestly spurious. The genuine English and French prefaces are given.
In 1795, D. I. Eaton released an edition of "Rights of Man" that included a preface supposedly written by Paine while he was in Luxembourg prison. It's clearly fake. The authentic English and French prefaces are provided.
RIGHTS OF MAN
Being An Answer To Mr. Burke's Attack On The French Revoloution
By Thomas Paine
By Thomas Paine
Secretary For Foreign Affairs To Congress In The American War, And Author Of The Works Entitled "Common Sense" And "A Letter To Abbé Raynal"
Secretary of Foreign Affairs to Congress During the American War, and Author of the Works Titled "Common Sense" and "A Letter to Abbé Raynal"
DEDICATION George Washington President Of The United States Of America Sir, I present you a small treatise in defence of those principles of freedom which your exemplary virtue hath so eminently contributed to establish. That the Rights of Man may become as universal as your benevolence can wish, and that you may enjoy the happiness of seeing the New World regenerate the Old, is the prayer of Sir, Your much obliged, and Obedient humble Servant, Thomas Paine
DEDICATION George Washington President of the United States of America Sir, I present to you a small essay defending the principles of freedom that your outstanding character has so significantly helped to establish. I hope that the Rights of Man become as universal as your kindness desires, and that you find joy in witnessing the New World rejuvenating the Old. Sir, Your very grateful and obedient humble servant, Thomas Paine
PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION
From the part Mr. Burke took in the American Revolution, it was natural that I should consider him a friend to mankind; and as our acquaintance commenced on that ground, it would have been more agreeable to me to have had cause to continue in that opinion than to change it.
From the role Mr. Burke played in the American Revolution, it was only natural for me to see him as a friend to humanity; and since our friendship started on that basis, I would have preferred to have reasons to keep believing that rather than to change my mind.
At the time Mr. Burke made his violent speech last winter in the English Parliament against the French Revolution and the National Assembly, I was in Paris, and had written to him but a short time before to inform him how prosperously matters were going on. Soon after this I saw his advertisement of the Pamphlet he intended to publish: As the attack was to be made in a language but little studied, and less understood in France, and as everything suffers by translation, I promised some of the friends of the Revolution in that country that whenever Mr. Burke's Pamphlet came forth, I would answer it. This appeared to me the more necessary to be done, when I saw the flagrant misrepresentations which Mr. Burke's Pamphlet contains; and that while it is an outrageous abuse on the French Revolution, and the principles of Liberty, it is an imposition on the rest of the world.
At the time Mr. Burke delivered his harsh speech last winter in the English Parliament criticizing the French Revolution and the National Assembly, I was in Paris and had written to him just a short while before to let him know how well things were going. Shortly after, I saw his ad for the pamphlet he planned to publish: since the attack was going to be made in a language that’s not widely studied or understood in France, and since everything loses something in translation, I promised some friends of the Revolution in that country that I would respond whenever Mr. Burke's pamphlet was released. I felt it was even more important to do this when I noticed the blatant misrepresentations in Mr. Burke's pamphlet; not only does it severely criticize the French Revolution and the principles of Liberty, but it also misleads the rest of the world.
I am the more astonished and disappointed at this conduct in Mr. Burke, as (from the circumstances I am going to mention) I had formed other expectations.
I am even more shocked and let down by Mr. Burke's behavior, as (based on the circumstances I’m about to describe) I had anticipated something different.
I had seen enough of the miseries of war, to wish it might never more have existence in the world, and that some other mode might be found out to settle the differences that should occasionally arise in the neighbourhood of nations. This certainly might be done if Courts were disposed to set honesty about it, or if countries were enlightened enough not to be made the dupes of Courts. The people of America had been bred up in the same prejudices against France, which at that time characterised the people of England; but experience and an acquaintance with the French Nation have most effectually shown to the Americans the falsehood of those prejudices; and I do not believe that a more cordial and confidential intercourse exists between any two countries than between America and France.
I had seen enough of the horrors of war to hope it would never happen again, and that we could find another way to resolve conflicts that come up between nations. This could definitely happen if governments were willing to prioritize honesty, or if countries were smart enough not to be misled by them. The people of America had grown up with the same biases against France that characterized the people of England at that time; however, experience and getting to know the French people have shown Americans how wrong those biases were. I don’t believe there’s a more friendly and trusting relationship between any two countries than between America and France.
When I came to France, in the spring of 1787, the Archbishop of Thoulouse was then Minister, and at that time highly esteemed. I became much acquainted with the private Secretary of that Minister, a man of an enlarged benevolent heart; and found that his sentiments and my own perfectly agreed with respect to the madness of war, and the wretched impolicy of two nations, like England and France, continually worrying each other, to no other end than that of a mutual increase of burdens and taxes. That I might be assured I had not misunderstood him, nor he me, I put the substance of our opinions into writing and sent it to him; subjoining a request, that if I should see among the people of England, any disposition to cultivate a better understanding between the two nations than had hitherto prevailed, how far I might be authorised to say that the same disposition prevailed on the part of France? He answered me by letter in the most unreserved manner, and that not for himself only, but for the Minister, with whose knowledge the letter was declared to be written.
When I arrived in France in the spring of 1787, the Archbishop of Toulouse was the Minister, and he was highly regarded at that time. I got to know the Minister's private secretary well; he was a genuinely generous person. We found that our views were completely aligned regarding the madness of war and the terrible mismanagement of two countries, like England and France, constantly troubling each other, leading to nothing but increased burdens and taxes for both. To make sure we truly understood each other, I wrote down the essence of our opinions and sent it to him, asking if I could communicate to the people of England any willingness to foster a better relationship between our two nations, as long as that willingness existed on France's side as well. He replied in a completely open manner, stating that he was speaking not just for himself but also for the Minister, and that the letter was written with the Minister’s knowledge.
I put this letter into the hands of Mr. Burke almost three years ago, and left it with him, where it still remains; hoping, and at the same time naturally expecting, from the opinion I had conceived of him, that he would find some opportunity of making good use of it, for the purpose of removing those errors and prejudices which two neighbouring nations, from the want of knowing each other, had entertained, to the injury of both.
I gave this letter to Mr. Burke almost three years ago and left it with him, where it still sits. I was hoping, and naturally expecting, based on my opinion of him, that he would find a chance to put it to good use to help eliminate the misunderstandings and biases that two neighboring nations, due to their lack of knowledge about each other, held, which harmed both.
When the French Revolution broke out, it certainly afforded to Mr. Burke an opportunity of doing some good, had he been disposed to it; instead of which, no sooner did he see the old prejudices wearing away, than he immediately began sowing the seeds of a new inveteracy, as if he were afraid that England and France would cease to be enemies. That there are men in all countries who get their living by war, and by keeping up the quarrels of Nations, is as shocking as it is true; but when those who are concerned in the government of a country, make it their study to sow discord and cultivate prejudices between Nations, it becomes the more unpardonable.
When the French Revolution started, it gave Mr. Burke a chance to do some good, if he had wanted to. Instead, as soon as he saw old prejudices fading away, he quickly began planting the seeds of a new animosity, as if he were worried that England and France would stop being enemies. It's shocking but true that there are people in every country who make a living from war and by keeping conflicts alive between nations; however, when those in charge of a country focus on sowing discord and nurturing prejudices between nations, it becomes even more inexcusable.
With respect to a paragraph in this work alluding to Mr. Burke's having a pension, the report has been some time in circulation, at least two months; and as a person is often the last to hear what concerns him the most to know, I have mentioned it, that Mr. Burke may have an opportunity of contradicting the rumour, if he thinks proper.
Regarding a paragraph in this work that mentions Mr. Burke having a pension, the report has been circulating for some time, at least two months. Since a person is often the last to hear what concerns them the most, I wanted to bring it up so that Mr. Burke has the chance to deny the rumor if he chooses to do so.
Thomas Paine
Thomas Paine
PAINE'S PREFACE TO THE FRENCH EDITION
The astonishment which the French Revolution has caused throughout Europe should be considered from two different points of view: first as it affects foreign peoples, secondly as it affects their governments.
The surprise that the French Revolution has sparked across Europe should be looked at from two different angles: first, how it impacts foreign nations, and second, how it influences their governments.
The cause of the French people is that of all Europe, or rather of the whole world; but the governments of all those countries are by no means favorable to it. It is important that we should never lose sight of this distinction. We must not confuse the peoples with their governments; especially not the English people with its government.
The cause of the French people is that of all of Europe, or even the entire world; however, the governments of those countries are not supportive at all. It's crucial that we never lose sight of this distinction. We must not confuse the people with their governments; especially not the English people with their government.
The government of England is no friend of the revolution of France. Of this we have sufficient proofs in the thanks given by that weak and witless person, the Elector of Hanover, sometimes called the King of England, to Mr. Burke for the insults heaped on it in his book, and in the malevolent comments of the English Minister, Pitt, in his speeches in Parliament.
The government of England is not supportive of the French revolution. We have plenty of proof in the thanks given by that weak and foolish person, the Elector of Hanover, sometimes referred to as the King of England, to Mr. Burke for the insults directed at it in his book, and in the spiteful remarks of the English Minister, Pitt, in his speeches in Parliament.
In spite of the professions of sincerest friendship found in the official correspondence of the English government with that of France, its conduct gives the lie to all its declarations, and shows us clearly that it is not a court to be trusted, but an insane court, plunging in all the quarrels and intrigues of Europe, in quest of a war to satisfy its folly and countenance its extravagance.
In spite of the claims of genuine friendship found in the official correspondence between the English and French governments, their actions betray those statements and clearly demonstrate that it is not a court to be trusted, but a reckless one, diving into all the conflicts and schemes of Europe in search of a war to feed its madness and support its excesses.
The English nation, on the contrary, is very favorably disposed towards the French Revolution, and to the progress of liberty in the whole world; and this feeling will become more general in England as the intrigues and artifices of its government are better known, and the principles of the revolution better understood. The French should know that most English newspapers are directly in the pay of government, or, if indirectly connected with it, always under its orders; and that those papers constantly distort and attack the revolution in France in order to deceive the nation. But, as it is impossible long to prevent the prevalence of truth, the daily falsehoods of those papers no longer have the desired effect.
The English public, on the other hand, is quite supportive of the French Revolution and the advancement of freedom worldwide. This sentiment will grow stronger in England as people learn more about the manipulations and schemes of their government and gain a clearer understanding of revolutionary principles. The French should be aware that most English newspapers are directly funded by the government, or if not directly, are always acting under its influence; these papers routinely misrepresent and criticize the revolution in France to mislead the public. However, it's impossible to hide the truth for long, and the daily lies from these papers are no longer having the intended impact.
To be convinced that the voice of truth has been stifled in England, the world needs only to be told that the government regards and prosecutes as a libel that which it should protect.*1 This outrage on morality is called law, and judges are found wicked enough to inflict penalties on truth.
To believe that the truth is being silenced in England, all one needs to know is that the government treats and prosecutes as libel what it should be protecting.*1 This violation of morality is labeled as law, and there are judges cruel enough to impose penalties on the truth.
The English government presents, just now, a curious phenomenon. Seeing that the French and English nations are getting rid of the prejudices and false notions formerly entertained against each other, and which have cost them so much money, that government seems to be placarding its need of a foe; for unless it finds one somewhere, no pretext exists for the enormous revenue and taxation now deemed necessary.
The English government is currently showing a strange situation. As the French and English nations are shedding the prejudices and misconceptions they used to have about each other, which have cost them so much money, the government seems to be advertising its need for an enemy. If it doesn’t find one, there’s no justification for the massive revenue and taxes that are now considered essential.
Therefore it seeks in Russia the enemy it has lost in France, and appears to say to the universe, or to say to itself. "If nobody will be so kind as to become my foe, I shall need no more fleets nor armies, and shall be forced to reduce my taxes. The American war enabled me to double the taxes; the Dutch business to add more; the Nootka humbug gave me a pretext for raising three millions sterling more; but unless I can make an enemy of Russia the harvest from wars will end. I was the first to incite Turk against Russian, and now I hope to reap a fresh crop of taxes."
Therefore, it seeks in Russia the enemy it has lost in France and seems to say to the world, or maybe to itself, "If no one is kind enough to be my enemy, I won’t need any more fleets or armies, and I’ll have to lower my taxes. The American war let me double the taxes; the Dutch situation allowed me to add more; the Nootka nonsense gave me a reason to raise another three million pounds; but unless I can make an enemy out of Russia, the profits from wars will stop. I was the first to stir up the Turks against the Russians, and now I hope to gain a new source of tax revenue."
If the miseries of war, and the flood of evils it spreads over a country, did not check all inclination to mirth, and turn laughter into grief, the frantic conduct of the government of England would only excite ridicule. But it is impossible to banish from one's mind the images of suffering which the contemplation of such vicious policy presents. To reason with governments, as they have existed for ages, is to argue with brutes. It is only from the nations themselves that reforms can be expected. There ought not now to exist any doubt that the peoples of France, England, and America, enlightened and enlightening each other, shall henceforth be able, not merely to give the world an example of good government, but by their united influence enforce its practice.
If the horrors of war and the wave of suffering it brings over a country didn’t stifle all desire for joy and turn laughter into sadness, the chaotic behavior of the English government would only provoke mockery. But it’s impossible to forget the images of pain that such destructive policies create. Trying to reason with governments, as they’ve existed for centuries, is like trying to argue with animals. Real change can only come from the nations themselves. It should now be clear that the people of France, England, and America, who enlighten and inspire each other, will from now on not only be able to set an example of good governance for the world but also use their combined influence to make it a reality.
(Translated from the French)
Sure, please provide the text you'd like me to modernize.
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART THE FIRST BEING AN ANSWER TO MR. BURKE'S ATTACK ON THE FRENCH REVOLUTION
Among the incivilities by which nations or individuals provoke and irritate each other, Mr. Burke's pamphlet on the French Revolution is an extraordinary instance. Neither the People of France, nor the National Assembly, were troubling themselves about the affairs of England, or the English Parliament; and that Mr. Burke should commence an unprovoked attack upon them, both in Parliament and in public, is a conduct that cannot be pardoned on the score of manners, nor justified on that of policy.
Among the rude behaviors that countries or people use to provoke and annoy each other, Mr. Burke's pamphlet on the French Revolution is a remarkable example. Neither the people of France nor the National Assembly were concerned with the issues of England or the English Parliament; so Mr. Burke launching an unprovoked attack on them, both in Parliament and publicly, is behavior that can’t be excused as a matter of politeness or justified as a political strategy.
There is scarcely an epithet of abuse to be found in the English language, with which Mr. Burke has not loaded the French Nation and the National Assembly. Everything which rancour, prejudice, ignorance or knowledge could suggest, is poured forth in the copious fury of near four hundred pages. In the strain and on the plan Mr. Burke was writing, he might have written on to as many thousands. When the tongue or the pen is let loose in a frenzy of passion, it is the man, and not the subject, that becomes exhausted.
There’s hardly an insult in the English language that Mr. Burke hasn’t hurled at the French Nation and the National Assembly. He unleashes everything that spite, bias, ignorance, or knowledge can come up with in nearly four hundred pages of furious prose. Given the style and direction Mr. Burke was taking, he could have gone on for thousands of pages. When someone speaks or writes in a fit of passion, it’s the person, not the topic, who eventually wears out.
Hitherto Mr. Burke has been mistaken and disappointed in the opinions he had formed of the affairs of France; but such is the ingenuity of his hope, or the malignancy of his despair, that it furnishes him with new pretences to go on. There was a time when it was impossible to make Mr. Burke believe there would be any Revolution in France. His opinion then was, that the French had neither spirit to undertake it nor fortitude to support it; and now that there is one, he seeks an escape by condemning it.
Up until now, Mr. Burke has been wrong and let down by the views he formed about the situation in France; however, the creativity of his hope, or the bitterness of his despair, provides him with new justifications to continue. There was a time when Mr. Burke couldn't believe there would be any revolution in France. At that time, he thought the French lacked both the will to start it and the strength to endure it; and now that a revolution has occurred, he tries to distance himself by criticizing it.
Not sufficiently content with abusing the National Assembly, a great part of his work is taken up with abusing Dr. Price (one of the best-hearted men that lives) and the two societies in England known by the name of the Revolution Society and the Society for Constitutional Information.
Not satisfied with criticizing the National Assembly, a big part of his work focuses on attacking Dr. Price (one of the kindest people around) and the two groups in England called the Revolution Society and the Society for Constitutional Information.
Dr. Price had preached a sermon on the 4th of November, 1789, being the anniversary of what is called in England the Revolution, which took place 1688. Mr. Burke, speaking of this sermon, says: "The political Divine proceeds dogmatically to assert, that by the principles of the Revolution, the people of England have acquired three fundamental rights:
Dr. Price gave a sermon on November 4, 1789, marking the anniversary of what is known in England as the Revolution, which happened in 1688. Mr. Burke, commenting on this sermon, states: "The political Divine confidently asserts that, based on the principles of the Revolution, the people of England have gained three fundamental rights:
1. To choose our own governors.
1. To select our own leaders.
2. To cashier them for misconduct.
2. To fire them for bad behavior.
3. To frame a government for ourselves."
3. To establish a government for ourselves."
Dr. Price does not say that the right to do these things exists in this or in that person, or in this or in that description of persons, but that it exists in the whole; that it is a right resident in the nation. Mr. Burke, on the contrary, denies that such a right exists in the nation, either in whole or in part, or that it exists anywhere; and, what is still more strange and marvellous, he says: "that the people of England utterly disclaim such a right, and that they will resist the practical assertion of it with their lives and fortunes." That men should take up arms and spend their lives and fortunes, not to maintain their rights, but to maintain they have not rights, is an entirely new species of discovery, and suited to the paradoxical genius of Mr. Burke.
Dr. Price doesn’t claim that the right to do these things belongs to this person or that person, or to any particular group, but that it exists for everyone; it’s a right that belongs to the nation as a whole. Mr. Burke, on the other hand, argues that this right doesn’t exist within the nation—either in total or in part—or anywhere at all. Even more oddly, he states: "that the people of England completely reject such a right, and that they will fight against any practical assertion of it with their lives and resources." The idea that people would take up arms and risk everything, not to defend their rights, but to argue that they have no rights, is a completely new concept and fits the contradictory nature of Mr. Burke.
The method which Mr. Burke takes to prove that the people of England have no such rights, and that such rights do not now exist in the nation, either in whole or in part, or anywhere at all, is of the same marvellous and monstrous kind with what he has already said; for his arguments are that the persons, or the generation of persons, in whom they did exist, are dead, and with them the right is dead also. To prove this, he quotes a declaration made by Parliament about a hundred years ago, to William and Mary, in these words: "The Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, do, in the name of the people aforesaid" (meaning the people of England then living) "most humbly and faithfully submit themselves, their heirs and posterities, for Ever." He quotes a clause of another Act of Parliament made in the same reign, the terms of which he says, "bind us" (meaning the people of their day), "our heirs and our posterity, to them, their heirs and posterity, to the end of time."
The way Mr. Burke tries to prove that the people of England have no such rights, and that these rights don’t exist in the nation at all, either fully or partially, is just as astonishing and outrageous as what he has already claimed. His argument is that the people, or the generation of people, who had those rights are dead, and with them, the rights are also gone. To back this up, he cites a declaration made by Parliament about a hundred years ago to William and Mary, stating: "The Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, do, in the name of the people aforesaid" (referring to the people of England at that time) "most humbly and faithfully submit themselves, their heirs and posterities, forever." He also quotes a section from another Act of Parliament from the same reign, which he claims, "binds us" (referring to the people of his day), "our heirs and our posterity, to them, their heirs and posterity, to the end of time."
Mr. Burke conceives his point sufficiently established by producing those clauses, which he enforces by saying that they exclude the right of the nation for ever. And not yet content with making such declarations, repeated over and over again, he farther says, "that if the people of England possessed such a right before the Revolution" (which he acknowledges to have been the case, not only in England, but throughout Europe, at an early period), "yet that the English Nation did, at the time of the Revolution, most solemnly renounce and abdicate it, for themselves, and for all their posterity, for ever."
Mr. Burke believes his point is clearly established by pointing out those clauses, which he reinforces by claiming they permanently deny the nation's rights. Still not satisfied with making these statements repeatedly, he further claims, "that if the people of England had such a right before the Revolution" (which he admits was true not only in England but also throughout Europe in earlier times), "then the English Nation, at the time of the Revolution, very solemnly renounced and gave up that right, for themselves and for all their descendants, forever."
As Mr. Burke occasionally applies the poison drawn from his horrid principles, not only to the English nation, but to the French Revolution and the National Assembly, and charges that august, illuminated and illuminating body of men with the epithet of usurpers, I shall, sans ceremonie, place another system of principles in opposition to his.
As Mr. Burke sometimes brings up the toxic ideas he has, not just about the English people but also regarding the French Revolution and the National Assembly, and labels that respected and enlightened group of men as usurpers, I will, without formality, present another set of principles to counter his.
The English Parliament of 1688 did a certain thing, which, for themselves and their constituents, they had a right to do, and which it appeared right should be done. But, in addition to this right, which they possessed by delegation, they set up another right by assumption, that of binding and controlling posterity to the end of time. The case, therefore, divides itself into two parts; the right which they possessed by delegation, and the right which they set up by assumption. The first is admitted; but with respect to the second, I reply: There never did, there never will, and there never can, exist a Parliament, or any description of men, or any generation of men, in any country, possessed of the right or the power of binding and controlling posterity to the "end of time," or of commanding for ever how the world shall be governed, or who shall govern it; and therefore all such clauses, acts or declarations by which the makers of them attempt to do what they have neither the right nor the power to do, nor the power to execute, are in themselves null and void. Every age and generation must be as free to act for itself in all cases as the age and generations which preceded it. The vanity and presumption of governing beyond the grave is the most ridiculous and insolent of all tyrannies. Man has no property in man; neither has any generation a property in the generations which are to follow. The Parliament or the people of 1688, or of any other period, had no more right to dispose of the people of the present day, or to bind or to control them in any shape whatever, than the parliament or the people of the present day have to dispose of, bind or control those who are to live a hundred or a thousand years hence. Every generation is, and must be, competent to all the purposes which its occasions require. It is the living, and not the dead, that are to be accommodated. When man ceases to be, his power and his wants cease with him; and having no longer any participation in the concerns of this world, he has no longer any authority in directing who shall be its governors, or how its government shall be organised, or how administered.
The English Parliament of 1688 did something that they had the right to do for themselves and their constituents, and it seemed right that it should be done. However, in addition to this right that they had by delegation, they assumed another right: the power to bind and control future generations indefinitely. Therefore, this situation can be divided into two parts: the right they had by delegation and the right they claimed by assumption. The first is accepted, but regarding the second, I argue: There has never been, nor will there ever be, any Parliament or group of people, or generation in any country, that has the right or power to bind and control future generations "to the end of time," or to dictate how the world will be governed or who will govern it. Therefore, any clauses, acts, or declarations made by those who attempt to do what they do not have the right or power to do—or the ability to enforce—are null and void. Every age and generation must be as free to act for itself in all matters as the generations that came before it. The arrogance of trying to govern beyond death is the most absurd and overbearing of all forms of tyranny. No one has ownership over another person; likewise, no generation has ownership over those that will come after it. The Parliament or people of 1688, or any other period, had no more right to dictate the actions of people today, or to bind or control them in any way, than the current Parliament or people have to control those who will live a hundred or a thousand years into the future. Every generation is, and must be, capable of addressing the issues it faces. It is the living, and not the dead, who need to be taken into account. When a person no longer exists, their power and needs cease with them; and since they no longer participate in the affairs of this world, they hold no authority in determining who should govern it, how its government should be structured, or how it should be administered.
I am not contending for nor against any form of government, nor for nor against any party, here or elsewhere. That which a whole nation chooses to do it has a right to do. Mr. Burke says, No. Where, then, does the right exist? I am contending for the rights of the living, and against their being willed away and controlled and contracted for by the manuscript assumed authority of the dead, and Mr. Burke is contending for the authority of the dead over the rights and freedom of the living. There was a time when kings disposed of their crowns by will upon their death-beds, and consigned the people, like beasts of the field, to whatever successor they appointed. This is now so exploded as scarcely to be remembered, and so monstrous as hardly to be believed. But the Parliamentary clauses upon which Mr. Burke builds his political church are of the same nature.
I’m not arguing for or against any type of government, nor for or against any party, here or anywhere else. Whatever a whole nation decides to do, it has the right to do. Mr. Burke disagrees. So, where does the right to decide come from? I’m fighting for the rights of the living and against allowing those rights to be dictated, controlled, or decided by the outdated authority of the dead. Mr. Burke argues for the authority of the deceased over the rights and freedoms of the living. There was a time when kings could determine who would inherit their crowns on their deathbeds, consigning the people, like livestock, to whatever successor they chose. This idea is now so outdated that it’s barely remembered and so outrageous that it’s hard to believe. However, the Parliamentary clauses that Mr. Burke uses to support his political views are just as problematic.
The laws of every country must be analogous to some common principle. In England no parent or master, nor all the authority of Parliament, omnipotent as it has called itself, can bind or control the personal freedom even of an individual beyond the age of twenty-one years. On what ground of right, then, could the Parliament of 1688, or any other Parliament, bind all posterity for ever?
The laws of every country must align with some common principle. In England, no parent or master, and not even the full authority of Parliament, which claims to be all-powerful, can restrict or control the personal freedom of an individual once they turn twenty-one. On what basis of right, then, could the Parliament of 1688, or any other Parliament, impose restrictions on all future generations forever?
Those who have quitted the world, and those who have not yet arrived at it, are as remote from each other as the utmost stretch of mortal imagination can conceive. What possible obligation, then, can exist between them—what rule or principle can be laid down that of two nonentities, the one out of existence and the other not in, and who never can meet in this world, the one should control the other to the end of time?
Those who have left the world behind and those who have not yet engaged with it are as far apart as anyone can imagine. So what kind of obligation could there possibly be between them—what rule or principle could suggest that of these two non-existent beings, one who has departed and another who hasn’t arrived, and who can never meet in this world, that one should govern the other forever?
In England it is said that money cannot be taken out of the pockets of the people without their consent. But who authorised, or who could authorise, the Parliament of 1688 to control and take away the freedom of posterity (who were not in existence to give or to withhold their consent) and limit and confine their right of acting in certain cases for ever?
In England, people say that money can't be taken from their pockets without their approval. But who gave permission, or who could possibly give permission, to the Parliament of 1688 to dictate and strip away the freedom of future generations (who weren't alive to consent or refuse) and to permanently restrict their rights to act in certain situations?
A greater absurdity cannot present itself to the understanding of man than what Mr. Burke offers to his readers. He tells them, and he tells the world to come, that a certain body of men who existed a hundred years ago made a law, and that there does not exist in the nation, nor ever will, nor ever can, a power to alter it. Under how many subtilties or absurdities has the divine right to govern been imposed on the credulity of mankind? Mr. Burke has discovered a new one, and he has shortened his journey to Rome by appealing to the power of this infallible Parliament of former days, and he produces what it has done as of divine authority, for that power must certainly be more than human which no human power to the end of time can alter.
A greater absurdity can't be understood by man than what Mr. Burke presents to his readers. He tells them, and he tells future generations, that a specific group of men who lived a hundred years ago made a law, and that there’s no power in the country, nor will there ever be, nor can there ever be, to change it. How many subtle tricks or absurdities have been imposed on people's beliefs regarding the divine right to govern? Mr. Burke has discovered a new one, and he shortcut his way to authority by appealing to this infallible Parliament from the past, presenting what it has done as if it were divine authority, because that power must be greater than human if no human power can change it until the end of time.
But Mr. Burke has done some service—not to his cause, but to his country—by bringing those clauses into public view. They serve to demonstrate how necessary it is at all times to watch against the attempted encroachment of power, and to prevent its running to excess. It is somewhat extraordinary that the offence for which James II. was expelled, that of setting up power by assumption, should be re-acted, under another shape and form, by the Parliament that expelled him. It shows that the Rights of Man were but imperfectly understood at the Revolution, for certain it is that the right which that Parliament set up by assumption (for by the delegation it had not, and could not have it, because none could give it) over the persons and freedom of posterity for ever was of the same tyrannical unfounded kind which James attempted to set up over the Parliament and the nation, and for which he was expelled. The only difference is (for in principle they differ not) that the one was an usurper over living, and the other over the unborn; and as the one has no better authority to stand upon than the other, both of them must be equally null and void, and of no effect.
But Mr. Burke has done a service—not for his own agenda, but for his country—by bringing those clauses to light. They highlight how crucial it is to always keep an eye out for attempts to abuse power and to stop it from going too far. It's somewhat surprising that the offense for which James II was removed, which was establishing power by assumption, is being repeated in a different form by the Parliament that ousted him. This indicates that the Rights of Man were not fully understood at the time of the Revolution, because it’s clear that the right that Parliament claimed by assumption (since it didn’t have and couldn’t have that right through delegation, as no one could grant it) over the people and freedom of future generations was the same kind of baseless tyranny that James tried to impose over Parliament and the nation, which led to his expulsion. The only difference is that one was an usurper over the living, and the other over the unborn; and since neither has any better authority than the other, both must be considered equally invalid and without effect.
From what, or from whence, does Mr. Burke prove the right of any human power to bind posterity for ever? He has produced his clauses, but he must produce also his proofs that such a right existed, and show how it existed. If it ever existed it must now exist, for whatever appertains to the nature of man cannot be annihilated by man. It is the nature of man to die, and he will continue to die as long as he continues to be born. But Mr. Burke has set up a sort of political Adam, in whom all posterity are bound for ever. He must, therefore, prove that his Adam possessed such a power, or such a right.
From where does Mr. Burke assert that any human authority has the right to bind future generations forever? He has laid out his arguments, but he also needs to provide evidence that such a right existed and explain how it came to be. If it ever existed, it must still exist, because whatever is part of human nature cannot be erased by humanity. It's human nature to die, and people will keep dying for as long as they keep being born. However, Mr. Burke has created a kind of political Adam, who binds all future generations indefinitely. Therefore, he needs to prove that his Adam had such power or authority.
The weaker any cord is, the less will it bear to be stretched, and the worse is the policy to stretch it, unless it is intended to break it. Had anyone proposed the overthrow of Mr. Burke's positions, he would have proceeded as Mr. Burke has done. He would have magnified the authorities, on purpose to have called the right of them into question; and the instant the question of right was started, the authorities must have been given up.
The weaker any cord is, the less it can handle being stretched, and it’s a bad idea to stretch it unless you want it to break. If someone had suggested overturning Mr. Burke's views, he would have reacted just like Mr. Burke did. He would have emphasized the authorities, only to challenge their legitimacy; and the moment the issue of legitimacy was raised, those authorities would have had to be abandoned.
It requires but a very small glance of thought to perceive that although laws made in one generation often continue in force through succeeding generations, yet they continue to derive their force from the consent of the living. A law not repealed continues in force, not because it cannot be repealed, but because it is not repealed; and the non-repealing passes for consent.
It only takes a brief moment of thought to see that while laws created in one generation often remain in effect for future generations, they still rely on the agreement of the people alive at the time. A law stays in effect not because it can't be changed, but because it hasn't been changed; and that lack of change is taken as consent.
But Mr. Burke's clauses have not even this qualification in their favour. They become null, by attempting to become immortal. The nature of them precludes consent. They destroy the right which they might have, by grounding it on a right which they cannot have. Immortal power is not a human right, and therefore cannot be a right of Parliament. The Parliament of 1688 might as well have passed an act to have authorised themselves to live for ever, as to make their authority live for ever. All, therefore, that can be said of those clauses is that they are a formality of words, of as much import as if those who used them had addressed a congratulation to themselves, and in the oriental style of antiquity had said: O Parliament, live for ever!
But Mr. Burke's clauses don’t even have this qualification in their favor. They become void by trying to be eternal. Their nature excludes consent. They undermine the right they might possess by basing it on a right they can’t have. Eternal power isn’t a human right, so it can’t be a right of Parliament. The Parliament of 1688 might as well have passed a law allowing them to live forever as to make their authority last forever. So, all that can be said about those clauses is that they are just a formality of words, as meaningless as if those who used them had congratulated themselves and, in the ancient Eastern style, said: O Parliament, live forever!
The circumstances of the world are continually changing, and the opinions of men change also; and as government is for the living, and not for the dead, it is the living only that has any right in it. That which may be thought right and found convenient in one age may be thought wrong and found inconvenient in another. In such cases, who is to decide, the living or the dead?
The situation in the world keeps changing, and people's opinions change too; since government exists for the living, not the dead, only the living have any say in it. What seems right and useful in one era might be seen as wrong and impractical in another. In these situations, who gets to decide, the living or the dead?
As almost one hundred pages of Mr. Burke's book are employed upon these clauses, it will consequently follow that if the clauses themselves, so far as they set up an assumed usurped dominion over posterity for ever, are unauthoritative, and in their nature null and void; that all his voluminous inferences, and declamation drawn therefrom, or founded thereon, are null and void also; and on this ground I rest the matter.
Since nearly one hundred pages of Mr. Burke's book are dedicated to these clauses, it follows that if the clauses themselves, which assert a supposed usurped control over future generations forever, are unauthorized and fundamentally null and void, then all of his extensive conclusions and arguments based on them are also null and void. This is the basis on which I stand.
We now come more particularly to the affairs of France. Mr. Burke's book has the appearance of being written as instruction to the French nation; but if I may permit myself the use of an extravagant metaphor, suited to the extravagance of the case, it is darkness attempting to illuminate light.
We now turn our attention to the situation in France. Mr. Burke's book seems designed to give advice to the French people; however, if I may use an exaggerated metaphor appropriate to the ridiculousness of the situation, it's like darkness trying to shed light on light.
While I am writing this there are accidentally before me some proposals for a declaration of rights by the Marquis de la Fayette (I ask his pardon for using his former address, and do it only for distinction's sake) to the National Assembly, on the 11th of July, 1789, three days before the taking of the Bastille, and I cannot but remark with astonishment how opposite the sources are from which that gentleman and Mr. Burke draw their principles. Instead of referring to musty records and mouldy parchments to prove that the rights of the living are lost, "renounced and abdicated for ever," by those who are now no more, as Mr. Burke has done, M. de la Fayette applies to the living world, and emphatically says: "Call to mind the sentiments which nature has engraved on the heart of every citizen, and which take a new force when they are solemnly recognised by all:—For a nation to love liberty, it is sufficient that she knows it; and to be free, it is sufficient that she wills it." How dry, barren, and obscure is the source from which Mr. Burke labors! and how ineffectual, though gay with flowers, are all his declamation and his arguments compared with these clear, concise, and soul-animating sentiments! Few and short as they are, they lead on to a vast field of generous and manly thinking, and do not finish, like Mr. Burke's periods, with music in the ear, and nothing in the heart.
While I'm writing this, I'm looking at some proposals for a declaration of rights by the Marquis de la Fayette (I apologize for using his former title; I do it just for clarity) to the National Assembly, on July 11, 1789, just three days before the storming of the Bastille. I can't help but be amazed at how different the sources are from which he and Mr. Burke draw their ideas. Instead of relying on old records and dusty documents to argue that the rights of the living are lost, "renounced and abdicated forever," as Mr. Burke has done, M. de la Fayette turns to the living world and emphatically states: "Remember the feelings that nature has inscribed in the heart of every citizen, which gain new strength when recognized by all: For a nation to love liberty, it is enough that she understands it; and to be free, it is enough that she desires it." How dry, useless, and unclear is the source from which Mr. Burke operates! And how ineffective, even though it's full of flowery language, are all his speeches and arguments compared to these clear, straightforward, and inspiring sentiments! Few and brief as they are, they open up a vast realm of generous and strong thinking, and do not conclude, like Mr. Burke's statements, with pleasant sounds in the ear but emptiness in the heart.
As I have introduced M. de la Fayette, I will take the liberty of adding an anecdote respecting his farewell address to the Congress of America in 1783, and which occurred fresh to my mind, when I saw Mr. Burke's thundering attack on the French Revolution. M. de la Fayette went to America at the early period of the war, and continued a volunteer in her service to the end. His conduct through the whole of that enterprise is one of the most extraordinary that is to be found in the history of a young man, scarcely twenty years of age. Situated in a country that was like the lap of sensual pleasure, and with the means of enjoying it, how few are there to be found who would exchange such a scene for the woods and wildernesses of America, and pass the flowery years of youth in unprofitable danger and hardship! but such is the fact. When the war ended, and he was on the point of taking his final departure, he presented himself to Congress, and contemplating in his affectionate farewell the Revolution he had seen, expressed himself in these words: "May this great monument raised to liberty serve as a lesson to the oppressor, and an example to the oppressed!" When this address came to the hands of Dr. Franklin, who was then in France, he applied to Count Vergennes to have it inserted in the French Gazette, but never could obtain his consent. The fact was that Count Vergennes was an aristocratical despot at home, and dreaded the example of the American Revolution in France, as certain other persons now dread the example of the French Revolution in England, and Mr. Burke's tribute of fear (for in this light his book must be considered) runs parallel with Count Vergennes' refusal. But to return more particularly to his work.
As I’ve mentioned M. de la Fayette, I’d like to share a story about his farewell speech to the Congress of the United States in 1783. This memory came to mind when I saw Mr. Burke's harsh criticism of the French Revolution. M. de la Fayette arrived in America early in the war and served as a volunteer until the end. His actions during this entire endeavor are among the most remarkable seen in the history of someone so young, barely twenty years old. In a country that was like a paradise of pleasure, where he had every opportunity to indulge, how many would choose to leave behind such a life for the forests and wilderness of America, spending their youthful years in hard and often pointless danger? Yet that was his reality. When the war concluded and he was about to leave for good, he appeared before Congress and, reflecting on the Revolution he had witnessed, said: "May this great monument raised to liberty serve as a lesson to the oppressor, and an example to the oppressed!" When Dr. Franklin received this speech while he was in France, he asked Count Vergennes to have it published in the French Gazette, but he could never get approval. The truth is, Count Vergennes was an aristocratic despot and feared the influence of the American Revolution in France, just as some now fear the impact of the French Revolution in England; Mr. Burke's fearful response (which is how we should view his book) parallels Count Vergennes' rejection. But let’s return to discussing his work in more detail.
"We have seen," says Mr. Burke, "the French rebel against a mild and lawful monarch, with more fury, outrage, and insult, than any people has been known to rise against the most illegal usurper, or the most sanguinary tyrant." This is one among a thousand other instances, in which Mr. Burke shows that he is ignorant of the springs and principles of the French Revolution.
"We have seen," says Mr. Burke, "the French rise up against a gentle and lawful king with more rage, violence, and disrespect than any group has historically shown against the most unlawful usurper or the bloodiest tyrant." This is just one of many examples where Mr. Burke demonstrates his lack of understanding of the motivations and principles behind the French Revolution.
It was not against Louis XVI. but against the despotic principles of the Government, that the nation revolted. These principles had not their origin in him, but in the original establishment, many centuries back: and they were become too deeply rooted to be removed, and the Augean stables of parasites and plunderers too abominably filthy to be cleansed by anything short of a complete and universal Revolution. When it becomes necessary to do anything, the whole heart and soul should go into the measure, or not attempt it. That crisis was then arrived, and there remained no choice but to act with determined vigor, or not to act at all. The king was known to be the friend of the nation, and this circumstance was favorable to the enterprise. Perhaps no man bred up in the style of an absolute king, ever possessed a heart so little disposed to the exercise of that species of power as the present King of France. But the principles of the Government itself still remained the same. The Monarch and the Monarchy were distinct and separate things; and it was against the established despotism of the latter, and not against the person or principles of the former, that the revolt commenced, and the Revolution has been carried.
It wasn't just against Louis XVI, but against the oppressive principles of the government that the nation revolted. These principles didn't originate with him; they had their roots in the initial establishment many centuries ago, and they had become too entrenched to be removed. The corrupt system of parasites and plunderers was too disgusting to be cleansed without a complete and universal Revolution. When action needs to be taken, you must fully commit to it or not attempt it at all. That moment had arrived, leaving no choice but to act with strong determination or not act at all. The king was known to be a friend of the nation, which was a positive factor for the movement. Perhaps no one raised as an absolute king had a heart less inclined to wield such power than the current King of France. However, the principles of the government itself remained unchanged. The monarch and the monarchy were separate entities; the revolt was against the established tyranny of the latter, not against the person or principles of the former.
Mr. Burke does not attend to the distinction between men and principles, and, therefore, he does not see that a revolt may take place against the despotism of the latter, while there lies no charge of despotism against the former.
Mr. Burke doesn’t recognize the difference between people and principles, and because of that, he fails to understand that a rebellion can happen against the tyranny of the latter, even when there are no accusations of tyranny against the former.
The natural moderation of Louis XVI. contributed nothing to alter the hereditary despotism of the monarchy. All the tyrannies of former reigns, acted under that hereditary despotism, were still liable to be revived in the hands of a successor. It was not the respite of a reign that would satisfy France, enlightened as she was then become. A casual discontinuance of the practice of despotism, is not a discontinuance of its principles: the former depends on the virtue of the individual who is in immediate possession of the power; the latter, on the virtue and fortitude of the nation. In the case of Charles I. and James II. of England, the revolt was against the personal despotism of the men; whereas in France, it was against the hereditary despotism of the established Government. But men who can consign over the rights of posterity for ever on the authority of a mouldy parchment, like Mr. Burke, are not qualified to judge of this Revolution. It takes in a field too vast for their views to explore, and proceeds with a mightiness of reason they cannot keep pace with.
The natural moderation of Louis XVI didn’t change the inherited tyranny of the monarchy. All the injustices of past reigns, operating under that inherited tyranny, could still be revived by his successors. A brief pause in a reign wouldn’t satisfy France, which had become enlightened. A temporary halt in the practice of tyranny doesn’t eliminate its principles: the former relies on the character of the person in power, while the latter depends on the strength and integrity of the nation. In the cases of Charles I and James II of England, the uprising was against the personal tyranny of those individuals; in France, however, it was against the inherited tyranny of the established government. But people who can give up the rights of future generations based solely on an old document, like Mr. Burke, aren’t fit to assess this Revolution. It encompasses a scope too large for their understanding and moves with a force of reasoning they cannot match.
But there are many points of view in which this Revolution may be considered. When despotism has established itself for ages in a country, as in France, it is not in the person of the king only that it resides. It has the appearance of being so in show, and in nominal authority; but it is not so in practice and in fact. It has its standard everywhere. Every office and department has its despotism, founded upon custom and usage. Every place has its Bastille, and every Bastille its despot. The original hereditary despotism resident in the person of the king, divides and sub-divides itself into a thousand shapes and forms, till at last the whole of it is acted by deputation. This was the case in France; and against this species of despotism, proceeding on through an endless labyrinth of office till the source of it is scarcely perceptible, there is no mode of redress. It strengthens itself by assuming the appearance of duty, and tyrannizes under the pretence of obeying.
But there are many ways to view this Revolution. When tyranny has been entrenched in a country for a long time, like in France, it doesn't just reside in the king. It may seem like that on the surface and in name, but in reality, it works differently. Its influence is everywhere. Every office and department has its own version of tyranny, built on tradition and practice. Every place has its own Bastille, and each Bastille has its own tyrant. The original hereditary tyranny embodied by the king divides and splits into countless forms until ultimately, it is all carried out by representatives. This was true in France; and against this kind of tyranny, which moves through an endless maze of offices until its origin is nearly unrecognizable, there’s no way to seek justice. It bolsters itself by pretending to be doing its duty and oppresses while claiming to obey.
When a man reflects on the condition which France was in from the nature of her government, he will see other causes for revolt than those which immediately connect themselves with the person or character of Louis XVI. There were, if I may so express it, a thousand despotisms to be reformed in France, which had grown up under the hereditary despotism of the monarchy, and became so rooted as to be in a great measure independent of it. Between the Monarchy, the Parliament, and the Church there was a rivalship of despotism; besides the feudal despotism operating locally, and the ministerial despotism operating everywhere. But Mr. Burke, by considering the king as the only possible object of a revolt, speaks as if France was a village, in which everything that passed must be known to its commanding officer, and no oppression could be acted but what he could immediately control. Mr. Burke might have been in the Bastille his whole life, as well under Louis XVI. as Louis XIV., and neither the one nor the other have known that such a man as Burke existed. The despotic principles of the government were the same in both reigns, though the dispositions of the men were as remote as tyranny and benevolence.
When someone thinks about the state that France was in because of its government, they'll realize there were more reasons for the uprising than just the actions or character of Louis XVI. There were, to put it simply, countless forms of oppression that needed reform in France, which had developed under the hereditary rule of the monarchy and had become so deeply entrenched that they were largely independent of it. There was a competition of tyranny among the Monarchy, the Parliament, and the Church, in addition to local feudal oppression and widespread ministerial oppression. However, Mr. Burke, by viewing the king as the sole possible target of a revolt, implies that France was like a small village where everything that happened had to be known by its leader, and no oppression could occur without his immediate oversight. Mr. Burke could have spent his entire life in the Bastille, under both Louis XVI and Louis XIV, and neither king would have ever known he existed. The oppressive principles of the government were consistent across both reigns, even though the attitudes of the individuals in power were as different as tyranny and kindness.
What Mr. Burke considers as a reproach to the French Revolution (that of bringing it forward under a reign more mild than the preceding ones) is one of its highest honors. The Revolutions that have taken place in other European countries, have been excited by personal hatred. The rage was against the man, and he became the victim. But, in the instance of France we see a Revolution generated in the rational contemplation of the Rights of Man, and distinguishing from the beginning between persons and principles.
What Mr. Burke views as a criticism of the French Revolution (that it happened during a more tolerant reign than previous ones) is actually one of its greatest achievements. The revolutions that occurred in other European countries were fueled by personal animosity. The anger was directed at individuals, who then became the targets. In France's case, however, we see a revolution born from a rational consideration of Human Rights, separating individuals from the principles right from the start.
But Mr. Burke appears to have no idea of principles when he is contemplating Governments. "Ten years ago," says he, "I could have felicitated France on her having a Government, without inquiring what the nature of that Government was, or how it was administered." Is this the language of a rational man? Is it the language of a heart feeling as it ought to feel for the rights and happiness of the human race? On this ground, Mr. Burke must compliment all the Governments in the world, while the victims who suffer under them, whether sold into slavery, or tortured out of existence, are wholly forgotten. It is power, and not principles, that Mr. Burke venerates; and under this abominable depravity he is disqualified to judge between them. Thus much for his opinion as to the occasions of the French Revolution. I now proceed to other considerations.
But Mr. Burke seems to have no understanding of principles when he looks at governments. "Ten years ago," he says, "I could have congratulated France on having a government, without asking what kind of government it was or how it was run." Is this the talk of a rational person? Is it the talk of someone who truly cares about the rights and happiness of humanity? On this basis, Mr. Burke must praise all the governments in the world while completely overlooking the victims suffering under them, whether they are sold into slavery or tortured to death. It’s power, not principles, that Mr. Burke admires; and with this awful moral failing, he is unfit to judge between them. That’s enough about his view on the causes of the French Revolution. Now I will move on to other points.
I know a place in America called Point-no-Point, because as you proceed along the shore, gay and flowery as Mr. Burke's language, it continually recedes and presents itself at a distance before you; but when you have got as far as you can go, there is no point at all. Just thus it is with Mr. Burke's three hundred and sixty-six pages. It is therefore difficult to reply to him. But as the points he wishes to establish may be inferred from what he abuses, it is in his paradoxes that we must look for his arguments.
I know a place in America called Point-no-Point. As you walk along the shore, cheerful and colorful like Mr. Burke's writing, it keeps moving away and appears again in the distance. But when you reach the end, there’s no point at all. This is just like Mr. Burke's three hundred and sixty-six pages. It makes it hard to respond to him. However, since we can infer the points he wants to make from what he criticizes, we need to find his arguments in his contradictions.
As to the tragic paintings by which Mr. Burke has outraged his own imagination, and seeks to work upon that of his readers, they are very well calculated for theatrical representation, where facts are manufactured for the sake of show, and accommodated to produce, through the weakness of sympathy, a weeping effect. But Mr. Burke should recollect that he is writing history, and not plays, and that his readers will expect truth, and not the spouting rant of high-toned exclamation.
As for the dramatic paintings that Mr. Burke has unleashed from his own imagination and tries to evoke in his readers, they are perfectly suited for theatrical performances, where facts are created for show and designed to elicit tears through the power of sympathy. However, Mr. Burke should remember that he is writing history, not plays, and that his readers will be looking for truth, not the exaggerated outpourings of lofty language.
When we see a man dramatically lamenting in a publication intended to be believed that "The age of chivalry is gone! that The glory of Europe is extinguished for ever! that The unbought grace of life (if anyone knows what it is), the cheap defence of nations, the nurse of manly sentiment and heroic enterprise is gone!" and all this because the Quixot age of chivalry nonsense is gone, what opinion can we form of his judgment, or what regard can we pay to his facts? In the rhapsody of his imagination he has discovered a world of wind mills, and his sorrows are that there are no Quixots to attack them. But if the age of aristocracy, like that of chivalry, should fall (and they had originally some connection) Mr. Burke, the trumpeter of the Order, may continue his parody to the end, and finish with exclaiming: "Othello's occupation's gone!"
When we see a man dramatically crying out in a publication that's meant to be taken seriously that "The age of chivalry is over! The glory of Europe is forever extinguished! The unbought grace of life (if anyone knows what that is), the cheap defense of nations, the nurturing of manly sentiment and heroic enterprise is gone!" and all this because the ridiculous age of chivalry nonsense is no more, what can we think of his judgment, or how much respect can we give to his claims? In the fantasy of his imagination, he has found a world of windmills, and his sorrow is that there are no Quixotes to fight them. But if the age of aristocracy, like that of chivalry, were to collapse (and they were originally somewhat connected), Mr. Burke, the supporter of the Order, might keep up his farce until the end and finish with exclaiming: "Othello's occupation's gone!"
Notwithstanding Mr. Burke's horrid paintings, when the French Revolution is compared with the Revolutions of other countries, the astonishment will be that it is marked with so few sacrifices; but this astonishment will cease when we reflect that principles, and not persons, were the meditated objects of destruction. The mind of the nation was acted upon by a higher stimulus than what the consideration of persons could inspire, and sought a higher conquest than could be produced by the downfall of an enemy. Among the few who fell there do not appear to be any that were intentionally singled out. They all of them had their fate in the circumstances of the moment, and were not pursued with that long, cold-blooded unabated revenge which pursued the unfortunate Scotch in the affair of 1745.
Despite Mr. Burke's terrible paintings, when the French Revolution is compared to the revolutions in other countries, it's surprising that there were so few sacrifices made; however, this surprise fades when we consider that the goal was to destroy ideas rather than individuals. The nation's mindset was influenced by a stronger motivation than any personal consideration could provide, and it aimed for a greater achievement than simply defeating an enemy. Among the few who lost their lives, none seem to have been specifically targeted. Their fates were determined by the circumstances of the moment, rather than being pursued with the kind of relentless, cold-blooded revenge that the unfortunate Scots faced in 1745.
Through the whole of Mr. Burke's book I do not observe that the Bastille is mentioned more than once, and that with a kind of implication as if he were sorry it was pulled down, and wished it were built up again. "We have rebuilt Newgate," says he, "and tenanted the mansion; and we have prisons almost as strong as the Bastille for those who dare to libel the queens of France."*2 As to what a madman like the person called Lord George Gordon might say, and to whom Newgate is rather a bedlam than a prison, it is unworthy a rational consideration. It was a madman that libelled, and that is sufficient apology; and it afforded an opportunity for confining him, which was the thing that was wished for. But certain it is that Mr. Burke, who does not call himself a madman (whatever other people may do), has libelled in the most unprovoked manner, and in the grossest style of the most vulgar abuse, the whole representative authority of France, and yet Mr. Burke takes his seat in the British House of Commons! From his violence and his grief, his silence on some points and his excess on others, it is difficult not to believe that Mr. Burke is sorry, extremely sorry, that arbitrary power, the power of the Pope and the Bastille, are pulled down.
Throughout Mr. Burke's book, I notice that the Bastille is mentioned only once, and even then, it seems like he regrets its destruction and wishes it were rebuilt. "We have rebuilt Newgate," he says, "and filled the place with people; and we have prisons almost as strong as the Bastille for anyone who dares to criticize the queens of France."*2 As for the ramblings of someone like Lord George Gordon, to whom Newgate is more of a lunatic asylum than a prison, that's not worth a rational response. It was a madman who made the defamatory remarks, and that's a good enough excuse; it also provided an opportunity to lock him up, which was the desired outcome. But it's clear that Mr. Burke, who doesn’t call himself a madman (regardless of what others might say), has attacked the entire representative authority of France in the most unreasonable way and with the coarsest insults, yet he still takes his seat in the British House of Commons! His outbursts and sorrow, his silence on some issues and his overreaction on others, make it hard not to believe that Mr. Burke is deeply, deeply sorry that arbitrary power, the power of the Pope and the Bastille, have been dismantled.
Not one glance of compassion, not one commiserating reflection that I can find throughout his book, has he bestowed on those who lingered out the most wretched of lives, a life without hope in the most miserable of prisons. It is painful to behold a man employing his talents to corrupt himself. Nature has been kinder to Mr. Burke than he is to her. He is not affected by the reality of distress touching his heart, but by the showy resemblance of it striking his imagination. He pities the plumage, but forgets the dying bird. Accustomed to kiss the aristocratical hand that hath purloined him from himself, he degenerates into a composition of art, and the genuine soul of nature forsakes him. His hero or his heroine must be a tragedy-victim expiring in show, and not the real prisoner of misery, sliding into death in the silence of a dungeon.
Not a single look of compassion, not a single sympathetic thought that I can find throughout his book, has he offered to those who endure the most miserable lives, a life without hope in the worst of prisons. It's painful to watch a man use his talents to ruin himself. Nature has been kinder to Mr. Burke than he is to her. He is not touched by the reality of suffering, but by the flashy image of it that captures his imagination. He feels sorry for the feathers but forgets the dying bird. Used to kissing the aristocratic hand that has stolen him from himself, he becomes a mere creation of art, and the true spirit of nature abandons him. His hero or heroine must be a tragic victim dying in a spectacle, and not the real prisoner of despair, slipping into death in the silence of a dungeon.
As Mr. Burke has passed over the whole transaction of the Bastille (and his silence is nothing in his favour), and has entertained his readers with refections on supposed facts distorted into real falsehoods, I will give, since he has not, some account of the circumstances which preceded that transaction. They will serve to show that less mischief could scarcely have accompanied such an event when considered with the treacherous and hostile aggravations of the enemies of the Revolution.
As Mr. Burke has skipped over the entire situation with the Bastille (and his silence doesn't help his case), and has filled his readers with reflections on supposed facts twisted into actual lies, I will provide, since he hasn’t, some details about the events leading up to that situation. These will demonstrate that there could hardly have been less damage accompanying such an event, especially when considering the deceitful and hostile actions of the Revolution's enemies.
The mind can hardly picture to itself a more tremendous scene than what the city of Paris exhibited at the time of taking the Bastille, and for two days before and after, nor perceive the possibility of its quieting so soon. At a distance this transaction has appeared only as an act of heroism standing on itself, and the close political connection it had with the Revolution is lost in the brilliancy of the achievement. But we are to consider it as the strength of the parties brought man to man, and contending for the issue. The Bastille was to be either the prize or the prison of the assailants. The downfall of it included the idea of the downfall of despotism, and this compounded image was become as figuratively united as Bunyan's Doubting Castle and Giant Despair.
The mind can hardly imagine a more incredible scene than what the city of Paris showed during the taking of the Bastille, and for two days before and after. It's hard to believe things calmed down so quickly. From a distance, this event seems like an act of heroism that stands alone, and the deep political ties it had with the Revolution are overshadowed by the greatness of the achievement. But we need to see it as the strength of the opposing sides clashing, each fighting for their cause. The Bastille was going to be either the prize or the prison for the attackers. Its collapse symbolized the downfall of tyranny, and this combined image became as metaphorically linked as Bunyan's Doubting Castle and Giant Despair.
The National Assembly, before and at the time of taking the Bastille, was sitting at Versailles, twelve miles distant from Paris. About a week before the rising of the Partisans, and their taking the Bastille, it was discovered that a plot was forming, at the head of which was the Count D'Artois, the king's youngest brother, for demolishing the National Assembly, seizing its members, and thereby crushing, by a coup de main, all hopes and prospects of forming a free government. For the sake of humanity, as well as freedom, it is well this plan did not succeed. Examples are not wanting to show how dreadfully vindictive and cruel are all old governments, when they are successful against what they call a revolt.
The National Assembly was meeting at Versailles, twelve miles from Paris, before and during the storming of the Bastille. About a week before the uprising of the Partisans and their takeover of the Bastille, it was discovered that a plot was being hatched, led by Count D'Artois, the king's youngest brother, to dismantle the National Assembly, capture its members, and crush any hopes of establishing a free government in a swift attack. It’s fortunate for humanity and freedom that this plan didn't succeed. There are plenty of examples to show just how cruel and vindictive old governments can be when they triumph over what they label as a rebellion.
This plan must have been some time in contemplation; because, in order to carry it into execution, it was necessary to collect a large military force round Paris, and cut off the communication between that city and the National Assembly at Versailles. The troops destined for this service were chiefly the foreign troops in the pay of France, and who, for this particular purpose, were drawn from the distant provinces where they were then stationed. When they were collected to the amount of between twenty-five and thirty thousand, it was judged time to put the plan into execution. The ministry who were then in office, and who were friendly to the Revolution, were instantly dismissed and a new ministry formed of those who had concerted the project, among whom was Count de Broglio, and to his share was given the command of those troops. The character of this man as described to me in a letter which I communicated to Mr. Burke before he began to write his book, and from an authority which Mr. Burke well knows was good, was that of "a high-flying aristocrat, cool, and capable of every mischief."
This plan must have been in the works for a while because, to carry it out, it was essential to gather a large military force around Paris and cut off communication between the city and the National Assembly at Versailles. The troops assigned to this task were mainly foreign soldiers on France's payroll, who were brought in from distant provinces where they were stationed. Once their numbers reached between twenty-five and thirty thousand, it was seen as the right moment to execute the plan. The government in office at the time, which was supportive of the Revolution, was quickly dismissed, and a new government was formed by those behind the scheme, including Count de Broglio, who was given command of the troops. The character of this man, as I described in a letter that I shared with Mr. Burke before he started writing his book, and from a source that Mr. Burke knows was reliable, was that of "a high-flying aristocrat, cool, and capable of every mischief."
While these matters were agitating, the National Assembly stood in the most perilous and critical situation that a body of men can be supposed to act in. They were the devoted victims, and they knew it. They had the hearts and wishes of their country on their side, but military authority they had none. The guards of Broglio surrounded the hall where the Assembly sat, ready, at the word of command, to seize their persons, as had been done the year before to the Parliament of Paris. Had the National Assembly deserted their trust, or had they exhibited signs of weakness or fear, their enemies had been encouraged and their country depressed. When the situation they stood in, the cause they were engaged in, and the crisis then ready to burst, which should determine their personal and political fate and that of their country, and probably of Europe, are taken into one view, none but a heart callous with prejudice or corrupted by dependence can avoid interesting itself in their success.
While these issues were troubling, the National Assembly found itself in the most dangerous and critical position imaginable. They were dedicated victims, and they were aware of it. They had the support and hopes of their country on their side, but they held no military power. The guards of Broglio surrounded the hall where the Assembly was meeting, ready, at a moment's notice, to arrest them, just as had happened the previous year to the Parliament of Paris. If the National Assembly had abandoned their responsibility or shown any signs of weakness or fear, their enemies would have been emboldened, and their country would have suffered. Considering the situation they were in, the cause they were fighting for, and the impending crisis that would determine their personal and political futures, as well as that of their nation and possibly Europe, only someone completely biased or corrupted by dependence could remain indifferent to their success.
The Archbishop of Vienne was at this time President of the National Assembly—a person too old to undergo the scene that a few days or a few hours might bring forth. A man of more activity and bolder fortitude was necessary, and the National Assembly chose (under the form of a Vice-President, for the Presidency still resided in the Archbishop) M. de la Fayette; and this is the only instance of a Vice-President being chosen. It was at the moment that this storm was pending (July 11th) that a declaration of rights was brought forward by M. de la Fayette, and is the same which is alluded to earlier. It was hastily drawn up, and makes only a part of the more extensive declaration of rights agreed upon and adopted afterwards by the National Assembly. The particular reason for bringing it forward at this moment (M. de la Fayette has since informed me) was that, if the National Assembly should fall in the threatened destruction that then surrounded it, some trace of its principles might have the chance of surviving the wreck.
The Archbishop of Vienne was at that time the President of the National Assembly—too old to handle the chaos that might unfold in just a few days or even hours. A more energetic and courageous leader was needed, so the National Assembly selected M. de la Fayette as a Vice-President, while the presidency still remained with the Archbishop. This was the only instance of a Vice-President being appointed. It was during this time of impending turmoil (July 11th) that M. de la Fayette introduced a declaration of rights, which is the same one mentioned earlier. It was drafted quickly and is only part of the broader declaration of rights that was later agreed upon and adopted by the National Assembly. The specific reason for presenting it at that moment (as M. de la Fayette later told me) was that if the National Assembly were to face the destruction that loomed over it, some record of its principles might survive the disaster.
Everything now was drawing to a crisis. The event was freedom or slavery. On one side, an army of nearly thirty thousand men; on the other, an unarmed body of citizens—for the citizens of Paris, on whom the National Assembly must then immediately depend, were as unarmed and as undisciplined as the citizens of London are now. The French guards had given strong symptoms of their being attached to the national cause; but their numbers were small, not a tenth part of the force that Broglio commanded, and their officers were in the interest of Broglio.
Everything was coming to a head. The choice was between freedom and slavery. On one side, an army of nearly thirty thousand men; on the other, an unarmed group of citizens—because the citizens of Paris, on whom the National Assembly had to rely, were just as unarmed and undisciplined as the citizens of London are today. The French guards had shown clear signs of supporting the national cause; however, their numbers were small, only a fraction of the force that Broglio commanded, and their officers were aligned with Broglio.
Matters being now ripe for execution, the new ministry made their appearance in office. The reader will carry in his mind that the Bastille was taken the 14th July; the point of time I am now speaking of is the 12th. Immediately on the news of the change of ministry reaching Paris, in the afternoon, all the playhouses and places of entertainment, shops and houses, were shut up. The change of ministry was considered as the prelude of hostilities, and the opinion was rightly founded.
Matters were now ready for action, and the new government took office. Keep in mind that the Bastille was stormed on July 14; I'm referring to the time on the 12th. As soon as the news of the new government reached Paris in the afternoon, all theaters and entertainment venues, shops, and homes closed down. The change in government was seen as the beginning of conflict, and that belief was well-founded.
The foreign troops began to advance towards the city. The Prince de Lambesc, who commanded a body of German cavalry, approached by the Place of Louis Xv., which connects itself with some of the streets. In his march, he insulted and struck an old man with a sword. The French are remarkable for their respect to old age; and the insolence with which it appeared to be done, uniting with the general fermentation they were in, produced a powerful effect, and a cry of "To arms! to arms!" spread itself in a moment over the city.
The foreign troops started moving toward the city. The Prince de Lambesc, who was in charge of a group of German cavalry, approached from the Place of Louis XV., which connects to several streets. As he marched, he insulted an old man and struck him with a sword. The French are known for their respect for the elderly, and the way he did this, combined with the overall unrest, had a strong impact, leading to shouts of "To arms! To arms!" that quickly spread throughout the city.
Arms they had none, nor scarcely anyone who knew the use of them; but desperate resolution, when every hope is at stake, supplies, for a while, the want of arms. Near where the Prince de Lambesc was drawn up, were large piles of stones collected for building the new bridge, and with these the people attacked the cavalry. A party of French guards upon hearing the firing, rushed from their quarters and joined the people; and night coming on, the cavalry retreated.
They had no weapons, and barely anyone among them knew how to use them; but when all hope is lost, sheer determination can temporarily make up for the lack of arms. Near where Prince de Lambesc was stationed, there were large piles of stones gathered for the construction of the new bridge, and the people used these to attack the cavalry. A group of French guards, hearing the gunfire, rushed out of their quarters to join the people; and as night fell, the cavalry retreated.
The streets of Paris, being narrow, are favourable for defence, and the loftiness of the houses, consisting of many stories, from which great annoyance might be given, secured them against nocturnal enterprises; and the night was spent in providing themselves with every sort of weapon they could make or procure: guns, swords, blacksmiths' hammers, carpenters' axes, iron crows, pikes, halberts, pitchforks, spits, clubs, etc., etc. The incredible numbers in which they assembled the next morning, and the still more incredible resolution they exhibited, embarrassed and astonished their enemies. Little did the new ministry expect such a salute. Accustomed to slavery themselves, they had no idea that liberty was capable of such inspiration, or that a body of unarmed citizens would dare to face the military force of thirty thousand men. Every moment of this day was employed in collecting arms, concerting plans, and arranging themselves into the best order which such an instantaneous movement could afford. Broglio continued lying round the city, but made no further advances this day, and the succeeding night passed with as much tranquility as such a scene could possibly produce.
The streets of Paris are narrow, which makes them great for defense, and the tall buildings with multiple stories provide a good vantage point to cause trouble, protecting them against nighttime attacks. The night was spent preparing every kind of weapon they could make or find: guns, swords, blacksmiths' hammers, carpenters' axes, crowbars, pikes, halberds, pitchforks, spits, clubs, and more. The massive turnout the next morning, along with their incredible determination, shocked and bewildered their enemies. The new government didn't expect such a welcome. Used to oppression themselves, they had no idea that the idea of freedom could inspire such defiance, or that a group of unarmed citizens would dare to confront a military force of thirty thousand men. Every moment that day was spent gathering weapons, planning strategies, and organizing themselves as best as they could under such sudden circumstances. Broglio stayed around the city but didn't make any further moves that day, and the following night passed with as much calm as could be expected in such a situation.
But defence only was not the object of the citizens. They had a cause at stake, on which depended their freedom or their slavery. They every moment expected an attack, or to hear of one made on the National Assembly; and in such a situation, the most prompt measures are sometimes the best. The object that now presented itself was the Bastille; and the eclat of carrying such a fortress in the face of such an army, could not fail to strike terror into the new ministry, who had scarcely yet had time to meet. By some intercepted correspondence this morning, it was discovered that the Mayor of Paris, M. Defflesselles, who appeared to be in the interest of the citizens, was betraying them; and from this discovery, there remained no doubt that Broglio would reinforce the Bastille the ensuing evening. It was therefore necessary to attack it that day; but before this could be done, it was first necessary to procure a better supply of arms than they were then possessed of.
But defense wasn't the only concern for the citizens. They had something at stake that determined their freedom or their enslavement. They were constantly anticipating an attack or hearing about one directed at the National Assembly; in such circumstances, sometimes the quickest actions are the most effective. The target that emerged was the Bastille, and the impact of taking such a stronghold in front of such an army would surely instill fear in the new government, which had hardly even gathered. Some intercepted communications this morning revealed that the Mayor of Paris, M. Defflesselles, who seemed to support the citizens, was actually betraying them; this revelation left no doubt that Broglio would send reinforcements to the Bastille that same evening. Thus, it was crucial to attack that day, but before doing so, they needed to secure better weapons than what they currently had.
There was, adjoining to the city a large magazine of arms deposited at the Hospital of the Invalids, which the citizens summoned to surrender; and as the place was neither defensible, nor attempted much defence, they soon succeeded. Thus supplied, they marched to attack the Bastille; a vast mixed multitude of all ages, and of all degrees, armed with all sorts of weapons. Imagination would fail in describing to itself the appearance of such a procession, and of the anxiety of the events which a few hours or a few minutes might produce. What plans the ministry were forming, were as unknown to the people within the city, as what the citizens were doing was unknown to the ministry; and what movements Broglio might make for the support or relief of the place, were to the citizens equally as unknown. All was mystery and hazard.
There was a large stockpile of weapons next to the city at the Hospital of the Invalids, which the citizens called on to surrender. Since the place was not defensible and didn’t put up much of a fight, they quickly succeeded. With those supplies, they marched to attack the Bastille—a huge, diverse crowd of all ages and backgrounds, armed with all kinds of weapons. It’s hard to describe the sight of such a procession and the anxiety over what events might unfold in just a few hours or even minutes. The plans the ministry were making were as unknown to the people in the city as the citizens' actions were to the ministry, and any movements Broglio might make to support or relieve the Bastille were equally unknown to the citizens. Everything was shrouded in mystery and danger.
That the Bastille was attacked with an enthusiasm of heroism, such only as the highest animation of liberty could inspire, and carried in the space of a few hours, is an event which the world is fully possessed of. I am not undertaking the detail of the attack, but bringing into view the conspiracy against the nation which provoked it, and which fell with the Bastille. The prison to which the new ministry were dooming the National Assembly, in addition to its being the high altar and castle of despotism, became the proper object to begin with. This enterprise broke up the new ministry, who began now to fly from the ruin they had prepared for others. The troops of Broglio dispersed, and himself fled also.
The attack on the Bastille was fueled by a fervor of heroism, inspired only by the strongest desire for freedom, and it was captured in just a few hours; this is something the world is well aware of. I'm not going into the details of the assault, but rather focusing on the conspiracy against the nation that sparked it, which collapsed along with the Bastille. The prison that the new government intended for the National Assembly, besides being the pinnacle and fortress of tyranny, became the right place to begin. This action shattered the new government, and they started to escape the disaster they had created for others. Broglio's troops dispersed, and he fled too.
Mr. Burke has spoken a great deal about plots, but he has never once spoken of this plot against the National Assembly, and the liberties of the nation; and that he might not, he has passed over all the circumstances that might throw it in his way. The exiles who have fled from France, whose case he so much interests himself in, and from whom he has had his lesson, fled in consequence of the miscarriage of this plot. No plot was formed against them; they were plotting against others; and those who fell, met, not unjustly, the punishment they were preparing to execute. But will Mr. Burke say that if this plot, contrived with the subtilty of an ambuscade, had succeeded, the successful party would have restrained their wrath so soon? Let the history of all governments answer the question.
Mr. Burke has talked a lot about conspiracies, but he has never mentioned this conspiracy against the National Assembly and the freedoms of the country. To avoid it, he has ignored all the details that could bring it to light. The exiles who fled France, who he cares so much about and from whom he's learned his lessons, left because this plot failed. No one plotted against them; they were plotting against others, and those who fell faced the consequences of the actions they were planning to carry out. But will Mr. Burke claim that if this plot, designed with the cunning of an ambush, had succeeded, the victorious group would have held back their anger for long? Let the history of all governments provide the answer to that question.
Whom has the National Assembly brought to the scaffold? None. They were themselves the devoted victims of this plot, and they have not retaliated; why, then, are they charged with revenge they have not acted? In the tremendous breaking forth of a whole people, in which all degrees, tempers and characters are confounded, delivering themselves, by a miracle of exertion, from the destruction meditated against them, is it to be expected that nothing will happen? When men are sore with the sense of oppressions, and menaced with the prospects of new ones, is the calmness of philosophy or the palsy of insensibility to be looked for? Mr. Burke exclaims against outrage; yet the greatest is that which himself has committed. His book is a volume of outrage, not apologised for by the impulse of a moment, but cherished through a space of ten months; yet Mr. Burke had no provocation—no life, no interest, at stake.
Whom has the National Assembly sent to the gallows? No one. They themselves were the unfortunate victims of this scheme, and they haven’t sought revenge; so why are they accused of wanting to retaliate when they haven’t acted? In the massive uprising of an entire people, where all classes, moods, and personalities are mixed together, liberating themselves through an incredible effort from the destruction planned against them, can we really expect nothing to happen? When people are deeply aware of their oppression and face the threat of new ones, should we expect the calmness of philosophy or the numbness of indifference? Mr. Burke criticizes violence; yet he is guilty of the greatest offense himself. His book is a document of outrage, not just a momentary impulse, but something he held onto for ten months; yet Mr. Burke had no provocation—nothing personal, no interest at stake.
More of the citizens fell in this struggle than of their opponents: but four or five persons were seized by the populace, and instantly put to death; the Governor of the Bastille, and the Mayor of Paris, who was detected in the act of betraying them; and afterwards Foulon, one of the new ministry, and Berthier, his son-in-law, who had accepted the office of intendant of Paris. Their heads were stuck upon spikes, and carried about the city; and it is upon this mode of punishment that Mr. Burke builds a great part of his tragic scene. Let us therefore examine how men came by the idea of punishing in this manner.
More citizens died in this conflict than their opponents: however, four or five individuals were captured by the crowd and quickly executed; among them were the Governor of the Bastille and the Mayor of Paris, who was caught betraying them. Later, Foulon, a member of the new ministry, and his son-in-law Berthier, who had taken the position of intendant of Paris, were also killed. Their heads were displayed on spikes and paraded around the city; Mr. Burke builds a significant part of his tragic scene on this method of punishment. Let’s then explore how people came to the idea of punishing this way.
They learn it from the governments they live under; and retaliate the punishments they have been accustomed to behold. The heads stuck upon spikes, which remained for years upon Temple Bar, differed nothing in the horror of the scene from those carried about upon spikes at Paris; yet this was done by the English Government. It may perhaps be said that it signifies nothing to a man what is done to him after he is dead; but it signifies much to the living; it either tortures their feelings or hardens their hearts, and in either case it instructs them how to punish when power falls into their hands.
They learn it from the governments they live under and respond to the punishments they’ve seen. The heads displayed on spikes, which stood for years at Temple Bar, were just as horrific as those carried around on spikes in Paris; yet this was done by the English Government. It might be argued that it doesn’t matter to a person what happens to them after they die; but it means a lot to the living. It either torments their feelings or hardens their hearts, and in either case, it teaches them how to punish when they gain power.
Lay then the axe to the root, and teach governments humanity. It is their sanguinary punishments which corrupt mankind. In England the punishment in certain cases is by hanging, drawing and quartering; the heart of the sufferer is cut out and held up to the view of the populace. In France, under the former Government, the punishments were not less barbarous. Who does not remember the execution of Damien, torn to pieces by horses? The effect of those cruel spectacles exhibited to the populace is to destroy tenderness or excite revenge; and by the base and false idea of governing men by terror, instead of reason, they become precedents. It is over the lowest class of mankind that government by terror is intended to operate, and it is on them that it operates to the worst effect. They have sense enough to feel they are the objects aimed at; and they inflict in their turn the examples of terror they have been instructed to practise.
Put the axe to the root and teach governments to be humane. It’s their bloody punishments that corrupt society. In England, certain punishments include hanging, drawing, and quartering, where the victim's heart is cut out and shown to the crowd. In France, under the old government, the punishments were just as brutal. Who could forget the execution of Damien, who was torn apart by horses? The impact of these cruel displays on the crowd is to kill compassion or stir up revenge; and by the misguided belief that people can be controlled through fear instead of reason, they become examples to follow. This government of fear is aimed at the lowest class, and it hits them the hardest. They are aware enough to know they are the targets; in turn, they carry out the terror they’ve been taught to enact.
There is in all European countries a large class of people of that description, which in England is called the "mob." Of this class were those who committed the burnings and devastations in London in 1780, and of this class were those who carried the heads on iron spikes in Paris. Foulon and Berthier were taken up in the country, and sent to Paris, to undergo their examination at the Hotel de Ville; for the National Assembly, immediately on the new ministry coming into office, passed a decree, which they communicated to the King and Cabinet, that they (the National Assembly) would hold the ministry, of which Foulon was one, responsible for the measures they were advising and pursuing; but the mob, incensed at the appearance of Foulon and Berthier, tore them from their conductors before they were carried to the Hotel de Ville, and executed them on the spot. Why then does Mr. Burke charge outrages of this kind on a whole people? As well may he charge the riots and outrages of 1780 on all the people of London, or those in Ireland on all his countrymen.
There is a large group of people in all European countries that is referred to as the "mob" in England. This group includes those who carried out the burnings and destruction in London in 1780, as well as those who displayed heads on iron spikes in Paris. Foulon and Berthier were captured in the countryside and sent to Paris to be questioned at the Hotel de Ville; the National Assembly, as soon as the new government took office, passed a decree, which they sent to the King and Cabinet, stating that they (the National Assembly) would hold the government, which included Foulon, accountable for the actions they were recommending and executing; however, the mob, furious at the sight of Foulon and Berthier, pulled them from their captors before they could reach the Hotel de Ville and executed them on the spot. So why does Mr. Burke blame these kinds of outrages on an entire people? He might as well hold all the people of London responsible for the riots and violence of 1780 or all of his countrymen for the disturbances in Ireland.
But everything we see or hear offensive to our feelings and derogatory to the human character should lead to other reflections than those of reproach. Even the beings who commit them have some claim to our consideration. How then is it that such vast classes of mankind as are distinguished by the appellation of the vulgar, or the ignorant mob, are so numerous in all old countries? The instant we ask ourselves this question, reflection feels an answer. They rise, as an unavoidable consequence, out of the ill construction of all old governments in Europe, England included with the rest. It is by distortedly exalting some men, that others are distortedly debased, till the whole is out of nature. A vast mass of mankind are degradedly thrown into the back-ground of the human picture, to bring forward, with greater glare, the puppet-show of state and aristocracy. In the commencement of a revolution, those men are rather the followers of the camp than of the standard of liberty, and have yet to be instructed how to reverence it.
But everything we see or hear that offends our feelings and insults human dignity should prompt reflections beyond just blame. Even those who commit such offenses deserve some of our consideration. So why are there so many vast groups of people labeled as the vulgar or the ignorant mob in all old countries? As soon as we ask ourselves this question, reflection provides an answer. They arise, as an unavoidable result, from the flawed structure of all the old governments in Europe, including England. By unfairly elevating some individuals, others are unfairly pushed down, resulting in a distorted view of society. A large segment of humanity is shamefully relegated to the background of the human picture to highlight, more glaringly, the puppet show of the state and aristocracy. At the start of a revolution, these people are more followers of the military than of the standard of liberty and still need to be taught how to respect it.
I give to Mr. Burke all his theatrical exaggerations for facts, and I then ask him if they do not establish the certainty of what I here lay down? Admitting them to be true, they show the necessity of the French Revolution, as much as any one thing he could have asserted. These outrages were not the effect of the principles of the Revolution, but of the degraded mind that existed before the Revolution, and which the Revolution is calculated to reform. Place them then to their proper cause, and take the reproach of them to your own side.
I accept all of Mr. Burke's theatrical exaggerations as facts, and then I ask him if they don't prove the certainty of what I'm saying here. If we accept them as true, they demonstrate the necessity of the French Revolution just as well as anything else he could have claimed. These abuses were not the result of the principles of the Revolution, but rather of the degraded mindset that existed before it, which the Revolution is meant to fix. So, assign them to their proper cause, and take the blame for them on your own side.
It is the honour of the National Assembly and the city of Paris that, during such a tremendous scene of arms and confusion, beyond the control of all authority, they have been able, by the influence of example and exhortation, to restrain so much. Never were more pains taken to instruct and enlighten mankind, and to make them see that their interest consisted in their virtue, and not in their revenge, than have been displayed in the Revolution of France. I now proceed to make some remarks on Mr. Burke's account of the expedition to Versailles, October the 5th and 6th.
It is an honor for the National Assembly and the city of Paris that, during such a chaotic and tumultuous time, beyond the reach of any authority, they have managed to hold back so much through the power of example and encouragement. Never have there been more efforts made to educate and enlighten people, showing them that their true interest lies in their virtue and not in their desire for revenge, than what has been seen in the French Revolution. I will now share some thoughts on Mr. Burke's account of the events at Versailles on October 5th and 6th.
I can consider Mr. Burke's book in scarcely any other light than a dramatic performance; and he must, I think, have considered it in the same light himself, by the poetical liberties he has taken of omitting some facts, distorting others, and making the whole machinery bend to produce a stage effect. Of this kind is his account of the expedition to Versailles. He begins this account by omitting the only facts which as causes are known to be true; everything beyond these is conjecture, even in Paris; and he then works up a tale accommodated to his own passions and prejudices.
I can only see Mr. Burke's book as a dramatic performance; I believe he must have viewed it the same way, given the poetic liberties he took by omitting some facts, twisting others, and making everything fit to create a dramatic effect. His account of the expedition to Versailles is a perfect example. He starts by leaving out the only facts that are known to be true as causes; everything else is just speculation, even in Paris; then he crafts a story tailored to his own passions and biases.
It is to be observed throughout Mr. Burke's book that he never speaks of plots against the Revolution; and it is from those plots that all the mischiefs have arisen. It suits his purpose to exhibit the consequences without their causes. It is one of the arts of the drama to do so. If the crimes of men were exhibited with their sufferings, stage effect would sometimes be lost, and the audience would be inclined to approve where it was intended they should commiserate.
It’s noticeable throughout Mr. Burke’s book that he never mentions any plots against the Revolution, and it’s from those plots that all the problems have come. He prefers to show the consequences without explaining the causes. This is a technique often used in drama. If people’s crimes were shown alongside their sufferings, the impact could sometimes be lost, and the audience might end up sympathizing when they were meant to disapprove.
After all the investigations that have been made into this intricate affair (the expedition to Versailles), it still remains enveloped in all that kind of mystery which ever accompanies events produced more from a concurrence of awkward circumstances than from fixed design. While the characters of men are forming, as is always the case in revolutions, there is a reciprocal suspicion, and a disposition to misinterpret each other; and even parties directly opposite in principle will sometimes concur in pushing forward the same movement with very different views, and with the hopes of its producing very different consequences. A great deal of this may be discovered in this embarrassed affair, and yet the issue of the whole was what nobody had in view.
After all the investigations into this complex situation (the expedition to Versailles), it remains surrounded by the kind of mystery that often comes with events driven more by a series of unfortunate circumstances than by a clear plan. As people's characters are being shaped—just like in any revolution—there’s mutual suspicion and a tendency to misinterpret one another; even groups with directly opposing beliefs can sometimes come together to support the same action, each with very different intentions and expectations of what it will bring. A lot of this can be seen in this complicated situation, yet the outcome was something no one anticipated.
The only things certainly known are that considerable uneasiness was at this time excited at Paris by the delay of the King in not sanctioning and forwarding the decrees of the National Assembly, particularly that of the Declaration of the Rights of Man, and the decrees of the fourth of August, which contained the foundation principles on which the constitution was to be erected. The kindest, and perhaps the fairest conjecture upon this matter is, that some of the ministers intended to make remarks and observations upon certain parts of them before they were finally sanctioned and sent to the provinces; but be this as it may, the enemies of the Revolution derived hope from the delay, and the friends of the Revolution uneasiness.
The only things we definitely know are that there was significant unrest in Paris due to the King’s delay in approving and sending the decrees of the National Assembly, especially the Declaration of the Rights of Man and the decrees from August 4th, which laid the foundation for the constitution. The most generous, and probably the fairest, interpretation of this situation is that some ministers wanted to comment on certain aspects before they were officially approved and sent out to the provinces; however, the result was that the enemies of the Revolution gained hope from the delay, while the supporters of the Revolution felt uneasy.
During this state of suspense, the Garde du Corps, which was composed as such regiments generally are, of persons much connected with the Court, gave an entertainment at Versailles (October 1) to some foreign regiments then arrived; and when the entertainment was at the height, on a signal given, the Garde du Corps tore the national cockade from their hats, trampled it under foot, and replaced it with a counter-cockade prepared for the purpose. An indignity of this kind amounted to defiance. It was like declaring war; and if men will give challenges they must expect consequences. But all this Mr. Burke has carefully kept out of sight. He begins his account by saying: "History will record that on the morning of the 6th October, 1789, the King and Queen of France, after a day of confusion, alarm, dismay, and slaughter, lay down under the pledged security of public faith to indulge nature in a few hours of respite, and troubled melancholy repose." This is neither the sober style of history, nor the intention of it. It leaves everything to be guessed at and mistaken. One would at least think there had been a battle; and a battle there probably would have been had it not been for the moderating prudence of those whom Mr. Burke involves in his censures. By his keeping the Garde du Corps out of sight Mr. Burke has afforded himself the dramatic licence of putting the King and Queen in their places, as if the object of the expedition was against them. But to return to my account this conduct of the Garde du Corps, as might well be expected, alarmed and enraged the Partisans. The colors of the cause, and the cause itself, were become too united to mistake the intention of the insult, and the Partisans were determined to call the Garde du Corps to an account. There was certainly nothing of the cowardice of assassination in marching in the face of the day to demand satisfaction, if such a phrase may be used, of a body of armed men who had voluntarily given defiance. But the circumstance which serves to throw this affair into embarrassment is, that the enemies of the Revolution appear to have encouraged it as well as its friends. The one hoped to prevent a civil war by checking it in time, and the other to make one. The hopes of those opposed to the Revolution rested in making the King of their party, and getting him from Versailles to Metz, where they expected to collect a force and set up a standard. We have, therefore, two different objects presenting themselves at the same time, and to be accomplished by the same means: the one to chastise the Garde du Corps, which was the object of the Partisans; the other to render the confusion of such a scene an inducement to the King to set off for Metz.
During this tense moment, the Garde du Corps, made up of people closely connected to the Court, hosted an event at Versailles (October 1) for some foreign regiments that had just arrived. As the festivities reached their peak, they suddenly tore the national cockade from their hats, trampled it underfoot, and replaced it with a counter-cockade made for the occasion. This act was a blatant insult and equivalent to declaring war; if you challenge someone, you have to be prepared for the consequences. However, Mr. Burke conveniently ignores this. He starts his account by stating: "History will record that on the morning of the 6th October, 1789, the King and Queen of France, after a day of confusion, alarm, dismay, and slaughter, lay down under the pledged security of public faith to indulge nature in a few hours of respite, and troubled melancholy repose." This doesn’t reflect the serious nature of history or its purpose. It leaves too much open to interpretation and misunderstanding. One might think there had been a battle, and there likely would have been if it weren't for the careful judgment of those whom Mr. Burke criticizes. By leaving out the Garde du Corps, Mr. Burke takes the dramatic liberty of placing the King and Queen as if they were the target of the conflict. Returning to my account, the actions of the Garde du Corps understandably alarmed and angered the Partisans. The symbols of their cause were too intertwined to misinterpret the meaning of the insult, and the Partisans were ready to hold the Garde du Corps accountable. There was certainly no cowardice in confronting armed men in broad daylight to demand satisfaction, if that’s the right term, from those who had openly challenged them. However, what complicates this situation is that the enemies of the Revolution seemed to support it just as much as its friends did. One side wanted to prevent a civil war by addressing the issue quickly, while the other sought to instigate one. Those opposed to the Revolution hoped to bring the King to their side and move him from Versailles to Metz, where they planned to gather forces and raise their standard. Thus, we have two different aims occurring simultaneously and requiring the same actions: the Partisans sought to punish the Garde du Corps, while the others aimed to create chaos that would prompt the King to head for Metz.
On the 5th of October a very numerous body of women, and men in the disguise of women, collected around the Hotel de Ville or town-hall at Paris, and set off for Versailles. Their professed object was the Garde du Corps; but prudent men readily recollect that mischief is more easily begun than ended; and this impressed itself with the more force from the suspicions already stated, and the irregularity of such a cavalcade. As soon, therefore, as a sufficient force could be collected, M. de la Fayette, by orders from the civil authority of Paris, set off after them at the head of twenty thousand of the Paris militia. The Revolution could derive no benefit from confusion, and its opposers might. By an amiable and spirited manner of address he had hitherto been fortunate in calming disquietudes, and in this he was extraordinarily successful; to frustrate, therefore, the hopes of those who might seek to improve this scene into a sort of justifiable necessity for the King's quitting Versailles and withdrawing to Metz, and to prevent at the same time the consequences that might ensue between the Garde du Corps and this phalanx of men and women, he forwarded expresses to the King, that he was on his march to Versailles, by the orders of the civil authority of Paris, for the purpose of peace and protection, expressing at the same time the necessity of restraining the Garde du Corps from firing upon the people.*3
On October 5th, a large group of women, and men disguised as women, gathered around the Hôtel de Ville (town hall) in Paris and headed for Versailles. They claimed their goal was to confront the Garde du Corps; however, wise individuals remembered that trouble can start more easily than it can be ended. This was further reinforced by the earlier suspicions and the unusual nature of their gathering. Therefore, as soon as a sufficient force could be assembled, M. de Lafayette, acting on orders from the civil authority of Paris, set out after them at the head of twenty thousand Paris militia. The Revolution wouldn’t benefit from chaos, but its opponents might. Through a friendly and spirited approach, he had been successful in calming concerns previously, and he was especially effective this time. To thwart the hopes of those who might want to twist this situation into a justifiable reason for the King to leave Versailles and retreat to Metz, and to avoid potential conflicts between the Garde du Corps and the gathering of men and women, he sent word to the King that he was on his way to Versailles under the orders of the civil authority to ensure peace and protection, while also emphasizing the need to prevent the Garde du Corps from firing on the crowd.*3
He arrived at Versailles between ten and eleven at night. The Garde du Corps was drawn up, and the people had arrived some time before, but everything had remained suspended. Wisdom and policy now consisted in changing a scene of danger into a happy event. M. de la Fayette became the mediator between the enraged parties; and the King, to remove the uneasiness which had arisen from the delay already stated, sent for the President of the National Assembly, and signed the Declaration of the Rights of Man, and such other parts of the constitution as were in readiness.
He arrived at Versailles between ten and eleven at night. The Garde du Corps was lined up, and the people had shown up some time earlier, but everything had come to a halt. Wisdom and strategy now meant turning a dangerous situation into a positive one. M. de la Fayette stepped in as the mediator between the furious parties; and the King, to ease the tension caused by the earlier delay, called for the President of the National Assembly and signed the Declaration of the Rights of Man and other parts of the constitution that were ready.
It was now about one in the morning. Everything appeared to be composed, and a general congratulation took place. By the beat of a drum a proclamation was made that the citizens of Versailles would give the hospitality of their houses to their fellow-citizens of Paris. Those who could not be accommodated in this manner remained in the streets, or took up their quarters in the churches; and at two o'clock the King and Queen retired.
It was now around one in the morning. Everything seemed calm, and a general celebration took place. With the sound of a drum, an announcement was made that the people of Versailles would open their homes to their fellow citizens from Paris. Those who couldn’t be hosted stayed in the streets or found shelter in the churches; and at two o'clock, the King and Queen went to bed.
In this state matters passed till the break of day, when a fresh disturbance arose from the censurable conduct of some of both parties, for such characters there will be in all such scenes. One of the Garde du Corps appeared at one of the windows of the palace, and the people who had remained during the night in the streets accosted him with reviling and provocative language. Instead of retiring, as in such a case prudence would have dictated, he presented his musket, fired, and killed one of the Paris militia. The peace being thus broken, the people rushed into the palace in quest of the offender. They attacked the quarters of the Garde du Corps within the palace, and pursued them throughout the avenues of it, and to the apartments of the King. On this tumult, not the Queen only, as Mr. Burke has represented it, but every person in the palace, was awakened and alarmed; and M. de la Fayette had a second time to interpose between the parties, the event of which was that the Garde du Corps put on the national cockade, and the matter ended as by oblivion, after the loss of two or three lives.
In this situation, things continued until dawn, when a new problem arose due to the inappropriate behavior of some people from both sides, as you can expect in these types of events. One of the Garde du Corps appeared at a window of the palace, and those who had stayed on the streets all night confronted him with insults and provocative remarks. Instead of leaving, as would have been wise, he raised his musket, fired, and shot one of the Paris militia. With the peace shattered, the crowd stormed into the palace looking for the shooter. They attacked the Garde du Corps quarters inside the palace and chased them through its halls and into the King’s chambers. This uproar woke and alarmed everyone in the palace, not just the Queen, as Mr. Burke suggested; M. de la Fayette had to step in again between the parties, leading to the decision by the Garde du Corps to don the national cockade, and the incident ended, almost forgotten, after a couple of lives were lost.
During the latter part of the time in which this confusion was acting, the King and Queen were in public at the balcony, and neither of them concealed for safety's sake, as Mr. Burke insinuates. Matters being thus appeased, and tranquility restored, a general acclamation broke forth of Le Roi a Paris—Le Roi a Paris—The King to Paris. It was the shout of peace, and immediately accepted on the part of the King. By this measure all future projects of trapanning the King to Metz, and setting up the standard of opposition to the constitution, were prevented, and the suspicions extinguished. The King and his family reached Paris in the evening, and were congratulated on their arrival by M. Bailly, the Mayor of Paris, in the name of the citizens. Mr. Burke, who throughout his book confounds things, persons, and principles, as in his remarks on M. Bailly's address, confounded time also. He censures M. Bailly for calling it "un bon jour," a good day. Mr. Burke should have informed himself that this scene took up the space of two days, the day on which it began with every appearance of danger and mischief, and the day on which it terminated without the mischiefs that threatened; and that it is to this peaceful termination that M. Bailly alludes, and to the arrival of the King at Paris. Not less than three hundred thousand persons arranged themselves in the procession from Versailles to Paris, and not an act of molestation was committed during the whole march.
During the later part of this confusion, the King and Queen were out in public on the balcony, and neither of them hid for safety, as Mr. Burke suggests. With matters settled and peace restored, a loud cheer erupted: Le Roi a Paris—Le Roi a Paris—The King to Paris. It was a shout for peace, and the King immediately embraced it. This action stopped any future plans to lure the King to Metz and oppose the constitution while quelling suspicions. The King and his family arrived in Paris that evening and were welcomed by M. Bailly, the Mayor of Paris, on behalf of the citizens. Mr. Burke, who mixes up things, people, and ideas throughout his book, also got the timing wrong in his comments about M. Bailly's speech. He criticizes M. Bailly for calling it "un bon jour," a good day. Mr. Burke should have clarified that this event took place over two days—the first day full of danger and trouble, and the second day ending without those issues; it’s this peaceful conclusion that M. Bailly referred to with the King’s arrival in Paris. Not fewer than three hundred thousand people took part in the procession from Versailles to Paris, and there was no unruly behavior during the entire march.
Mr. Burke on the authority of M. Lally Tollendal, a deserter from the National Assembly, says that on entering Paris, the people shouted "Tous les eveques a la lanterne." All Bishops to be hanged at the lanthorn or lamp-posts. It is surprising that nobody could hear this but Lally Tollendal, and that nobody should believe it but Mr. Burke. It has not the least connection with any part of the transaction, and is totally foreign to every circumstance of it. The Bishops had never been introduced before into any scene of Mr. Burke's drama: why then are they, all at once, and altogether, tout a coup, et tous ensemble, introduced now? Mr. Burke brings forward his Bishops and his lanthorn-like figures in a magic lanthorn, and raises his scenes by contrast instead of connection. But it serves to show, with the rest of his book what little credit ought to be given where even probability is set at defiance, for the purpose of defaming; and with this reflection, instead of a soliloquy in praise of chivalry, as Mr. Burke has done, I close the account of the expedition to Versailles.*4
Mr. Burke, citing M. Lally Tollendal, a defector from the National Assembly, claims that when entering Paris, the crowd shouted "All the bishops to the lamp-posts." It’s shocking that only Lally Tollendal heard this, and that only Mr. Burke believes it. This statement has no relevance to the events at hand and is completely unrelated. The bishops had never appeared in any part of Mr. Burke's narrative; so why are they suddenly introduced all at once? Mr. Burke presents his bishops and their lantern-like figures in a sort of magic lantern show, creating drama by contrast rather than connection. This illustrates how little credibility should be given where even basic logic is ignored for the sake of slander. Instead of a soliloquy praising chivalry, as Mr. Burke has done, I will conclude the account of the Versailles expedition.*4
I have now to follow Mr. Burke through a pathless wilderness of rhapsodies, and a sort of descant upon governments, in which he asserts whatever he pleases, on the presumption of its being believed, without offering either evidence or reasons for so doing.
I now have to navigate through Mr. Burke's aimless rants and his commentary on governments, where he makes claims he likes, expecting people to simply believe him, without providing any evidence or reasoning to support his views.
Before anything can be reasoned upon to a conclusion, certain facts, principles, or data, to reason from, must be established, admitted, or denied. Mr. Burke with his usual outrage, abused the Declaration of the Rights of Man, published by the National Assembly of France, as the basis on which the constitution of France is built. This he calls "paltry and blurred sheets of paper about the rights of man." Does Mr. Burke mean to deny that man has any rights? If he does, then he must mean that there are no such things as rights anywhere, and that he has none himself; for who is there in the world but man? But if Mr. Burke means to admit that man has rights, the question then will be: What are those rights, and how man came by them originally?
Before we can reason to a conclusion, we need to establish, accept, or reject certain facts, principles, or data to reason from. Mr. Burke, in his usual fashion, criticized the Declaration of the Rights of Man published by the National Assembly of France, claiming it serves as the foundation for the French constitution. He describes it as "insignificant and vague pieces of paper about human rights." Does Mr. Burke really intend to suggest that humans have no rights? If that's the case, then he must imply that rights don't exist anywhere, and that he has none himself; after all, who exists in the world except for humans? But if Mr. Burke acknowledges that humans have rights, then the next question arises: What are those rights, and how did humans come to possess them in the first place?
The error of those who reason by precedents drawn from antiquity, respecting the rights of man, is that they do not go far enough into antiquity. They do not go the whole way. They stop in some of the intermediate stages of an hundred or a thousand years, and produce what was then done, as a rule for the present day. This is no authority at all. If we travel still farther into antiquity, we shall find a direct contrary opinion and practice prevailing; and if antiquity is to be authority, a thousand such authorities may be produced, successively contradicting each other; but if we proceed on, we shall at last come out right; we shall come to the time when man came from the hand of his Maker. What was he then? Man. Man was his high and only title, and a higher cannot be given him. But of titles I shall speak hereafter.
The mistake of those who use examples from the past to reason about human rights is that they don’t go back far enough. They only look at certain periods from a hundred or a thousand years ago and suggest what was accepted then as a guideline for today. This isn’t valid. If we dig deeper into the past, we’ll discover entirely different beliefs and practices that were common. If we accept the past as an authority, we can find countless examples that contradict each other; but if we keep looking back, we will eventually reach the point when man was first created by his Maker. At that moment, what was he? Man. That was his only title, and there can't be a higher one. But I'll discuss titles later.
We are now got at the origin of man, and at the origin of his rights. As to the manner in which the world has been governed from that day to this, it is no farther any concern of ours than to make a proper use of the errors or the improvements which the history of it presents. Those who lived an hundred or a thousand years ago, were then moderns, as we are now. They had their ancients, and those ancients had others, and we also shall be ancients in our turn. If the mere name of antiquity is to govern in the affairs of life, the people who are to live an hundred or a thousand years hence, may as well take us for a precedent, as we make a precedent of those who lived an hundred or a thousand years ago. The fact is, that portions of antiquity, by proving everything, establish nothing. It is authority against authority all the way, till we come to the divine origin of the rights of man at the creation. Here our enquiries find a resting-place, and our reason finds a home. If a dispute about the rights of man had arisen at the distance of an hundred years from the creation, it is to this source of authority they must have referred, and it is to this same source of authority that we must now refer.
We are now at the beginning of humanity and the start of our rights. As for how the world has been governed from that time until now, it’s no longer our concern except to make good use of the mistakes or improvements that history shows us. Those who lived a hundred or a thousand years ago were modern to their time, just as we are now. They had their own ancients, and those ancients had others, and we too will become ancients in our time. If simply being called ancient is what matters in life, then the people who will live a hundred or a thousand years from now might as well look to us as a model, just as we do for those who lived a hundred or a thousand years ago. The truth is, aspects of the past, by proving everything, establish nothing. It’s authority against authority all the way until we reach the divine origin of human rights at creation. Here, our inquiries find a resting spot, and our reason finds a home. If a debate about human rights had arisen a hundred years after creation, it would have been to this source of authority they would have turned, and it is to this same source of authority that we must now turn.
Though I mean not to touch upon any sectarian principle of religion, yet it may be worth observing, that the genealogy of Christ is traced to Adam. Why then not trace the rights of man to the creation of man? I will answer the question. Because there have been upstart governments, thrusting themselves between, and presumptuously working to un-make man.
Though I'm not trying to discuss any specific religious beliefs, it's interesting to note that Christ's family tree goes back to Adam. So why not trace human rights back to the creation of humankind? I'll answer that. It's because there have been emerging governments that insert themselves in between and arrogantly attempt to redefine what it means to be human.
If any generation of men ever possessed the right of dictating the mode by which the world should be governed for ever, it was the first generation that existed; and if that generation did it not, no succeeding generation can show any authority for doing it, nor can set any up. The illuminating and divine principle of the equal rights of man (for it has its origin from the Maker of man) relates, not only to the living individuals, but to generations of men succeeding each other. Every generation is equal in rights to generations which preceded it, by the same rule that every individual is born equal in rights with his contemporary.
If any generation of people ever had the right to decide how the world should be governed forever, it was the first generation that ever lived. If that generation didn’t do it, no later generation can claim any authority to do so, nor can they establish any. The enlightening and fundamental principle of equal rights for all (which comes from the Creator of humanity) pertains not only to the living but also to future generations. Each generation has the same rights as those that came before it, just as every individual is born with equal rights as their peers.
Every history of the creation, and every traditionary account, whether from the lettered or unlettered world, however they may vary in their opinion or belief of certain particulars, all agree in establishing one point, the unity of man; by which I mean that men are all of one degree, and consequently that all men are born equal, and with equal natural right, in the same manner as if posterity had been continued by creation instead of generation, the latter being the only mode by which the former is carried forward; and consequently every child born into the world must be considered as deriving its existence from God. The world is as new to him as it was to the first man that existed, and his natural right in it is of the same kind.
Every history of creation and every traditional account, whether from educated or uneducated sources, despite their differences in specific beliefs or opinions, all agree on one essential point: the unity of humankind. This means that all people are of the same status, and therefore, all individuals are born equal and possess equal natural rights, just as if humanity had been continued through divine creation instead of through human reproduction, which is the only way to pass on existence. Consequently, every child born into the world should be viewed as receiving their existence from God. The world is as new to them as it was to the very first human, and their natural rights in it are fundamentally the same.
The Mosaic account of the creation, whether taken as divine authority or merely historical, is full to this point, the unity or equality of man. The expression admits of no controversy. "And God said, Let us make man in our own image. In the image of God created he him; male and female created he them." The distinction of sexes is pointed out, but no other distinction is even implied. If this be not divine authority, it is at least historical authority, and shows that the equality of man, so far from being a modern doctrine, is the oldest upon record.
The Mosaic account of creation, whether viewed as divine truth or just historical fact, emphasizes the unity and equality of humanity. This idea is clear and indisputable. "And God said, Let us make man in our own image. In the image of God, he created him; male and female, he created them." The distinction between the sexes is mentioned, but no other distinctions are suggested. Even if this isn't considered divine authority, it at least holds historical significance, indicating that the concept of human equality, far from being a contemporary idea, is actually one of the oldest recorded beliefs.
It is also to be observed that all the religions known in the world are founded, so far as they relate to man, on the unity of man, as being all of one degree. Whether in heaven or in hell, or in whatever state man may be supposed to exist hereafter, the good and the bad are the only distinctions. Nay, even the laws of governments are obliged to slide into this principle, by making degrees to consist in crimes and not in persons.
It should also be noted that all the religions known in the world are based, as far as they pertain to humanity, on the idea of the unity of man, as everyone is considered equal. Whether in heaven or hell, or in any state that man might be thought to exist in after this life, the only distinctions are between the good and the bad. In fact, even the laws of governments have to align with this principle by categorizing degrees based on crimes rather than on individuals.
It is one of the greatest of all truths, and of the highest advantage to cultivate. By considering man in this light, and by instructing him to consider himself in this light, it places him in a close connection with all his duties, whether to his Creator or to the creation, of which he is a part; and it is only when he forgets his origin, or, to use a more fashionable phrase, his birth and family, that he becomes dissolute. It is not among the least of the evils of the present existing governments in all parts of Europe that man, considered as man, is thrown back to a vast distance from his Maker, and the artificial chasm filled up with a succession of barriers, or sort of turnpike gates, through which he has to pass. I will quote Mr. Burke's catalogue of barriers that he has set up between man and his Maker. Putting himself in the character of a herald, he says: "We fear God—we look with awe to kings—with affection to Parliaments with duty to magistrates—with reverence to priests, and with respect to nobility." Mr. Burke has forgotten to put in "'chivalry." He has also forgotten to put in Peter.
It’s one of the greatest truths and really beneficial to embrace. By viewing humanity this way and teaching individuals to see themselves this way, it connects them closely to all their responsibilities, whether to their Creator or to the creation of which they are a part. It’s only when they forget their origins, or to use a more modern term, their heritage and family, that they become corrupt. One of the major issues with the current governments across Europe is that people, considered as individuals, are pushed far away from their Maker, with an artificial gap filled with barriers or toll booths they have to navigate. I’ll quote Mr. Burke’s list of barriers he believes are between people and their Maker. Taking on the role of a herald, he says: “We fear God—we look up to kings with reverence—feel affection for Parliaments—owe duty to magistrates—show respect to priests, and hold nobility in esteem.” Mr. Burke forgot to mention "chivalry." He also forgot to include Peter.
The duty of man is not a wilderness of turnpike gates, through which he is to pass by tickets from one to the other. It is plain and simple, and consists but of two points. His duty to God, which every man must feel; and with respect to his neighbor, to do as he would be done by. If those to whom power is delegated do well, they will be respected: if not, they will be despised; and with regard to those to whom no power is delegated, but who assume it, the rational world can know nothing of them.
The duty of a person isn't just a series of toll booths where you have to pay your way from one to the next. It’s pretty straightforward and comes down to two main points. First, it's your responsibility to God, which everyone should recognize; second, when it comes to others, you should treat them the way you want to be treated. If those in power do a good job, they will earn respect; if they don’t, they'll be looked down upon. As for those who take on power without being given it, the sensible world has nothing to say about them.
Hitherto we have spoken only (and that but in part) of the natural rights of man. We have now to consider the civil rights of man, and to show how the one originates from the other. Man did not enter into society to become worse than he was before, nor to have fewer rights than he had before, but to have those rights better secured. His natural rights are the foundation of all his civil rights. But in order to pursue this distinction with more precision, it will be necessary to mark the different qualities of natural and civil rights.
Until now, we have only discussed (and only in part) the natural rights of individuals. Now we need to look at the civil rights of individuals and explain how one comes from the other. People didn’t join society to become worse off than they were before or to have fewer rights; they did it to have their rights better protected. Their natural rights form the basis of all their civil rights. To clarify this distinction further, we need to highlight the different characteristics of natural and civil rights.
A few words will explain this. Natural rights are those which appertain to man in right of his existence. Of this kind are all the intellectual rights, or rights of the mind, and also all those rights of acting as an individual for his own comfort and happiness, which are not injurious to the natural rights of others. Civil rights are those which appertain to man in right of his being a member of society. Every civil right has for its foundation some natural right pre-existing in the individual, but to the enjoyment of which his individual power is not, in all cases, sufficiently competent. Of this kind are all those which relate to security and protection.
A few words will clarify this. Natural rights are those that belong to everyone simply because they exist. This includes all intellectual rights, or rights of the mind, as well as the rights to act as an individual for one's own comfort and happiness, as long as these actions do not harm the natural rights of others. Civil rights are those that belong to a person as a member of society. Each civil right is based on some natural right that already exists in the individual, but sometimes the individual may not have enough power to fully enjoy that right. This includes rights related to security and protection.
From this short review it will be easy to distinguish between that class of natural rights which man retains after entering into society and those which he throws into the common stock as a member of society.
From this brief overview, it will be straightforward to differentiate between the natural rights that individuals keep after joining society and those they contribute to the collective as members of society.
The natural rights which he retains are all those in which the Power to execute is as perfect in the individual as the right itself. Among this class, as is before mentioned, are all the intellectual rights, or rights of the mind; consequently religion is one of those rights. The natural rights which are not retained, are all those in which, though the right is perfect in the individual, the power to execute them is defective. They answer not his purpose. A man, by natural right, has a right to judge in his own cause; and so far as the right of the mind is concerned, he never surrenders it. But what availeth it him to judge, if he has not power to redress? He therefore deposits this right in the common stock of society, and takes the ann of society, of which he is a part, in preference and in addition to his own. Society grants him nothing. Every man is a proprietor in society, and draws on the capital as a matter of right.
The natural rights he keeps are those where he has as much power to act on them as the right itself. This includes all intellectual rights, or rights of the mind; thus, religion is one of those rights. The natural rights he doesn’t keep are those where, although the right exists, his ability to act on them is lacking. They don't serve his purpose. A person has a natural right to judge his own case, and regarding the rights of the mind, he never gives that up. But what's the use of judging if he can’t do anything about it? So, he puts this right into the common pool of society and takes what society provides him, which adds to his own. Society doesn’t grant him anything. Every individual is a stakeholder in society and has the right to draw from its resources.
From these premisses two or three certain conclusions will follow:
From these premises, two or three definite conclusions will follow:
First, That every civil right grows out of a natural right; or, in other words, is a natural right exchanged.
First, every civil right comes from a natural right; in other words, it’s a natural right that has been exchanged.
Secondly, That civil power properly considered as such is made up of the aggregate of that class of the natural rights of man, which becomes defective in the individual in point of power, and answers not his purpose, but when collected to a focus becomes competent to the Purpose of every one.
Secondly, civil power, when properly understood, consists of the combined natural rights of individuals that may be lacking in a single person regarding their ability and do not fulfill their needs; however, when gathered together, these rights become sufficient for the interests of everyone.
Thirdly, That the power produced from the aggregate of natural rights, imperfect in power in the individual, cannot be applied to invade the natural rights which are retained in the individual, and in which the power to execute is as perfect as the right itself.
Thirdly, the power generated from the combination of natural rights, which is flawed in the individual, cannot be used to violate the natural rights that remain with the individual, where the ability to act is as complete as the right itself.
We have now, in a few words, traced man from a natural individual to a member of society, and shown, or endeavoured to show, the quality of the natural rights retained, and of those which are exchanged for civil rights. Let us now apply these principles to governments.
We have now, in a few words, followed the journey of a person from being a natural individual to becoming part of society, and we've shown, or at least tried to show, the nature of the natural rights they keep, and those they give up for civil rights. Let’s now apply these principles to governments.
In casting our eyes over the world, it is extremely easy to distinguish the governments which have arisen out of society, or out of the social compact, from those which have not; but to place this in a clearer light than what a single glance may afford, it will be proper to take a review of the several sources from which governments have arisen and on which they have been founded.
In looking at the world, it's really easy to tell the governments that have come from society or from a social agreement from those that haven’t. However, to clarify this more than what a quick glance can show, it makes sense to review the different sources from which governments have emerged and on which they have been built.
They may be all comprehended under three heads.
They can all be grouped into three categories.
First, Superstition.
First, Belief in the supernatural.
Secondly, Power.
Secondly, Power.
Thirdly, The common interest of society and the common rights of man.
Thirdly, the shared interests of society and the collective rights of individuals.
The first was a government of priestcraft, the second of conquerors, and the third of reason.
The first was a government run by priests, the second by conquerors, and the third by logic.
When a set of artful men pretended, through the medium of oracles, to hold intercourse with the Deity, as familiarly as they now march up the back-stairs in European courts, the world was completely under the government of superstition. The oracles were consulted, and whatever they were made to say became the law; and this sort of government lasted as long as this sort of superstition lasted.
When a group of clever men pretended, through oracles, to communicate with the Deity as casually as they now walk into the back rooms of European courts, the world was entirely ruled by superstition. The oracles were consulted, and whatever they were made to say became the law; and this kind of governance lasted as long as this kind of superstition lasted.
After these a race of conquerors arose, whose government, like that of William the Conqueror, was founded in power, and the sword assumed the name of a sceptre. Governments thus established last as long as the power to support them lasts; but that they might avail themselves of every engine in their favor, they united fraud to force, and set up an idol which they called Divine Right, and which, in imitation of the Pope, who affects to be spiritual and temporal, and in contradiction to the Founder of the Christian religion, twisted itself afterwards into an idol of another shape, called Church and State. The key of St. Peter and the key of the Treasury became quartered on one another, and the wondering cheated multitude worshipped the invention.
After this, a group of conquerors emerged, whose rule, like that of William the Conqueror, was based on power, with the sword taking on the title of a scepter. Governments like these last only as long as they have the strength to maintain them; however, to reinforce their position, they combined trickery with force and established an idol they called Divine Right. This concept, mimicking the Pope—who claims to hold both spiritual and political power—contradicted the teachings of the Founder of Christianity and later morphed into another idol called Church and State. The key of St. Peter and the key of the Treasury became intertwined, and the astonished deceived masses worshipped this creation.
When I contemplate the natural dignity of man, when I feel (for Nature has not been kind enough to me to blunt my feelings) for the honour and happiness of its character, I become irritated at the attempt to govern mankind by force and fraud, as if they were all knaves and fools, and can scarcely avoid disgust at those who are thus imposed upon.
When I think about the inherent dignity of people, and when I genuinely feel (since Nature hasn't dulled my emotions) for the honor and happiness of their character, I get frustrated by the effort to control humanity through force and deceit, as if everyone were a trickster or an idiot, and I can barely hold back my disgust for those who are taken in by such tactics.
We have now to review the governments which arise out of society, in contradistinction to those which arose out of superstition and conquest.
We now need to look at the governments that come from society, as opposed to those that grew out of superstition and conquest.
It has been thought a considerable advance towards establishing the principles of Freedom to say that Government is a compact between those who govern and those who are governed; but this cannot be true, because it is putting the effect before the cause; for as man must have existed before governments existed, there necessarily was a time when governments did not exist, and consequently there could originally exist no governors to form such a compact with.
It has been regarded as a significant step toward defining the principles of Freedom to say that government is an agreement between those in power and those being governed; however, this can't be accurate because it places the result before the reason. Since humans must have existed before governments came into being, there was inevitably a time when governments didn't exist, and therefore, there couldn't have been any leaders to create such an agreement with.
The fact therefore must be that the individuals themselves, each in his own personal and sovereign right, entered into a compact with each other to produce a government: and this is the only mode in which governments have a right to arise, and the only principle on which they have a right to exist.
The fact is that each person, in their own individual and independent capacity, came together to form an agreement to create a government: and this is the only way governments can justly come into being, and the only principle that justifies their existence.
To possess ourselves of a clear idea of what government is, or ought to be, we must trace it to its origin. In doing this we shall easily discover that governments must have arisen either out of the people or over the people. Mr. Burke has made no distinction. He investigates nothing to its source, and therefore he confounds everything; but he has signified his intention of undertaking, at some future opportunity, a comparison between the constitution of England and France. As he thus renders it a subject of controversy by throwing the gauntlet, I take him upon his own ground. It is in high challenges that high truths have the right of appearing; and I accept it with the more readiness because it affords me, at the same time, an opportunity of pursuing the subject with respect to governments arising out of society.
To understand clearly what government is or should be, we need to look at its origins. By doing this, we can easily see that governments must have come either from the people or been imposed over them. Mr. Burke makes no distinction. He doesn’t trace anything back to its source and, as a result, gets everything mixed up; however, he has indicated that he plans to compare the constitutions of England and France in the future. By making this a topic of debate, I will take him up on his challenge. Significant challenges allow significant truths to emerge, and I’m eager to engage with this, as it also gives me a chance to explore the topic of governments that come from society.
But it will be first necessary to define what is meant by a Constitution. It is not sufficient that we adopt the word; we must fix also a standard signification to it.
But first, we need to define what we mean by a Constitution. It’s not enough to just use the word; we also need to establish a clear definition for it.
A constitution is not a thing in name only, but in fact. It has not an ideal, but a real existence; and wherever it cannot be produced in a visible form, there is none. A constitution is a thing antecedent to a government, and a government is only the creature of a constitution. The constitution of a country is not the act of its government, but of the people constituting its government. It is the body of elements, to which you can refer, and quote article by article; and which contains the principles on which the government shall be established, the manner in which it shall be organised, the powers it shall have, the mode of elections, the duration of Parliaments, or by what other name such bodies may be called; the powers which the executive part of the government shall have; and in fine, everything that relates to the complete organisation of a civil government, and the principles on which it shall act, and by which it shall be bound. A constitution, therefore, is to a government what the laws made afterwards by that government are to a court of judicature. The court of judicature does not make the laws, neither can it alter them; it only acts in conformity to the laws made: and the government is in like manner governed by the constitution.
A constitution isn't just a name; it's a real thing. It doesn't just exist as an idea; it has tangible existence. If it can't be presented in a visible form, then it doesn't exist at all. A constitution comes before a government, and a government is simply an entity created by the constitution. The constitution of a country isn't created by its government, but by the people who make up that government. It consists of elements you can refer to and quote, article by article. It contains the principles for how the government is to be established, how it should be organized, the powers it will have, how elections will be conducted, the term lengths for Parliaments, or whatever name such bodies may go by; it outlines the powers of the executive branch; and ultimately, it covers everything related to the complete organization of a civil government, the principles it will follow, and the rules it must adhere to. Thus, a constitution is to a government what the laws made later by that government are to a court. A court doesn't create the laws nor can it change them; it only operates according to the established laws. Similarly, the government is bound by the constitution.
Can, then, Mr. Burke produce the English Constitution? If he cannot, we may fairly conclude that though it has been so much talked about, no such thing as a constitution exists, or ever did exist, and consequently that the people have yet a constitution to form.
Can Mr. Burke produce the English Constitution? If he can't, we can reasonably conclude that although it has been discussed a lot, no such thing as a constitution exists or ever has existed, and therefore the people still have a constitution to create.
Mr. Burke will not, I presume, deny the position I have already advanced—namely, that governments arise either out of the people or over the people. The English Government is one of those which arose out of a conquest, and not out of society, and consequently it arose over the people; and though it has been much modified from the opportunity of circumstances since the time of William the Conqueror, the country has never yet regenerated itself, and is therefore without a constitution.
Mr. Burke, I assume, won’t deny the argument I’ve already made—that governments come either from the people or imposed on the people. The English government is one that emerged from a conquest, not from society, so it’s imposed over the people; and even though it has changed a lot due to circumstances since the time of William the Conqueror, the country still hasn’t rebuilt itself and therefore lacks a constitution.
I readily perceive the reason why Mr. Burke declined going into the comparison between the English and French constitutions, because he could not but perceive, when he sat down to the task, that no such a thing as a constitution existed on his side the question. His book is certainly bulky enough to have contained all he could say on this subject, and it would have been the best manner in which people could have judged of their separate merits. Why then has he declined the only thing that was worth while to write upon? It was the strongest ground he could take, if the advantages were on his side, but the weakest if they were not; and his declining to take it is either a sign that he could not possess it or could not maintain it.
I easily understand why Mr. Burke chose not to compare the English and French constitutions. He must have realized, when he sat down to write, that there wasn't really a constitution on his side of the argument. His book is certainly long enough to cover everything he could say on this topic, and it would have provided the best way for people to evaluate their individual merits. So why did he avoid the one topic worth discussing? It would have been the strongest position if the advantages favored him, but the weakest if they didn't; his decision not to address it suggests that either he didn't have a strong argument or he couldn't defend it.
Mr. Burke said, in a speech last winter in Parliament, "that when the National Assembly first met in three Orders (the Tiers Etat, the Clergy, and the Noblesse), France had then a good constitution." This shows, among numerous other instances, that Mr. Burke does not understand what a constitution is. The persons so met were not a constitution, but a convention, to make a constitution.
Mr. Burke said in a speech last winter in Parliament, "that when the National Assembly first met in three Orders (the Third Estate, the Clergy, and the Nobility), France had a good constitution." This illustrates, among many other examples, that Mr. Burke doesn’t grasp what a constitution is. The people who met were not a constitution, but a convention to create one.
The present National Assembly of France is, strictly speaking, the personal social compact. The members of it are the delegates of the nation in its original character; future assemblies will be the delegates of the nation in its organised character. The authority of the present Assembly is different from what the authority of future Assemblies will be. The authority of the present one is to form a constitution; the authority of future assemblies will be to legislate according to the principles and forms prescribed in that constitution; and if experience should hereafter show that alterations, amendments, or additions are necessary, the constitution will point out the mode by which such things shall be done, and not leave it to the discretionary power of the future government.
The current National Assembly of France is essentially a personal social contract. Its members are the delegates of the nation in its original form; future assemblies will represent the nation in its organized form. The authority of the current Assembly is different from what future Assemblies will have. The current Assembly's authority is to create a constitution; future assemblies will have the authority to legislate according to the principles and procedures outlined in that constitution. If experience shows that changes, amendments, or additions are needed later on, the constitution will specify how to make those changes instead of leaving it up to the future government’s discretion.
A government on the principles on which constitutional governments arising out of society are established, cannot have the right of altering itself. If it had, it would be arbitrary. It might make itself what it pleased; and wherever such a right is set up, it shows there is no constitution. The act by which the English Parliament empowered itself to sit seven years, shows there is no constitution in England. It might, by the same self-authority, have sat any great number of years, or for life. The bill which the present Mr. Pitt brought into Parliament some years ago, to reform Parliament, was on the same erroneous principle. The right of reform is in the nation in its original character, and the constitutional method would be by a general convention elected for the purpose. There is, moreover, a paradox in the idea of vitiated bodies reforming themselves.
A government based on the principles that constitutional governments formed within society are founded upon cannot have the right to change itself. If it did, it would be arbitrary. It could turn itself into whatever it wanted; and wherever such a right exists, it indicates that there is no constitution. The decision by the English Parliament to give itself the authority to sit for seven years shows that there is no constitution in England. By that same self-granted authority, it could have remained in session for any number of years or even for life. The bill that the current Mr. Pitt introduced in Parliament a few years ago, aiming to reform Parliament, was based on the same flawed principle. The right to reform belongs to the nation in its original form, and the proper constitutional method would be through a general convention elected specifically for that purpose. Additionally, there’s a contradiction in the notion of corrupt bodies fixing themselves.
From these preliminaries I proceed to draw some comparisons. I have already spoken of the declaration of rights; and as I mean to be as concise as possible, I shall proceed to other parts of the French Constitution.
From these introductory points, I will now make some comparisons. I have already mentioned the declaration of rights, and since I want to be as brief as possible, I will move on to other sections of the French Constitution.
The constitution of France says that every man who pays a tax of sixty sous per annum (2s. 6d. English) is an elector. What article will Mr. Burke place against this? Can anything be more limited, and at the same time more capricious, than the qualification of electors is in England? Limited—because not one man in an hundred (I speak much within compass) is admitted to vote. Capricious—because the lowest character that can be supposed to exist, and who has not so much as the visible means of an honest livelihood, is an elector in some places: while in other places, the man who pays very large taxes, and has a known fair character, and the farmer who rents to the amount of three or four hundred pounds a year, with a property on that farm to three or four times that amount, is not admitted to be an elector. Everything is out of nature, as Mr. Burke says on another occasion, in this strange chaos, and all sorts of follies are blended with all sorts of crimes. William the Conqueror and his descendants parcelled out the country in this manner, and bribed some parts of it by what they call charters to hold the other parts of it the better subjected to their will. This is the reason why so many of those charters abound in Cornwall; the people were averse to the Government established at the Conquest, and the towns were garrisoned and bribed to enslave the country. All the old charters are the badges of this conquest, and it is from this source that the capriciousness of election arises.
The constitution of France states that anyone who pays a tax of sixty sous a year (2s. 6d. in English money) is eligible to vote. What argument will Mr. Burke come up with against this? Can anything be as restricted and, at the same time, as random as the criteria for voters in England? Restricted—because hardly one in a hundred (and I'm being generous) is allowed to vote. Random—because the lowest type of individual, someone without even the visible means to make an honest living, can be a voter in some places. Meanwhile, in other areas, a person who pays substantial taxes, has a good reputation, and a farmer renting for three or four hundred pounds a year, who also has property worth three or four times that amount, isn't allowed to vote. Everything is out of whack, as Mr. Burke noted at another time, in this bizarre mess, where various absurdities are mixed with various offenses. William the Conqueror and his heirs divided the land this way, bribing some areas with what they called charters to keep the others more firmly under their control. This is why so many of those charters are found in Cornwall; the people opposed the government set up after the Conquest, and the towns were fortified and bribed to subjugate the population. All the old charters are symbols of this conquest, and it is from this that the randomness of elections stemmed.
The French Constitution says that the number of representatives for any place shall be in a ratio to the number of taxable inhabitants or electors. What article will Mr. Burke place against this? The county of York, which contains nearly a million of souls, sends two county members; and so does the county of Rutland, which contains not an hundredth part of that number. The old town of Sarum, which contains not three houses, sends two members; and the town of Manchester, which contains upward of sixty thousand souls, is not admitted to send any. Is there any principle in these things? It is admitted that all this is altered, but there is much to be done yet, before we have a fair representation of the people. Is there anything by which you can trace the marks of freedom, or discover those of wisdom? No wonder then Mr. Burke has declined the comparison, and endeavored to lead his readers from the point by a wild, unsystematical display of paradoxical rhapsodies.
The French Constitution states that the number of representatives for any area should be proportional to the number of taxable residents or voters. What article will Mr. Burke use to counter this? The county of York, which has nearly a million people, sends two county representatives; the county of Rutland, which has less than one hundredth of that population, also sends two. The old town of Sarum, which has no more than three houses, sends two members; yet the town of Manchester, with over sixty thousand people, is not allowed to send any representatives. Is there any logic to this? It's acknowledged that this system has changed, but there's still a lot more to do before we achieve fair representation of the people. Is there any way to identify signs of freedom or gain insights into wisdom? No wonder Mr. Burke has avoided the comparison and tried to divert his readers with a chaotic and disorganized mix of contradictory nonsense.
The French Constitution says that the National Assembly shall be elected every two years. What article will Mr. Burke place against this? Why, that the nation has no right at all in the case; that the government is perfectly arbitrary with respect to this point; and he can quote for his authority the precedent of a former Parliament.
The French Constitution states that the National Assembly will be elected every two years. What article will Mr. Burke counter this with? He will argue that the nation has no say in this matter; that the government has complete authority regarding this issue; and he can reference the example of a previous Parliament as his justification.
The French Constitution says there shall be no game laws, that the farmer on whose lands wild game shall be found (for it is by the produce of his lands they are fed) shall have a right to what he can take; that there shall be no monopolies of any kind—that all trades shall be free and every man free to follow any occupation by which he can procure an honest livelihood, and in any place, town, or city throughout the nation. What will Mr. Burke say to this? In England, game is made the property of those at whose expense it is not fed; and with respect to monopolies, the country is cut up into monopolies. Every chartered town is an aristocratical monopoly in itself, and the qualification of electors proceeds out of those chartered monopolies. Is this freedom? Is this what Mr. Burke means by a constitution?
The French Constitution states that there will be no game laws, and that the farmer whose land is home to wild game (since it's the produce of his land that feeds them) has the right to whatever he can catch. It also declares there will be no monopolies of any kind—every trade will be free, and every person is free to pursue any occupation that allows them to make an honest living, in any place, town, or city across the nation. What will Mr. Burke say about this? In England, game is owned by those who don’t even contribute to its nourishment; and when it comes to monopolies, the country is divided into them. Each chartered town is an aristocratic monopoly in itself, and the qualifications for electors come from those chartered monopolies. Is this freedom? Is this what Mr. Burke means by a constitution?
In these chartered monopolies, a man coming from another part of the country is hunted from them as if he were a foreign enemy. An Englishman is not free of his own country; every one of those places presents a barrier in his way, and tells him he is not a freeman—that he has no rights. Within these monopolies are other monopolies. In a city, such for instance as Bath, which contains between twenty and thirty thousand inhabitants, the right of electing representatives to Parliament is monopolised by about thirty-one persons. And within these monopolies are still others. A man even of the same town, whose parents were not in circumstances to give him an occupation, is debarred, in many cases, from the natural right of acquiring one, be his genius or industry what it may.
In these chartered monopolies, a person coming from another part of the country is treated like a foreign enemy. An Englishman isn’t free in his own country; each of those places stands as a barrier, telling him he’s not a real citizen—that he has no rights. Within these monopolies are even more monopolies. In a city like Bath, which has around twenty to thirty thousand residents, the right to elect representatives to Parliament is controlled by just about thirty-one people. And within these monopolies, there are still more. A person even from the same town, whose parents couldn’t afford to give him a job, is often denied the natural right to pursue one, regardless of his talent or hard work.
Are these things examples to hold out to a country regenerating itself from slavery, like France? Certainly they are not, and certain am I, that when the people of England come to reflect upon them they will, like France, annihilate those badges of ancient oppression, those traces of a conquered nation. Had Mr. Burke possessed talents similar to the author of "On the Wealth of Nations." he would have comprehended all the parts which enter into, and, by assemblage, form a constitution. He would have reasoned from minutiae to magnitude. It is not from his prejudices only, but from the disorderly cast of his genius, that he is unfitted for the subject he writes upon. Even his genius is without a constitution. It is a genius at random, and not a genius constituted. But he must say something. He has therefore mounted in the air like a balloon, to draw the eyes of the multitude from the ground they stand upon.
Are these things examples to showcase to a country rebuilding itself from slavery, like France? Definitely not, and I'm sure that when the people of England reflect on them, they will, like France, get rid of those symbols of ancient oppression, those remnants of a defeated nation. If Mr. Burke had talents similar to the author of "On the Wealth of Nations," he would have understood all the elements that come together to form a constitution. He would have reasoned from the small details to the bigger picture. It's not just his biases, but also the chaotic nature of his thinking, that makes him unfit for the subject he writes about. Even his intellect lacks a proper foundation. It's an intellect without direction, not a focused intellect. But he has to say something. Therefore, he has risen like a balloon, trying to distract the audience from the ground they stand on.
Much is to be learned from the French Constitution. Conquest and tyranny transplanted themselves with William the Conqueror from Normandy into England, and the country is yet disfigured with the marks. May, then, the example of all France contribute to regenerate the freedom which a province of it destroyed!
Much can be learned from the French Constitution. Conquest and tyranny were brought by William the Conqueror from Normandy to England, and the country still bears the scars. So, may the example of all France help to reclaim the freedom that a part of it took away!
The French Constitution says that to preserve the national representation from being corrupt, no member of the National Assembly shall be an officer of the government, a placeman or a pensioner. What will Mr. Burke place against this? I will whisper his answer: Loaves and Fishes. Ah! this government of loaves and fishes has more mischief in it than people have yet reflected on. The National Assembly has made the discovery, and it holds out the example to the world. Had governments agreed to quarrel on purpose to fleece their countries by taxes, they could not have succeeded better than they have done.
The French Constitution states that to keep national representation from being corrupted, no member of the National Assembly can be a government official, a political appointee, or a retiree receiving a pension. What will Mr. Burke argue against this? I'll share his response: "Loaves and Fishes." Ah! This government of "loaves and fishes" has more harmful effects than people realize. The National Assembly has recognized this and sets an example for the world. If governments had intentionally decided to fight to exploit their countries through taxes, they couldn't have done a better job than they have.
Everything in the English government appears to me the reverse of what it ought to be, and of what it is said to be. The Parliament, imperfectly and capriciously elected as it is, is nevertheless supposed to hold the national purse in trust for the nation; but in the manner in which an English Parliament is constructed it is like a man being both mortgagor and mortgagee, and in the case of misapplication of trust it is the criminal sitting in judgment upon himself. If those who vote the supplies are the same persons who receive the supplies when voted, and are to account for the expenditure of those supplies to those who voted them, it is themselves accountable to themselves, and the Comedy of Errors concludes with the pantomime of Hush. Neither the Ministerial party nor the Opposition will touch upon this case. The national purse is the common hack which each mounts upon. It is like what the country people call "Ride and tie—you ride a little way, and then I."*5 They order these things better in France.
Everything in the English government seems completely backward to me, and not at all how it's supposed to be. The Parliament, even though it's elected in a flawed and random way, is still expected to manage the nation's finances on behalf of the people. However, the way an English Parliament is set up is like a person being both the borrower and the lender; in cases of misusing that trust, it's like a criminal judging himself. If the people who decide on the funding are the same ones who get that funding, and they have to report back on how it's spent to those who gave it, it's just them being accountable to themselves, ending in the farce we call Hush. Neither the ruling party nor the Opposition will address this situation. The national finances are just a shared resource that everyone rides on. It's similar to what rural folks call "Ride and tie—you ride a little, then I ride."*5 They handle these things better in France.
The French Constitution says that the right of war and peace is in the nation. Where else should it reside but in those who are to pay the expense?
The French Constitution states that the authority to declare war and make peace belongs to the nation. Where else would it belong if not to those who have to bear the cost?
In England this right is said to reside in a metaphor shown at the Tower for sixpence or a shilling a piece: so are the lions; and it would be a step nearer to reason to say it resided in them, for any inanimate metaphor is no more than a hat or a cap. We can all see the absurdity of worshipping Aaron's molten calf, or Nebuchadnezzar's golden image; but why do men continue to practise themselves the absurdities they despise in others?
In England, this right is said to be represented by a metaphor displayed at the Tower for sixpence or a shilling each: the same goes for the lions; and it would make more sense to say it resided in them, since any inanimate metaphor is just as meaningless as a hat or a cap. We can all recognize the ridiculousness of worshipping Aaron’s golden calf or Nebuchadnezzar’s golden statue; but why do people keep engaging in the absurdities they criticize in others?
It may with reason be said that in the manner the English nation is represented it signifies not where the right resides, whether in the Crown or in the Parliament. War is the common harvest of all those who participate in the division and expenditure of public money, in all countries. It is the art of conquering at home; the object of it is an increase of revenue; and as revenue cannot be increased without taxes, a pretence must be made for expenditure. In reviewing the history of the English Government, its wars and its taxes, a bystander, not blinded by prejudice nor warped by interest, would declare that taxes were not raised to carry on wars, but that wars were raised to carry on taxes.
It can reasonably be said that the way the English nation is represented shows it doesn’t matter where the real power lies, whether with the Crown or Parliament. War is the common outcome for everyone involved in the division and spending of public money, in all countries. It’s a way to gain power at home; the goal is to increase revenue, and since revenue can’t grow without taxes, a justification for spending has to be created. Looking at the history of the English Government, its wars, and its taxes, an unbiased observer would conclude that taxes weren’t raised to fund wars, but rather wars were initiated to justify taxes.
Mr. Burke, as a member of the House of Commons, is a part of the English Government; and though he professes himself an enemy to war, he abuses the French Constitution, which seeks to explode it. He holds up the English Government as a model, in all its parts, to France; but he should first know the remarks which the French make upon it. They contend in favor of their own, that the portion of liberty enjoyed in England is just enough to enslave a country more productively than by despotism, and that as the real object of all despotism is revenue, a government so formed obtains more than it could do either by direct despotism, or in a full state of freedom, and is, therefore on the ground of interest, opposed to both. They account also for the readiness which always appears in such governments for engaging in wars by remarking on the different motives which produced them. In despotic governments wars are the effect of pride; but in those governments in which they become the means of taxation, they acquire thereby a more permanent promptitude.
Mr. Burke, as a member of the House of Commons, is part of the English Government; and although he claims to be against war, he criticizes the French Constitution, which aims to eliminate it. He presents the English Government as a model for France in all its aspects, but he should first understand the opinions that the French have about it. They argue in favor of their own system, saying that the level of freedom experienced in England is just enough to subjugate a country more effectively than outright tyranny, and that since the ultimate goal of all tyranny is revenue, a government like this actually collects more than it could through direct tyranny or complete freedom, and is therefore, from a self-interest perspective, opposed to both. They also explain the eagerness that such governments show for engaging in wars by pointing out the different motivations behind them. In tyrannical governments, wars stem from pride; however, in those governments where wars serve as a means of taxation, they become more consistently readily available.
The French Constitution, therefore, to provide against both these evils, has taken away the power of declaring war from kings and ministers, and placed the right where the expense must fall.
The French Constitution, therefore, to guard against both these issues, has removed the authority to declare war from kings and ministers, and transferred the right to where the costs of war must be borne.
When the question of the right of war and peace was agitating in the National Assembly, the people of England appeared to be much interested in the event, and highly to applaud the decision. As a principle it applies as much to one country as another. William the Conqueror, as a conqueror, held this power of war and peace in himself, and his descendants have ever since claimed it under him as a right.
When the issue of the right to go to war or make peace was being debated in the National Assembly, the people of England seemed very interested in the outcome and greatly approved of the decision. This principle applies equally to all countries. William the Conqueror, as a conqueror, had this power over war and peace, and his descendants have since claimed it as their right.
Although Mr. Burke has asserted the right of the Parliament at the Revolution to bind and control the nation and posterity for ever, he denies at the same time that the Parliament or the nation had any right to alter what he calls the succession of the crown in anything but in part, or by a sort of modification. By his taking this ground he throws the case back to the Norman Conquest, and by thus running a line of succession springing from William the Conqueror to the present day, he makes it necessary to enquire who and what William the Conqueror was, and where he came from, and into the origin, history and nature of what are called prerogatives. Everything must have had a beginning, and the fog of time and antiquity should be penetrated to discover it. Let, then, Mr. Burke bring forward his William of Normandy, for it is to this origin that his argument goes. It also unfortunately happens, in running this line of succession, that another line parallel thereto presents itself, which is that if the succession runs in the line of the conquest, the nation runs in the line of being conquered, and it ought to rescue itself from this reproach.
Although Mr. Burke has claimed that the Parliament at the time of the Revolution had the authority to bind and control the nation and future generations forever, he simultaneously argues that neither the Parliament nor the nation had any right to change what he refers to as the succession of the crown except in part or through some modification. By taking this stance, he traces the issue back to the Norman Conquest, and by establishing a line of succession from William the Conqueror to the present day, he makes it necessary to investigate who William the Conqueror was, where he came from, and the origin, history, and nature of what are known as prerogatives. Everything must have had a beginning, and we need to cut through the mists of time and history to uncover it. So, let Mr. Burke present his William of Normandy, as it is to this origin that his argument refers. It also unfortunately arises that in tracing this line of succession, another parallel line emerges: if the succession follows the line of conquest, then the nation follows the line of being conquered, and it needs to free itself from this stigma.
But it will perhaps be said that though the power of declaring war descends in the heritage of the conquest, it is held in check by the right of Parliament to withhold the supplies. It will always happen when a thing is originally wrong that amendments do not make it right, and it often happens that they do as much mischief one way as good the other, and such is the case here, for if the one rashly declares war as a matter of right, and the other peremptorily withholds the supplies as a matter of right, the remedy becomes as bad, or worse, than the disease. The one forces the nation to a combat, and the other ties its hands; but the more probable issue is that the contest will end in a collusion between the parties, and be made a screen to both.
But some might argue that while the power to declare war comes from conquest, it’s checked by Parliament's right to deny funding. When something is fundamentally wrong, no amount of changes will make it right, and often those changes can cause just as much harm as good. This situation is a prime example; if one side recklessly declares war as their right, and the other side stubbornly refuses to provide funds as their right, the solution can be just as bad, if not worse, than the original problem. One side pushes the nation into conflict, while the other ties its hands; however, it’s more likely that this struggle will end in a secret agreement between the two sides, acting as a cover for both.
On this question of war, three things are to be considered. First, the right of declaring it: secondly, the expense of supporting it: thirdly, the mode of conducting it after it is declared. The French Constitution places the right where the expense must fall, and this union can only be in the nation. The mode of conducting it after it is declared, it consigns to the executive department. Were this the case in all countries, we should hear but little more of wars.
On the issue of war, three things need to be considered. First, who has the authority to declare it; second, the cost of supporting it; and third, how it is managed once it has been declared. The French Constitution assigns the right to declare war to the nation, where the financial responsibility lies. It leaves the management of the war after it's declared to the executive branch. If this were true in all countries, we would probably hear a lot less about wars.
Before I proceed to consider other parts of the French Constitution, and by way of relieving the fatigue of argument, I will introduce an anecdote which I had from Dr. Franklin.
Before I move on to discuss other parts of the French Constitution, and to lighten the burden of argument, I’ll share a story I heard from Dr. Franklin.
While the Doctor resided in France as Minister from America, during the war, he had numerous proposals made to him by projectors of every country and of every kind, who wished to go to the land that floweth with milk and honey, America; and among the rest, there was one who offered himself to be king. He introduced his proposal to the Doctor by letter, which is now in the hands of M. Beaumarchais, of Paris—stating, first, that as the Americans had dismissed or sent away*6 their King, that they would want another. Secondly, that himself was a Norman. Thirdly, that he was of a more ancient family than the Dukes of Normandy, and of a more honorable descent, his line having never been bastardised. Fourthly, that there was already a precedent in England of kings coming out of Normandy, and on these grounds he rested his offer, enjoining that the Doctor would forward it to America. But as the Doctor neither did this, nor yet sent him an answer, the projector wrote a second letter, in which he did not, it is true, threaten to go over and conquer America, but only with great dignity proposed that if his offer was not accepted, an acknowledgment of about L30,000 might be made to him for his generosity! Now, as all arguments respecting succession must necessarily connect that succession with some beginning, Mr. Burke's arguments on this subject go to show that there is no English origin of kings, and that they are descendants of the Norman line in right of the Conquest. It may, therefore, be of service to his doctrine to make this story known, and to inform him, that in case of that natural extinction to which all mortality is subject, Kings may again be had from Normandy, on more reasonable terms than William the Conqueror; and consequently, that the good people of England, at the revolution of 1688, might have done much better, had such a generous Norman as this known their wants, and they had known his. The chivalric character which Mr. Burke so much admires, is certainly much easier to make a bargain with than a hard dealing Dutchman. But to return to the matters of the constitution: The French Constitution says, There shall be no titles; and, of consequence, all that class of equivocal generation which in some countries is called "aristocracy" and in others "nobility," is done away, and the peer is exalted into the Man.
While the Doctor was in France as a Minister from America during the war, he received many proposals from people from all over the world who wanted to move to America, the land flowing with milk and honey. Among these was one who offered to be king. He sent his proposal to the Doctor in a letter, now with M. Beaumarchais in Paris, stating first that since the Americans had dismissed their King, they would need another. Second, he claimed to be a Norman. Third, he asserted that he came from a more ancient and honorable family than the Dukes of Normandy, saying his lineage had never been illegitimate. Fourth, he pointed out that there was a precedent in England for kings coming from Normandy and based on these points, he urged the Doctor to pass his offer along to America. When the Doctor didn’t do this or respond to him, the projector wrote a second letter, where he did not threaten to conquer America, but instead, with great dignity, suggested that if his offer was rejected, a payment of about £30,000 might be made to him for his generosity! Since all arguments about succession must connect it with some origin, Mr. Burke argues that there is no English origin for kings, and that they descend from the Norman line due to the Conquest. Therefore, it could be useful for his theory to make this story known and to inform him that in the event of the natural extinction that comes with mortality, kings could again be sourced from Normandy on better terms than William the Conqueror. Consequently, the good people of England during the 1688 revolution might have fared much better if a generous Norman like this had understood their needs, and they had understood his. The chivalric qualities that Mr. Burke admires are certainly much easier to negotiate with than a hard-nosed Dutchman. But returning to constitutional matters: The French Constitution states that there shall be no titles; thus, all forms of ambiguous nobility, which in some countries is called "aristocracy" and in others "nobility," are abolished, elevating the peer to be just a man.
Titles are but nicknames, and every nickname is a title. The thing is perfectly harmless in itself, but it marks a sort of foppery in the human character, which degrades it. It reduces man into the diminutive of man in things which are great, and the counterfeit of women in things which are little. It talks about its fine blue ribbon like a girl, and shows its new garter like a child. A certain writer, of some antiquity, says: "When I was a child, I thought as a child; but when I became a man, I put away childish things."
Titles are just nicknames, and every nickname is a title. The concept is completely harmless on its own, but it reflects a kind of vanity in human nature that undermines it. It diminishes a person in areas where they should be great and makes them fake in areas where they should be modest. It boasts about its fancy blue ribbon like a girl and shows off its new garter like a child. An ancient writer once said: "When I was a child, I thought like a child; but when I grew up, I put away childish things."
It is, properly, from the elevated mind of France that the folly of titles has fallen. It has outgrown the baby clothes of Count and Duke, and breeched itself in manhood. France has not levelled, it has exalted. It has put down the dwarf, to set up the man. The punyism of a senseless word like Duke, Count or Earl has ceased to please. Even those who possessed them have disowned the gibberish, and as they outgrew the rickets, have despised the rattle. The genuine mind of man, thirsting for its native home, society, contemns the gewgaws that separate him from it. Titles are like circles drawn by the magician's wand, to contract the sphere of man's felicity. He lives immured within the Bastille of a word, and surveys at a distance the envied life of man.
It is, fundamentally, from the elevated mindset of France that the absurdity of titles has diminished. It has outgrown the childish labels of Count and Duke, and embraced adulthood. France hasn’t leveled the playing field; it has elevated it. It has put aside the small-mindedness to uplift the individual. The triviality of meaningless titles like Duke, Count, or Earl no longer appeals. Even those who held these titles have rejected the nonsense, and as they moved beyond immaturity, they have scorned the trinkets. The genuine intellect of a person, yearning for its true home, society, rejects the ornaments that distance him from it. Titles are like circles drawn by a magician’s wand, confining man’s happiness. He remains trapped within the prison of a word, gazing enviously at the life of the free.
Is it, then, any wonder that titles should fall in France? Is it not a greater wonder that they should be kept up anywhere? What are they? What is their worth, and "what is their amount?" When we think or speak of a Judge or a General, we associate with it the ideas of office and character; we think of gravity in one and bravery in the other; but when we use the word merely as a title, no ideas associate with it. Through all the vocabulary of Adam there is not such an animal as a Duke or a Count; neither can we connect any certain ideas with the words. Whether they mean strength or weakness, wisdom or folly, a child or a man, or the rider or the horse, is all equivocal. What respect then can be paid to that which describes nothing, and which means nothing? Imagination has given figure and character to centaurs, satyrs, and down to all the fairy tribe; but titles baffle even the powers of fancy, and are a chimerical nondescript.
Is it any wonder that titles have faded away in France? Isn't it even more surprising that they still exist anywhere? What are they? What do they actually mean, and "how much do they matter?" When we think or talk about a Judge or a General, we associate them with the ideas of duty and character; we think of seriousness in one and courage in the other. But when we use the term just as a title, it carries no meaning. In the entire vocabulary of Adam, there's no such thing as a Duke or a Count; and we can't attach any specific ideas to those words. Whether they represent strength or weakness, wisdom or foolishness, a child or an adult, or the rider or the horse, it's all ambiguous. So what respect can we give to something that describes nothing and has no real meaning? Imagination has given form and character to centaurs, satyrs, and all kinds of fairies, but titles confuse even the limits of imagination and are nothing but a fanciful nonexistent entity.
But this is not all. If a whole country is disposed to hold them in contempt, all their value is gone, and none will own them. It is common opinion only that makes them anything, or nothing, or worse than nothing. There is no occasion to take titles away, for they take themselves away when society concurs to ridicule them. This species of imaginary consequence has visibly declined in every part of Europe, and it hastens to its exit as the world of reason continues to rise. There was a time when the lowest class of what are called nobility was more thought of than the highest is now, and when a man in armour riding throughout Christendom in quest of adventures was more stared at than a modern Duke. The world has seen this folly fall, and it has fallen by being laughed at, and the farce of titles will follow its fate. The patriots of France have discovered in good time that rank and dignity in society must take a new ground. The old one has fallen through. It must now take the substantial ground of character, instead of the chimerical ground of titles; and they have brought their titles to the altar, and made of them a burnt-offering to Reason.
But that’s not all. If an entire country starts to look down on them, they lose all their value, and no one will claim them. It’s only public opinion that gives them any worth, or makes them worthless, or even worse than worthless. There’s no need to take titles away, because they strip themselves of significance when society chooses to mock them. This type of imaginary importance has clearly decreased across Europe, and it’s disappearing quickly as rational thinking continues to grow. There was a time when the lowest rank of nobility was held in higher regard than the highest rank is now, and when a knight in armor riding around seeking adventures drew more attention than a modern duke. The world has watched this absurdity fade away, and it has fallen as a result of being laughed at, and the farce of titles will meet the same fate. The patriots of France have realized in time that social rank and dignity need to evolve. The old standards have collapsed. They must now be based on character rather than the illusory basis of titles; and they have brought their titles to the altar and made them a burnt offering to Reason.
If no mischief had annexed itself to the folly of titles they would not have been worth a serious and formal destruction, such as the National Assembly have decreed them; and this makes it necessary to enquire farther into the nature and character of aristocracy.
If no trouble had attached itself to the foolishness of titles, they wouldn’t have warranted the serious and formal elimination that the National Assembly has ordered; this makes it necessary to look deeper into the nature and character of aristocracy.
That, then, which is called aristocracy in some countries and nobility in others arose out of the governments founded upon conquest. It was originally a military order for the purpose of supporting military government (for such were all governments founded in conquest); and to keep up a succession of this order for the purpose for which it was established, all the younger branches of those families were disinherited and the law of primogenitureship set up.
That, then, what is referred to as aristocracy in some countries and nobility in others came from governments established through conquest. It started as a military organization meant to support military rule (since all governments formed through conquest were military); to maintain a continuous line of this organization for its intended purpose, all younger branches of those families were disinherited, and the law of primogeniture was put in place.
The nature and character of aristocracy shows itself to us in this law. It is the law against every other law of nature, and Nature herself calls for its destruction. Establish family justice, and aristocracy falls. By the aristocratical law of primogenitureship, in a family of six children five are exposed. Aristocracy has never more than one child. The rest are begotten to be devoured. They are thrown to the cannibal for prey, and the natural parent prepares the unnatural repast.
The nature and character of aristocracy is evident in this law. It goes against every other natural law, and even Nature demands its end. Establish fairness within families, and aristocracy collapses. According to the aristocratic law of primogeniture, in a family of six children, five are abandoned. Aristocrats typically have just one child. The others are born to be sacrificed. They are offered as prey, and their biological parent prepares this unnatural feast.
As everything which is out of nature in man affects, more or less, the interest of society, so does this. All the children which the aristocracy disowns (which are all except the eldest) are, in general, cast like orphans on a parish, to be provided for by the public, but at a greater charge. Unnecessary offices and places in governments and courts are created at the expense of the public to maintain them.
As everything unnatural about humans impacts society to some degree, this is no different. All the children that the aristocracy rejects (which includes everyone except the eldest) are essentially left like orphans for the community to support, but at a higher cost. Unnecessary roles and positions in governments and courts are created at the public's expense to take care of them.
With what kind of parental reflections can the father or mother contemplate their younger offspring? By nature they are children, and by marriage they are heirs; but by aristocracy they are bastards and orphans. They are the flesh and blood of their parents in the one line, and nothing akin to them in the other. To restore, therefore, parents to their children, and children to their parents relations to each other, and man to society—and to exterminate the monster aristocracy, root and branch—the French Constitution has destroyed the law of Primogenitureship. Here then lies the monster; and Mr. Burke, if he pleases, may write its epitaph.
What kind of thoughts can a father or mother have about their young kids? Naturally, they are children, and through marriage, they are heirs; but in terms of social class, they are considered illegitimate and abandoned. They are the biological children of their parents in one aspect, and nothing like them in another. So, to reunite parents with their children, and children with their parents, and to re-establish man’s connection to society—and to eliminate the evil of aristocracy completely—the French Constitution has abolished the law of primogeniture. Here lies the real problem; and Mr. Burke can write its epitaph if he wants.
Hitherto we have considered aristocracy chiefly in one point of view. We have now to consider it in another. But whether we view it before or behind, or sideways, or any way else, domestically or publicly, it is still a monster.
So far, we've looked at aristocracy mainly from one perspective. Now, we need to examine it from another angle. But no matter if we see it from the front, back, side, or in any other way, whether privately or publicly, it's still a beast.
In France aristocracy had one feature less in its countenance than what it has in some other countries. It did not compose a body of hereditary legislators. It was not "a corporation of aristocracy," for such I have heard M. de la Fayette describe an English House of Peers. Let us then examine the grounds upon which the French Constitution has resolved against having such a House in France.
In France, the aristocracy had one less characteristic than in some other countries. It didn’t form a group of hereditary lawmakers. It wasn’t "a corporation of aristocracy," as I’ve heard M. de la Fayette refer to the English House of Peers. So let’s look at the reasons why the French Constitution decided against having a similar House in France.
Because, in the first place, as is already mentioned, aristocracy is kept up by family tyranny and injustice.
Because, first of all, as already mentioned, aristocracy is supported by family oppression and unfairness.
Secondly. Because there is an unnatural unfitness in an aristocracy to be legislators for a nation. Their ideas of distributive justice are corrupted at the very source. They begin life by trampling on all their younger brothers and sisters, and relations of every kind, and are taught and educated so to do. With what ideas of justice or honour can that man enter a house of legislation, who absorbs in his own person the inheritance of a whole family of children or doles out to them some pitiful portion with the insolence of a gift?
Secondly. Because an aristocracy is fundamentally unfit to be lawmakers for a nation. Their understanding of fairness is twisted from the very beginning. They start life by stepping on all their younger siblings and relatives, and they are raised and taught to do so. What kind of sense of justice or honor can a person have when they walk into a legislative assembly, having taken the inheritance meant for an entire family of children and handing them a meager portion as if it were a generous gift?
Thirdly. Because the idea of hereditary legislators is as inconsistent as that of hereditary judges, or hereditary juries; and as absurd as an hereditary mathematician, or an hereditary wise man; and as ridiculous as an hereditary poet laureate.
Thirdly. Because the idea of hereditary lawmakers is just as inconsistent as that of hereditary judges, or hereditary jurors; and as absurd as an hereditary mathematician, or an hereditary sage; and as ridiculous as an hereditary poet laureate.
Fourthly. Because a body of men, holding themselves accountable to nobody, ought not to be trusted by anybody.
Fourthly. A group of people who answer to no one shouldn't be trusted by anyone.
Fifthly. Because it is continuing the uncivilised principle of governments founded in conquest, and the base idea of man having property in man, and governing him by personal right.
Fifthly. Because it continues the uncivilized principle of governments built on conquest, and the disgusting idea of one person having ownership over another, ruling them by personal authority.
Sixthly. Because aristocracy has a tendency to deteriorate the human species. By the universal economy of nature it is known, and by the instance of the Jews it is proved, that the human species has a tendency to degenerate, in any small number of persons, when separated from the general stock of society, and inter-marrying constantly with each other. It defeats even its pretended end, and becomes in time the opposite of what is noble in man. Mr. Burke talks of nobility; let him show what it is. The greatest characters the world have known have arisen on the democratic floor. Aristocracy has not been able to keep a proportionate pace with democracy. The artificial Noble shrinks into a dwarf before the Noble of Nature; and in the few instances of those (for there are some in all countries) in whom nature, as by a miracle, has survived in aristocracy, Those Men Despise It.—But it is time to proceed to a new subject.
Sixthly. Because aristocracy tends to lead to the decline of the human species. It's widely recognized in nature, and the example of the Jews demonstrates that the human species tends to deteriorate when a small group is separated from the wider society and continually intermarrying among themselves. This approach ultimately undermines its stated purpose and becomes the opposite of what is noble in humanity. Mr. Burke talks about nobility; let's see him define it. The most outstanding figures in history have emerged from democratic societies. Aristocracy has failed to keep pace with democracy. The artificial Noble is overshadowed by the Noble of Nature; and in the rare cases where nature, almost like a miracle, has thrived within aristocracy, those individuals look down on it. —But it's time to move on to a new topic.
The French Constitution has reformed the condition of the clergy. It has raised the income of the lower and middle classes, and taken from the higher. None are now less than twelve hundred livres (fifty pounds sterling), nor any higher than two or three thousand pounds. What will Mr. Burke place against this? Hear what he says.
The French Constitution has changed the situation for the clergy. It has increased the income of the lower and middle classes and reduced that of the higher classes. No one now earns less than twelve hundred livres (about fifty pounds sterling), and no one makes more than two or three thousand pounds. What will Mr. Burke say in response to this? Listen to what he has to say.
He says: "That the people of England can see without pain or grudging, an archbishop precede a duke; they can see a Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester in possession of L10,000 a-year; and cannot see why it is in worse hands than estates to a like amount, in the hands of this earl or that squire." And Mr. Burke offers this as an example to France.
He says: "The people of England can watch an archbishop lead a duke without feeling upset or resentful; they can see a Bishop of Durham or a Bishop of Winchester earning £10,000 a year; and they cannot understand why that money is in worse hands than estates of a similar value held by this earl or that landowner." And Mr. Burke uses this as an example for France.
As to the first part, whether the archbishop precedes the duke, or the duke the bishop, it is, I believe, to the people in general, somewhat like Sternhold and Hopkins, or Hopkins and Sternhold; you may put which you please first; and as I confess that I do not understand the merits of this case, I will not contest it with Mr. Burke.
As for the first part, whether the archbishop comes before the duke or the duke before the bishop, I think it’s similar to Sternhold and Hopkins, or Hopkins and Sternhold; you can put either one first. Since I admit that I don’t fully grasp the merits of this case, I won’t argue it with Mr. Burke.
But with respect to the latter, I have something to say. Mr. Burke has not put the case right. The comparison is out of order, by being put between the bishop and the earl or the squire. It ought to be put between the bishop and the curate, and then it will stand thus:—"The people of England can see without pain or grudging, a Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester, in possession of ten thousand pounds a-year, and a curate on thirty or forty pounds a-year, or less." No, sir, they certainly do not see those things without great pain or grudging. It is a case that applies itself to every man's sense of justice, and is one among many that calls aloud for a constitution.
But regarding the latter point, I have something to say. Mr. Burke hasn’t presented the situation correctly. The comparison is inappropriate because it’s drawn between the bishop and the earl or the squire. It should be made between the bishop and the curate, and it would look like this:—"The people of England can watch without discomfort or resentment a Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester, earning ten thousand pounds a year, while a curate receives thirty or forty pounds a year, or even less." No, sir, they certainly do not accept these disparities without significant discomfort or resentment. This situation resonates with everyone’s sense of justice and is just one of many that urgently calls for reform.
In France the cry of "the church! the church!" was repeated as often as in Mr. Burke's book, and as loudly as when the Dissenters' Bill was before the English Parliament; but the generality of the French clergy were not to be deceived by this cry any longer. They knew that whatever the pretence might be, it was they who were one of the principal objects of it. It was the cry of the high beneficed clergy, to prevent any regulation of income taking place between those of ten thousand pounds a-year and the parish priest. They therefore joined their case to those of every other oppressed class of men, and by this union obtained redress.
In France, the shout of "the church! the church!" was heard as often as in Mr. Burke's book and as loudly as when the Dissenters' Bill was discussed in the English Parliament. However, most of the French clergy were no longer fooled by this cry. They understood that no matter the pretense, they were one of the main targets of it. It was the rallying cry of the wealthy clergy, aimed at stopping any regulations on income between those earning ten thousand pounds a year and the local parish priest. Therefore, they joined forces with every other oppressed group and through this solidarity achieved justice.
The French Constitution has abolished tythes, that source of perpetual discontent between the tythe-holder and the parishioner. When land is held on tythe, it is in the condition of an estate held between two parties; the one receiving one-tenth, and the other nine-tenths of the produce: and consequently, on principles of equity, if the estate can be improved, and made to produce by that improvement double or treble what it did before, or in any other ratio, the expense of such improvement ought to be borne in like proportion between the parties who are to share the produce. But this is not the case in tythes: the farmer bears the whole expense, and the tythe-holder takes a tenth of the improvement, in addition to the original tenth, and by this means gets the value of two-tenths instead of one. This is another case that calls for a constitution.
The French Constitution has eliminated tithes, which were a constant source of conflict between the tithe-holder and the parishioner. When land is subject to tithes, it operates like an estate shared between two parties; one receives one-tenth while the other gets nine-tenths of the produce. Therefore, based on equity, if the estate can be improved and thus doubles or triples its output, or increases in any other way, the costs of such improvements should be shared proportionately between those who benefit from the produce. However, this is not how tithes work: the farmer covers all the costs, and the tithe-holder receives a tenth of the improved yield, on top of the original tenth, effectively garnering the value of two-tenths instead of one. This situation further highlights the need for a constitution.
The French Constitution hath abolished or renounced Toleration and Intolerance also, and hath established Universal Right Of Conscience.
The French Constitution has abolished or rejected Toleration and Intolerance as well and has established the Universal Right of Conscience.
Toleration is not the opposite of Intolerance, but is the counterfeit of it. Both are despotisms. The one assumes to itself the right of withholding Liberty of Conscience, and the other of granting it. The one is the Pope armed with fire and faggot, and the other is the Pope selling or granting indulgences. The former is church and state, and the latter is church and traffic.
Toleration isn't the opposite of intolerance; it's just a fake version of it. Both are forms of oppression. One claims the right to deny freedom of conscience, while the other claims the right to give it. One is like the Pope wielding fire and torture, while the other is like the Pope selling or granting indulgences. The former represents the mix of church and state, and the latter represents the mix of church and commerce.
But Toleration may be viewed in a much stronger light. Man worships not himself, but his Maker; and the liberty of conscience which he claims is not for the service of himself, but of his God. In this case, therefore, we must necessarily have the associated idea of two things; the mortal who renders the worship, and the Immortal Being who is worshipped. Toleration, therefore, places itself, not between man and man, nor between church and church, nor between one denomination of religion and another, but between God and man; between the being who worships, and the Being who is worshipped; and by the same act of assumed authority which it tolerates man to pay his worship, it presumptuously and blasphemously sets itself up to tolerate the Almighty to receive it.
But tolerance can be seen in a much stronger way. People don’t worship themselves; they worship their Creator. The freedom of conscience that individuals claim isn’t for their own sake, but for the sake of their God. In this sense, we must acknowledge the connection between two things: the mortal who worships and the Immortal Being who is worshipped. Therefore, tolerance doesn’t exist between one person and another, or between one church and another, or between different religious denominations, but rather between God and humanity; between the person who worships and the Being who is worshipped. In the same act that it allows people to worship, it arrogantly and blasphemously positions itself as having the authority to permit the Almighty to accept that worship.
Were a bill brought into any Parliament, entitled, "An Act to tolerate or grant liberty to the Almighty to receive the worship of a Jew or Turk," or "to prohibit the Almighty from receiving it," all men would startle and call it blasphemy. There would be an uproar. The presumption of toleration in religious matters would then present itself unmasked; but the presumption is not the less because the name of "Man" only appears to those laws, for the associated idea of the worshipper and the worshipped cannot be separated. Who then art thou, vain dust and ashes! by whatever name thou art called, whether a King, a Bishop, a Church, or a State, a Parliament, or anything else, that obtrudest thine insignificance between the soul of man and its Maker? Mind thine own concerns. If he believes not as thou believest, it is a proof that thou believest not as he believes, and there is no earthly power can determine between you.
If a bill were introduced in any Parliament titled, "An Act to allow or permit the Almighty to accept the worship of a Jew or a Turk," or "to prevent the Almighty from accepting it," everyone would be shocked and call it blasphemy. There would be chaos. The assumption of tolerance in religious matters would become clear, but the assumption still stands even if "Man" is the only term used in those laws, as the idea of the worshiper and the worshiped cannot be separated. Who then are you, insignificant dust and ashes! no matter what title you hold, be it King, Bishop, Church, State, Parliament, or anything else, to put your unimportance between the soul of man and its Creator? Focus on your own business. If he doesn’t believe as you do, it shows that you don’t believe as he does, and no earthly power can decide between you.
With respect to what are called denominations of religion, if every one is left to judge of its own religion, there is no such thing as a religion that is wrong; but if they are to judge of each other's religion, there is no such thing as a religion that is right; and therefore all the world is right, or all the world is wrong. But with respect to religion itself, without regard to names, and as directing itself from the universal family of mankind to the Divine object of all adoration, it is man bringing to his Maker the fruits of his heart; and though those fruits may differ from each other like the fruits of the earth, the grateful tribute of every one is accepted.
When it comes to what people call religious denominations, if everyone is allowed to judge their own beliefs, then there's no such thing as a wrong religion. But if they start judging each other's beliefs, then there's no such thing as a right religion. So, either everyone is right, or everyone is wrong. However, regarding religion itself, without focusing on the names, and as it relates to the universal family of humankind and the Divine being that everyone worships, it's about individuals bringing to their Creator the true offerings of their hearts. And even though those offerings may differ, just like different kinds of fruits, the sincere gratitude from everyone is accepted.
A Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester, or the archbishop who heads the dukes, will not refuse a tythe-sheaf of wheat because it is not a cock of hay, nor a cock of hay because it is not a sheaf of wheat; nor a pig, because it is neither one nor the other; but these same persons, under the figure of an established church, will not permit their Maker to receive the varied tythes of man's devotion.
A Bishop of Durham, a Bishop of Winchester, or the archbishop who leads the dukes won’t turn down a tithe of wheat just because it’s not a haystack, nor a haystack because it’s not a sheaf of wheat; nor a pig, because it’s neither one nor the other. Yet, these same people, representing an established church, won’t allow their Creator to receive the diverse offerings of human devotion.
One of the continual choruses of Mr. Burke's book is "Church and State." He does not mean some one particular church, or some one particular state, but any church and state; and he uses the term as a general figure to hold forth the political doctrine of always uniting the church with the state in every country, and he censures the National Assembly for not having done this in France. Let us bestow a few thoughts on this subject.
One of the recurring themes in Mr. Burke's book is "Church and State." He isn't referring to a specific church or a specific state, but to any church and state. He uses the term as a broad concept to promote the political idea of always uniting church and state in every country, and he criticizes the National Assembly for not doing this in France. Let's take a moment to think about this issue.
All religions are in their nature kind and benign, and united with principles of morality. They could not have made proselytes at first by professing anything that was vicious, cruel, persecuting, or immoral. Like everything else, they had their beginning; and they proceeded by persuasion, exhortation, and example. How then is it that they lose their native mildness, and become morose and intolerant?
All religions are inherently kind and good, aligned with moral principles. They couldn't have gained followers initially by promoting anything harmful, cruel, persecuting, or immoral. Like everything else, they started somewhere and grew through persuasion, encouragement, and setting a good example. So why do they lose their natural gentleness and become harsh and intolerant?
It proceeds from the connection which Mr. Burke recommends. By engendering the church with the state, a sort of mule-animal, capable only of destroying, and not of breeding up, is produced, called the Church established by Law. It is a stranger, even from its birth, to any parent mother, on whom it is begotten, and whom in time it kicks out and destroys.
It comes from the relationship that Mr. Burke suggests. By mixing the church with the state, we create a kind of hybrid creature, capable only of destruction and not of nurturing, known as the Church established by Law. It has always been an outsider, even from the moment it was born, to the original parent it was created from, and eventually, it ends up pushing that parent away and causing its demise.
The inquisition in Spain does not proceed from the religion originally professed, but from this mule-animal, engendered between the church and the state. The burnings in Smithfield proceeded from the same heterogeneous production; and it was the regeneration of this strange animal in England afterwards, that renewed rancour and irreligion among the inhabitants, and that drove the people called Quakers and Dissenters to America. Persecution is not an original feature in any religion; but it is alway the strongly-marked feature of all law-religions, or religions established by law. Take away the law-establishment, and every religion re-assumes its original benignity. In America, a catholic priest is a good citizen, a good character, and a good neighbour; an episcopalian minister is of the same description: and this proceeds independently of the men, from there being no law-establishment in America.
The Inquisition in Spain doesn't arise from the religion originally practiced, but from this strange hybrid created between the church and the state. The burnings in Smithfield came from the same mixed origins; and it was the revival of this odd creature in England later on that sparked renewed anger and irreligion among the people, driving groups like the Quakers and Dissenters to America. Persecution isn’t an inherent aspect of any religion; rather, it's a defining characteristic of all state-sanctioned religions. Remove the legal establishment, and every religion returns to its original benevolence. In America, a Catholic priest is seen as a good citizen, a respectable person, and a good neighbor; an Episcopalian minister is viewed the same way. This happens independently of the individuals because there’s no state-sanctioned religion in America.
If also we view this matter in a temporal sense, we shall see the ill effects it has had on the prosperity of nations. The union of church and state has impoverished Spain. The revoking the edict of Nantes drove the silk manufacture from that country into England; and church and state are now driving the cotton manufacture from England to America and France. Let then Mr. Burke continue to preach his antipolitical doctrine of Church and State. It will do some good. The National Assembly will not follow his advice, but will benefit by his folly. It was by observing the ill effects of it in England, that America has been warned against it; and it is by experiencing them in France, that the National Assembly have abolished it, and, like America, have established Universal Right Of Conscience, And Universal Right Of Citizenship.*7
If we also look at this issue from a historical perspective, we can see the negative impacts it has had on the prosperity of nations. The union of church and state has made Spain poorer. The revocation of the Edict of Nantes caused the silk industry to leave that country for England; now, church and state are driving the cotton industry from England to America and France. So let Mr. Burke keep promoting his anti-political ideas about church and state. It might have some positive effects. The National Assembly won’t take his advice, but they will learn from his mistakes. America has been warned about these negative effects by observing them in England; now, by experiencing them in France, the National Assembly has abolished it and, like America, has established the Universal Right of Conscience and the Universal Right of Citizenship.*7
I will here cease the comparison with respect to the principles of the French Constitution, and conclude this part of the subject with a few observations on the organisation of the formal parts of the French and English governments.
I will now stop comparing the principles of the French Constitution and wrap up this section with a few thoughts on the structure of the formal parts of the French and English governments.
The executive power in each country is in the hands of a person styled the King; but the French Constitution distinguishes between the King and the Sovereign: It considers the station of King as official, and places Sovereignty in the nation.
The executive power in each country is held by a person called the King; however, the French Constitution makes a distinction between the King and the Sovereign: It views the position of King as an official role, while it places Sovereignty in the hands of the nation.
The representatives of the nation, who compose the National Assembly, and who are the legislative power, originate in and from the people by election, as an inherent right in the people.—In England it is otherwise; and this arises from the original establishment of what is called its monarchy; for, as by the conquest all the rights of the people or the nation were absorbed into the hands of the Conqueror, and who added the title of King to that of Conqueror, those same matters which in France are now held as rights in the people, or in the nation, are held in England as grants from what is called the crown. The Parliament in England, in both its branches, was erected by patents from the descendants of the Conqueror. The House of Commons did not originate as a matter of right in the people to delegate or elect, but as a grant or boon.
The representatives of the nation, who make up the National Assembly and are the legislative authority, come from the people through elections, which is an inherent right of the people. In England, it’s different; this difference stems from the original establishment of its monarchy. When the Conqueror took power, all the rights of the people or nation were taken and centralized in the hands of the Conqueror, who then called himself King. In England, what in France is regarded as rights belonging to the people or the nation is seen as gifts from what’s known as the crown. The Parliament in England, in both of its branches, was created through grants from the descendants of the Conqueror. The House of Commons did not originate as an inherent right of the people to choose their representatives or elect, but as a privilege or favor.
By the French Constitution the nation is always named before the king. The third article of the declaration of rights says: "The nation is essentially the source (or fountain) of all sovereignty." Mr. Burke argues that in England a king is the fountain—that he is the fountain of all honour. But as this idea is evidently descended from the conquest I shall make no other remark upon it, than that it is the nature of conquest to turn everything upside down; and as Mr. Burke will not be refused the privilege of speaking twice, and as there are but two parts in the figure, the fountain and the spout, he will be right the second time.
By the French Constitution, the nation is always mentioned before the king. The third article of the declaration of rights states: "The nation is fundamentally the source of all sovereignty." Mr. Burke argues that in England, the king is the source—that he is the source of all honor. However, since this idea clearly comes from conquest, I will only remark that conquest tends to turn everything upside down; and since Mr. Burke won't be denied the chance to speak twice, and there are only two parts in the figure, the source and the spout, he'll be correct the second time.
The French Constitution puts the legislative before the executive, the law before the king; la loi, le roi. This also is in the natural order of things, because laws must have existence before they can have execution.
The French Constitution places the legislative branch before the executive, prioritizing the law over the king; la loi, le roi. This reflects the natural order of things, as laws need to exist before they can be enforced.
A king in France does not, in addressing himself to the National Assembly, say, "My Assembly," similar to the phrase used in England of my "Parliament"; neither can he use it consistently with the constitution, nor could it be admitted. There may be propriety in the use of it in England, because as is before mentioned, both Houses of Parliament originated from what is called the crown by patent or boon—and not from the inherent rights of the people, as the National Assembly does in France, and whose name designates its origin.
A king in France doesn't refer to the National Assembly as "My Assembly," like how it's said in England with "my Parliament." He can't use that term according to the constitution, nor would it be accepted. In England, it might make sense to use it because, as mentioned earlier, both Houses of Parliament came from what is known as the crown by patent or grant—not from the natural rights of the people, as the National Assembly does in France, which reflects its origin.
The President of the National Assembly does not ask the King to grant to the Assembly liberty of speech, as is the case with the English House of Commons. The constitutional dignity of the National Assembly cannot debase itself. Speech is, in the first place, one of the natural rights of man always retained; and with respect to the National Assembly the use of it is their duty, and the nation is their authority. They were elected by the greatest body of men exercising the right of election the European world ever saw. They sprung not from the filth of rotten boroughs, nor are they the vassal representatives of aristocratical ones. Feeling the proper dignity of their character they support it. Their Parliamentary language, whether for or against a question, is free, bold and manly, and extends to all the parts and circumstances of the case. If any matter or subject respecting the executive department or the person who presides in it (the king) comes before them it is debated on with the spirit of men, and in the language of gentlemen; and their answer or their address is returned in the same style. They stand not aloof with the gaping vacuity of vulgar ignorance, nor bend with the cringe of sycophantic insignificance. The graceful pride of truth knows no extremes, and preserves, in every latitude of life, the right-angled character of man.
The President of the National Assembly doesn’t ask the King to give the Assembly freedom of speech, like in the English House of Commons. The constitutional respect of the National Assembly isn't something that can diminish. Speech is fundamentally one of the natural rights of humans that always remains; and regarding the National Assembly, using it is their responsibility, and the people are their authority. They were elected by the largest group of voters in European history. They didn’t come from the corruption of rotten boroughs, nor are they the subservient representatives of aristocratic ones. Recognizing their own dignity, they uphold it. Their Parliamentary language, whether for or against an issue, is free, bold, and strong, addressing all aspects and details of the matter. If any issue or topic concerning the executive branch or the person in charge (the king) is brought before them, it is discussed with the spirit of men and in the language of gentlemen; and their response is given in the same manner. They don’t remain distant, filled with the empty void of ignorance, nor do they bow down with the servility of insignificant flattery. The graceful pride of truth knows no extremes, maintaining, in every situation, the dignified nature of humanity.
Let us now look to the other side of the question. In the addresses of the English Parliaments to their kings we see neither the intrepid spirit of the old Parliaments of France, nor the serene dignity of the present National Assembly; neither do we see in them anything of the style of English manners, which border somewhat on bluntness. Since then they are neither of foreign extraction, nor naturally of English production, their origin must be sought for elsewhere, and that origin is the Norman Conquest. They are evidently of the vassalage class of manners, and emphatically mark the prostrate distance that exists in no other condition of men than between the conqueror and the conquered. That this vassalage idea and style of speaking was not got rid of even at the Revolution of 1688, is evident from the declaration of Parliament to William and Mary in these words: "We do most humbly and faithfully submit ourselves, our heirs and posterities, for ever." Submission is wholly a vassalage term, repugnant to the dignity of freedom, and an echo of the language used at the Conquest.
Let’s now consider the other side of the issue. In the messages from the English Parliaments to their kings, we don't see the fearless spirit of the old Parliaments of France, nor the calm dignity of today’s National Assembly; we also don’t see anything resembling the somewhat blunt style of English manners. Since these messages are neither foreign in origin nor strictly English in nature, we must look elsewhere for their roots, which can be traced back to the Norman Conquest. They clearly reflect a vassal-like manner and highlight the submissive gap that exists only between the conqueror and the conquered. The fact that this idea of vassalage and style of address persisted even after the Revolution of 1688 is clear from Parliament's declaration to William and Mary, stating: "We do most humbly and faithfully submit ourselves, our heirs and posterities, for ever." Submission is entirely a vassalage term, contrary to the dignity of freedom, and echoes the language used during the Conquest.
As the estimation of all things is given by comparison, the Revolution of 1688, however from circumstances it may have been exalted beyond its value, will find its level. It is already on the wane, eclipsed by the enlarging orb of reason, and the luminous revolutions of America and France. In less than another century it will go, as well as Mr. Burke's labours, "to the family vault of all the Capulets." Mankind will then scarcely believe that a country calling itself free would send to Holland for a man, and clothe him with power on purpose to put themselves in fear of him, and give him almost a million sterling a year for leave to submit themselves and their posterity, like bondmen and bondwomen, for ever.
Since we judge everything by comparison, the Revolution of 1688, no matter how much it may have been exaggerated due to its circumstances, will eventually be seen for what it truly is. It's already losing its significance, overshadowed by the expanding influence of reason and the inspiring changes in America and France. In less than a hundred years, it will join Mr. Burke's efforts "to the family vault of all the Capulets." People will hardly believe that a nation calling itself free would hire a man from Holland, give him power to instill fear in them, and pay him almost a million pounds a year just to submit themselves and their future generations, like slaves, forever.
But there is a truth that ought to be made known; I have had the opportunity of seeing it; which is, that notwithstanding appearances, there is not any description of men that despise monarchy so much as courtiers. But they well know, that if it were seen by others, as it is seen by them, the juggle could not be kept up; they are in the condition of men who get their living by a show, and to whom the folly of that show is so familiar that they ridicule it; but were the audience to be made as wise in this respect as themselves, there would be an end to the show and the profits with it. The difference between a republican and a courtier with respect to monarchy, is that the one opposes monarchy, believing it to be something; and the other laughs at it, knowing it to be nothing.
But there's a truth that needs to be shared; I've had the chance to see it: despite how things seem, no one despises monarchy more than courtiers. They understand that if others saw it as they do, the deception couldn't be maintained; they are like performers who earn their living from a show, and the absurdity of that show is so familiar to them that they mock it. However, if the audience became as wise to this as they are, the show would end, along with the profits. The difference between a republican and a courtier regarding monarchy is that one opposes it, thinking it means something, while the other laughs at it, knowing it's meaningless.
As I used sometimes to correspond with Mr. Burke believing him then to be a man of sounder principles than his book shows him to be, I wrote to him last winter from Paris, and gave him an account how prosperously matters were going on. Among other subjects in that letter, I referred to the happy situation the National Assembly were placed in; that they had taken ground on which their moral duty and their political interest were united. They have not to hold out a language which they do not themselves believe, for the fraudulent purpose of making others believe it. Their station requires no artifice to support it, and can only be maintained by enlightening mankind. It is not their interest to cherish ignorance, but to dispel it. They are not in the case of a ministerial or an opposition party in England, who, though they are opposed, are still united to keep up the common mystery. The National Assembly must throw open a magazine of light. It must show man the proper character of man; and the nearer it can bring him to that standard, the stronger the National Assembly becomes.
As I sometimes used to write to Mr. Burke, thinking he was a man of better principles than his book suggests, I wrote to him last winter from Paris, updating him on how well things were going. Among other things in that letter, I mentioned the fortunate position the National Assembly found themselves in; they had established a foundation where their moral duty and political interests aligned. They don't have to use false language that they don't believe themselves, just to make others believe it. Their role doesn't need any tricks to support it and can only be sustained by enlightening people. It's not in their interest to promote ignorance, but to eliminate it. They aren't like a government or opposition party in England, which, despite being opposed, still come together to maintain a shared mystery. The National Assembly must open up a source of knowledge. It has to show people the true nature of humanity; and the closer it can get to that ideal, the stronger the National Assembly becomes.
In contemplating the French Constitution, we see in it a rational order of things. The principles harmonise with the forms, and both with their origin. It may perhaps be said as an excuse for bad forms, that they are nothing more than forms; but this is a mistake. Forms grow out of principles, and operate to continue the principles they grow from. It is impossible to practise a bad form on anything but a bad principle. It cannot be ingrafted on a good one; and wherever the forms in any government are bad, it is a certain indication that the principles are bad also.
In looking at the French Constitution, we recognize a logical structure to how things are arranged. The principles align with the forms, and both connect to their origins. Some might excuse poor forms by claiming they're just forms, but that's a misunderstanding. Forms emerge from principles and work to uphold the principles they stem from. It's impossible to apply a flawed form to anything other than a flawed principle. It can't be attached to a good one, and whenever the forms in a government are poor, it’s a clear sign that the principles are poor as well.
I will here finally close this subject. I began it by remarking that Mr. Burke had voluntarily declined going into a comparison of the English and French Constitutions. He apologises (in page 241) for not doing it, by saying that he had not time. Mr. Burke's book was upwards of eight months in hand, and is extended to a volume of three hundred and sixty-six pages. As his omission does injury to his cause, his apology makes it worse; and men on the English side of the water will begin to consider, whether there is not some radical defect in what is called the English constitution, that made it necessary for Mr. Burke to suppress the comparison, to avoid bringing it into view.
I’ll finally wrap up this topic here. I started by noting that Mr. Burke chose not to compare the English and French Constitutions. He apologizes (on page 241) for not doing it, saying he didn't have enough time. Mr. Burke's book was in the works for over eight months and spans three hundred and sixty-six pages. Since his omission weakens his argument, his apology only makes it worse; people on the English side of the Atlantic will start to wonder if there's some fundamental flaw in what's referred to as the English constitution that led Mr. Burke to avoid the comparison to keep it out of the spotlight.
As Mr. Burke has not written on constitutions so neither has he written on the French Revolution. He gives no account of its commencement or its progress. He only expresses his wonder. "It looks," says he, "to me, as if I were in a great crisis, not of the affairs of France alone, but of all Europe, perhaps of more than Europe. All circumstances taken together, the French Revolution is the most astonishing that has hitherto happened in the world."
As Mr. Burke hasn't written about constitutions, he also hasn't written about the French Revolution. He doesn't provide any details about how it started or its development. He simply shares his amazement. "It seems," he says, "to me, like I'm witnessing a major turning point, not just in France, but for all of Europe, possibly even beyond Europe. Considering everything, the French Revolution is the most incredible event that has occurred in the world so far."
As wise men are astonished at foolish things, and other people at wise ones, I know not on which ground to account for Mr. Burke's astonishment; but certain it is, that he does not understand the French Revolution. It has apparently burst forth like a creation from a chaos, but it is no more than the consequence of a mental revolution priorily existing in France. The mind of the nation had changed beforehand, and the new order of things has naturally followed the new order of thoughts. I will here, as concisely as I can, trace out the growth of the French Revolution, and mark the circumstances that have contributed to produce it.
As wise people are shocked by foolishness, and others are surprised by wisdom, I can't quite figure out why Mr. Burke is so astonished; but it's clear he doesn't grasp the French Revolution. It seems to have erupted as if from chaos, but it’s really just the result of a prior shift in thinking that was already happening in France. The mindset of the nation had changed before, and the new reality naturally followed the new way of thinking. Here, I will outline as clearly as I can the development of the French Revolution and highlight the factors that contributed to its emergence.
The despotism of Louis XIV., united with the gaiety of his Court, and the gaudy ostentation of his character, had so humbled, and at the same time so fascinated the mind of France, that the people appeared to have lost all sense of their own dignity, in contemplating that of their Grand Monarch; and the whole reign of Louis XV., remarkable only for weakness and effeminacy, made no other alteration than that of spreading a sort of lethargy over the nation, from which it showed no disposition to rise.
The tyranny of Louis XIV, combined with the fun atmosphere of his Court and the flashy display of his personality, had so belittled and yet captivated the minds of the French people that they seemed to have completely lost sight of their own dignity while admiring that of their Grand Monarch. The entire reign of Louis XV, notable only for its weakness and softness, did nothing but spread a kind of lethargy over the nation, from which it showed no desire to awaken.
The only signs which appeared to the spirit of Liberty during those periods, are to be found in the writings of the French philosophers. Montesquieu, President of the Parliament of Bordeaux, went as far as a writer under a despotic government could well proceed; and being obliged to divide himself between principle and prudence, his mind often appears under a veil, and we ought to give him credit for more than he has expressed.
The only signs that reached the spirit of Liberty during those times are found in the writings of French philosophers. Montesquieu, the President of the Parliament of Bordeaux, pushed the limits of what a writer could say under a despotic government. He had to balance his principles with caution, so his thoughts often come across as hidden, and we should recognize that he likely meant more than what he actually expressed.
Voltaire, who was both the flatterer and the satirist of despotism, took another line. His forte lay in exposing and ridiculing the superstitions which priest-craft, united with state-craft, had interwoven with governments. It was not from the purity of his principles, or his love of mankind (for satire and philanthropy are not naturally concordant), but from his strong capacity of seeing folly in its true shape, and his irresistible propensity to expose it, that he made those attacks. They were, however, as formidable as if the motive had been virtuous; and he merits the thanks rather than the esteem of mankind.
Voltaire, who was both a flatterer and a critic of tyranny, took a different approach. His strength was in exposing and mocking the superstitions that the alliance of religious authorities and state power had woven into governments. It wasn't because of his pure principles or his love for humanity (since satire and philanthropy don't naturally go hand in hand), but rather his strong ability to see foolishness for what it truly is and his unstoppable urge to expose it that led to his critiques. Nevertheless, his attacks were as powerful as if his motivations had been noble; thus, he deserves gratitude rather than admiration from people.
On the contrary, we find in the writings of Rousseau, and the Abbe Raynal, a loveliness of sentiment in favour of liberty, that excites respect, and elevates the human faculties; but having raised this animation, they do not direct its operation, and leave the mind in love with an object, without describing the means of possessing it.
On the other hand, we see in the writings of Rousseau and Abbe Raynal a beautiful sentiment in support of freedom that earns respect and enhances human abilities; however, after igniting this passion, they fail to guide its action and leave the mind yearning for something without explaining how to achieve it.
The writings of Quesnay, Turgot, and the friends of those authors, are of the serious kind; but they laboured under the same disadvantage with Montesquieu; their writings abound with moral maxims of government, but are rather directed to economise and reform the administration of the government, than the government itself.
The works of Quesnay, Turgot, and their associates are quite serious; however, they faced the same issue as Montesquieu. Their writings are filled with moral principles of governance, but they focus more on streamlining and improving the administration of the government rather than on altering the government itself.
But all those writings and many others had their weight; and by the different manner in which they treated the subject of government, Montesquieu by his judgment and knowledge of laws, Voltaire by his wit, Rousseau and Raynal by their animation, and Quesnay and Turgot by their moral maxims and systems of economy, readers of every class met with something to their taste, and a spirit of political inquiry began to diffuse itself through the nation at the time the dispute between England and the then colonies of America broke out.
But all those writings and many others had their impact; and because they approached the topic of government in different ways, Montesquieu with his insight and understanding of laws, Voltaire with his humor, Rousseau and Raynal with their enthusiasm, and Quesnay and Turgot with their ethical principles and economic theories, readers from all walks of life found something appealing, and a spirit of political inquiry started to spread throughout the nation just as the conflict between England and the American colonies began.
In the war which France afterwards engaged in, it is very well known that the nation appeared to be before-hand with the French ministry. Each of them had its view; but those views were directed to different objects; the one sought liberty, and the other retaliation on England. The French officers and soldiers who after this went to America, were eventually placed in the school of Freedom, and learned the practice as well as the principles of it by heart.
In the war that France later got involved in, it's well-known that the nation seemed to be ahead of the French government. Each had its own agenda, but those agendas focused on different goals; one aimed for liberty, while the other sought revenge against England. The French officers and soldiers who later went to America were ultimately immersed in the lessons of Freedom and memorized both its practices and principles.
As it was impossible to separate the military events which took place in America from the principles of the American Revolution, the publication of those events in France necessarily connected themselves with the principles which produced them. Many of the facts were in themselves principles; such as the declaration of American Independence, and the treaty of alliance between France and America, which recognised the natural rights of man, and justified resistance to oppression.
Since it was impossible to separate the military events that happened in America from the ideals of the American Revolution, the reporting of those events in France was inevitably linked to the principles that led to them. Many of the facts were, in essence, principles themselves; such as the declaration of American Independence and the treaty of alliance between France and America, which acknowledged the natural rights of individuals and justified resisting oppression.
The then Minister of France, Count Vergennes, was not the friend of America; and it is both justice and gratitude to say, that it was the Queen of France who gave the cause of America a fashion at the French Court. Count Vergennes was the personal and social friend of Dr. Franklin; and the Doctor had obtained, by his sensible gracefulness, a sort of influence over him; but with respect to principles Count Vergennes was a despot.
The French Minister at the time, Count Vergennes, wasn't really an ally of America; it's fair and appreciative to acknowledge that it was the Queen of France who made the American cause fashionable at the French Court. Count Vergennes was a personal and social friend of Dr. Franklin, and the Doctor managed to gain some influence over him through his charming demeanor. However, when it came to principles, Count Vergennes acted like a dictator.
The situation of Dr. Franklin, as Minister from America to France, should be taken into the chain of circumstances. The diplomatic character is of itself the narrowest sphere of society that man can act in. It forbids intercourse by the reciprocity of suspicion; and a diplomatic is a sort of unconnected atom, continually repelling and repelled. But this was not the case with Dr. Franklin. He was not the diplomatic of a Court, but of Man. His character as a philosopher had been long established, and his circle of society in France was universal.
The situation of Dr. Franklin, as America’s Minister to France, should be considered in the context of the circumstances. The role of a diplomat is inherently a narrow one, limiting personal interactions due to mutual suspicion; a diplomat can feel like a disconnected atom, constantly pushing others away and being pushed away in return. However, this wasn’t true for Dr. Franklin. He wasn’t just a court diplomat; he represented humanity. His reputation as a philosopher had already been well-established, and he moved in a wide social circle in France.
Count Vergennes resisted for a considerable time the publication in France of American constitutions, translated into the French language: but even in this he was obliged to give way to public opinion, and a sort of propriety in admitting to appear what he had undertaken to defend. The American constitutions were to liberty what a grammar is to language: they define its parts of speech, and practically construct them into syntax.
Count Vergennes resisted for a long time the publication of American constitutions translated into French: but even he had to give in to public opinion and a sense of fairness in allowing what he had promised to support to be made public. The American constitutions are to liberty what grammar is to language: they outline its components and basically shape them into a coherent structure.
The peculiar situation of the then Marquis de la Fayette is another link in the great chain. He served in America as an American officer under a commission of Congress, and by the universality of his acquaintance was in close friendship with the civil government of America, as well as with the military line. He spoke the language of the country, entered into the discussions on the principles of government, and was always a welcome friend at any election.
The unusual situation of the Marquis de la Fayette at that time is another connection in the larger picture. He served in America as an American officer under a commission from Congress, and through his wide network, he built close friendships with both the civil government and the military. He spoke the language of the country, engaged in discussions about government principles, and was always a welcome guest at any election.
When the war closed, a vast reinforcement to the cause of Liberty spread itself over France, by the return of the French officers and soldiers. A knowledge of the practice was then joined to the theory; and all that was wanting to give it real existence was opportunity. Man cannot, properly speaking, make circumstances for his purpose, but he always has it in his power to improve them when they occur, and this was the case in France.
When the war ended, a huge boost to the cause of Liberty swept across France with the return of the French officers and soldiers. Knowledge of practical application was now combined with theory; all that was needed to bring it to life was opportunity. While people can't really create circumstances to suit their needs, they always have the ability to make the most of them when they arise, and that was true in France.
M. Neckar was displaced in May, 1781; and by the ill-management of the finances afterwards, and particularly during the extravagant administration of M. Calonne, the revenue of France, which was nearly twenty-four millions sterling per year, was become unequal to the expenditure, not because the revenue had decreased, but because the expenses had increased; and this was a circumstance which the nation laid hold of to bring forward a Revolution. The English Minister, Mr. Pitt, has frequently alluded to the state of the French finances in his budgets, without understanding the subject. Had the French Parliaments been as ready to register edicts for new taxes as an English Parliament is to grant them, there had been no derangement in the finances, nor yet any Revolution; but this will better explain itself as I proceed.
M. Neckar was replaced in May 1781, and due to the poor management of finances afterwards, especially during M. Calonne's extravagant administration, France's revenue, which was nearly twenty-four million pounds a year, became insufficient to cover expenses. This wasn't because revenues had decreased, but because spending had increased. This situation led the nation to push for a Revolution. The English Minister, Mr. Pitt, has often mentioned the state of French finances in his budgets without fully grasping the issue. If the French Parliaments had been as willing to approve decrees for new taxes as an English Parliament is to grant them, there wouldn't have been a financial crisis or a Revolution. But I'll explain this better as I go on.
It will be necessary here to show how taxes were formerly raised in France. The King, or rather the Court or Ministry acting under the use of that name, framed the edicts for taxes at their own discretion, and sent them to the Parliaments to be registered; for until they were registered by the Parliaments they were not operative. Disputes had long existed between the Court and the Parliaments with respect to the extent of the Parliament's authority on this head. The Court insisted that the authority of Parliaments went no farther than to remonstrate or show reasons against the tax, reserving to itself the right of determining whether the reasons were well or ill-founded; and in consequence thereof, either to withdraw the edict as a matter of choice, or to order it to be unregistered as a matter of authority. The Parliaments on their part insisted that they had not only a right to remonstrate, but to reject; and on this ground they were always supported by the nation.
It’s important to explain how taxes were raised in France in the past. The King, or more accurately, the Court or Ministry acting on his behalf, created tax edicts at their own discretion and sent them to the Parliaments for registration. Until these were registered by the Parliaments, they weren’t effective. There had been ongoing disputes between the Court and the Parliaments regarding the limits of the Parliaments' authority in this matter. The Court argued that the Parliaments’ power extended only to objecting or presenting reasons against the tax, retaining the right to decide whether those reasons were valid or not; as a result, they could choose to withdraw the edict or refuse to register it. The Parliaments, on the other hand, maintained that they had the right not only to object but also to reject the edict; they were always supported by the nation on this point.
But to return to the order of my narrative. M. Calonne wanted money: and as he knew the sturdy disposition of the Parliaments with respect to new taxes, he ingeniously sought either to approach them by a more gentle means than that of direct authority, or to get over their heads by a manoeuvre; and for this purpose he revived the project of assembling a body of men from the several provinces, under the style of an "Assembly of the Notables," or men of note, who met in 1787, and who were either to recommend taxes to the Parliaments, or to act as a Parliament themselves. An Assembly under this name had been called in 1617.
But to get back to my story. M. Calonne needed money, and since he knew how resistant the Parliaments were to new taxes, he cleverly tried to approach them in a gentler way rather than through direct authority, or he sought to bypass them with a strategy. To do this, he brought back the idea of assembling a group of notable figures from various provinces, known as an "Assembly of the Notables." This assembly met in 1787 and was supposed to either recommend taxes to the Parliaments or act as a Parliament themselves. An assembly with that name had been convened in 1617.
As we are to view this as the first practical step towards the Revolution, it will be proper to enter into some particulars respecting it. The Assembly of the Notables has in some places been mistaken for the States-General, but was wholly a different body, the States-General being always by election. The persons who composed the Assembly of the Notables were all nominated by the king, and consisted of one hundred and forty members. But as M. Calonne could not depend upon a majority of this Assembly in his favour, he very ingeniously arranged them in such a manner as to make forty-four a majority of one hundred and forty; to effect this he disposed of them into seven separate committees, of twenty members each. Every general question was to be decided, not by a majority of persons, but by a majority of committee, and as eleven votes would make a majority in a committee, and four committees a majority of seven, M. Calonne had good reason to conclude that as forty-four would determine any general question he could not be outvoted. But all his plans deceived him, and in the event became his overthrow.
As we consider this the first practical step towards the Revolution, it’s important to go over some details about it. The Assembly of the Notables has sometimes been confused with the States-General, but they were entirely different groups, with the States-General always being elected. The members of the Assembly of the Notables were all appointed by the king and numbered one hundred and forty in total. However, since M. Calonne could not rely on a majority of this Assembly supporting him, he cleverly arranged them so that forty-four would constitute a majority of one hundred and forty. To accomplish this, he split them into seven separate committees of twenty members each. Every general question was to be decided not by the number of votes but by the number of committees, and since eleven votes would create a majority in a committee, and four committees would make a majority of seven, M. Calonne had good reason to think that having forty-four votes would allow him to control any general question and avoid being outvoted. However, all his plans ultimately misled him and led to his downfall.
The then Marquis de la Fayette was placed in the second committee, of which the Count D'Artois was president, and as money matters were the object, it naturally brought into view every circumstance connected with it. M. de la Fayette made a verbal charge against Calonne for selling crown lands to the amount of two millions of livres, in a manner that appeared to be unknown to the king. The Count D'Artois (as if to intimidate, for the Bastille was then in being) asked the Marquis if he would render the charge in writing? He replied that he would. The Count D'Artois did not demand it, but brought a message from the king to that purport. M. de la Fayette then delivered in his charge in writing, to be given to the king, undertaking to support it. No farther proceedings were had upon this affair, but M. Calonne was soon after dismissed by the king and set off to England.
The Marquis de la Fayette was assigned to the second committee, which was led by Count D'Artois, and since the focus was on financial issues, it naturally highlighted every related matter. La Fayette accused Calonne of selling crown lands worth two million livres in a way that seemed unknown to the king. Count D'Artois, seemingly trying to intimidate him (especially since the Bastille was still standing), asked the Marquis if he would put the accusation in writing. He agreed. The Count didn't directly ask for it but relayed a message from the king to that effect. La Fayette then submitted his written charge to be handed to the king, promising to back it up. No further actions were taken on this matter, but shortly after, Calonne was dismissed by the king and left for England.
As M. de la Fayette, from the experience of what he had seen in America, was better acquainted with the science of civil government than the generality of the members who composed the Assembly of the Notables could then be, the brunt of the business fell considerably to his share. The plan of those who had a constitution in view was to contend with the Court on the ground of taxes, and some of them openly professed their object. Disputes frequently arose between Count D'Artois and M. de la Fayette upon various subjects. With respect to the arrears already incurred the latter proposed to remedy them by accommodating the expenses to the revenue instead of the revenue to the expenses; and as objects of reform he proposed to abolish the Bastille and all the State prisons throughout the nation (the keeping of which was attended with great expense), and to suppress Lettres de Cachet; but those matters were not then much attended to, and with respect to Lettres de Cachet, a majority of the Nobles appeared to be in favour of them.
As M. de la Fayette, having seen what happened in America, understood civil government better than most of the members of the Assembly of the Notables at that time, a lot of the responsibility fell on him. Those who wanted a constitution aimed to challenge the Court over taxes, and some of them openly stated their intentions. Disagreements often broke out between Count D'Artois and M. de la Fayette on various issues. Regarding the existing debts, M. de la Fayette suggested balancing expenses with revenue instead of adjusting revenue to fit the expenses. He also proposed reforms like abolishing the Bastille and all State prisons in the country, which were costly to maintain, and eliminating Lettres de Cachet; however, these ideas didn’t get much attention at the time, and most of the Nobles seemed to support Lettres de Cachet.
On the subject of supplying the Treasury by new taxes the Assembly declined taking the matter on themselves, concurring in the opinion that they had not authority. In a debate on this subject M. de la Fayette said that raising money by taxes could only be done by a National Assembly, freely elected by the people, and acting as their representatives. Do you mean, said the Count D'Artois, the States-General? M. de la Fayette replied that he did. Will you, said the Count D'Artois, sign what you say to be given to the king? The other replied that he would not only do this but that he would go farther, and say that the effectual mode would be for the king to agree to the establishment of a constitution.
On the topic of funding the Treasury through new taxes, the Assembly chose not to take action, agreeing that they lacked the authority. During a discussion on this topic, M. de la Fayette stated that collecting taxes could only be done by a National Assembly, elected by the people, and acting as their representatives. "Are you referring to the States-General?" asked Count D'Artois. M. de la Fayette confirmed that he was. "Are you willing," asked Count D'Artois, "to put that in writing for the king?" M. de la Fayette replied that he would not only do that but also go further, suggesting that the best way forward would be for the king to agree to establish a constitution.
As one of the plans had thus failed, that of getting the Assembly to act as a Parliament, the other came into view, that of recommending. On this subject the Assembly agreed to recommend two new taxes to be unregistered by the Parliament: the one a stamp-tax and the other a territorial tax, or sort of land-tax. The two have been estimated at about five millions sterling per annum. We have now to turn our attention to the Parliaments, on whom the business was again devolving.
As one of the plans had failed, which was to have the Assembly function like a Parliament, the other option emerged, which was to recommend. Regarding this, the Assembly agreed to propose two new taxes to be unapproved by Parliament: one was a stamp tax and the other a land tax. Together, they were estimated to raise about five million pounds a year. Now we need to focus on the Parliaments, to whom the responsibility was once again falling.
The Archbishop of Thoulouse (since Archbishop of Sens, and now a Cardinal), was appointed to the administration of the finances soon after the dismission of Calonne. He was also made Prime Minister, an office that did not always exist in France. When this office did not exist, the chief of each of the principal departments transacted business immediately with the King, but when a Prime Minister was appointed they did business only with him. The Archbishop arrived to more state authority than any minister since the Duke de Choiseul, and the nation was strongly disposed in his favour; but by a line of conduct scarcely to be accounted for he perverted every opportunity, turned out a despot, and sunk into disgrace, and a Cardinal.
The Archbishop of Toulouse (who was previously the Archbishop of Sens and is now a Cardinal) was put in charge of managing finances shortly after Calonne was dismissed. He was also appointed as Prime Minister, a role that hasn’t always been present in France. When there was no Prime Minister, the heads of the main departments dealt directly with the King, but when a Prime Minister was appointed, they only interacted with him. The Archbishop held more power than any minister since the Duke de Choiseul, and the people were largely supportive of him. However, through a series of inexplicable choices, he mismanaged every chance he had, became a tyrant, and fell into disgrace, ultimately becoming just a Cardinal.
The Assembly of the Notables having broken up, the minister sent the edicts for the two new taxes recommended by the Assembly to the Parliaments to be unregistered. They of course came first before the Parliament of Paris, who returned for answer: "that with such a revenue as the nation then supported the name of taxes ought not to be mentioned but for the purpose of reducing them"; and threw both the edicts out.*8 On this refusal the Parliament was ordered to Versailles, where, in the usual form, the King held what under the old government was called a Bed of justice; and the two edicts were unregistered in presence of the Parliament by an order of State, in the manner mentioned, earlier. On this the Parliament immediately returned to Paris, renewed their session in form, and ordered the enregistering to be struck out, declaring that everything done at Versailles was illegal. All the members of the Parliament were then served with Lettres de Cachet, and exiled to Troyes; but as they continued as inflexible in exile as before, and as vengeance did not supply the place of taxes, they were after a short time recalled to Paris.
The Assembly of the Notables had disbanded, and the minister sent the edicts for the two new taxes suggested by the Assembly to the Parliaments to be canceled. Naturally, they first went before the Parliament of Paris, which responded that “with the current revenue the nation supports, the term taxes should only be used for the purpose of lowering them,” and rejected both edicts. On this refusal, the Parliament was ordered to Versailles, where, in the traditional manner, the King held what was known in the old government as a Bed of justice; and the two edicts were canceled in front of the Parliament by an order of State, as mentioned earlier. Following this, the Parliament immediately returned to Paris, formally resumed their session, and ordered the cancellation to be erased, stating that everything done at Versailles was illegal. All members of the Parliament were then served with Lettres de Cachet and exiled to Troyes; however, as they remained just as unyielding in exile as before, and vengeance did not compensate for the lack of taxes, they were recalled to Paris after a short time.
The edicts were again tendered to them, and the Count D'Artois undertook to act as representative of the King. For this purpose he came from Versailles to Paris, in a train of procession; and the Parliament were assembled to receive him. But show and parade had lost their influence in France; and whatever ideas of importance he might set off with, he had to return with those of mortification and disappointment. On alighting from his carriage to ascend the steps of the Parliament House, the crowd (which was numerously collected) threw out trite expressions, saying: "This is Monsieur D'Artois, who wants more of our money to spend." The marked disapprobation which he saw impressed him with apprehensions, and the word Aux armes! (To arms!) was given out by the officer of the guard who attended him. It was so loudly vociferated, that it echoed through the avenues of the house, and produced a temporary confusion. I was then standing in one of the apartments through which he had to pass, and could not avoid reflecting how wretched was the condition of a disrespected man.
The edicts were presented to them again, and Count D'Artois took it upon himself to act as the King's representative. He traveled from Versailles to Paris in an impressive procession, and the Parliament gathered to welcome him. However, the show and spectacle had lost their appeal in France; no matter what important ideas he brought with him, he had to leave feeling humiliated and disappointed. As he stepped out of his carriage to go up the Parliament House steps, the large crowd shouted clichés, saying, "This is Monsieur D'Artois, who wants more of our money to waste." The strong disapproval he faced filled him with anxiety, and the officer of the guard accompanying him shouted the call to arms, "Aux armes!" It was shouted so loudly that it echoed through the corridors of the house, causing a moment of panic. I was standing in one of the rooms he had to pass through, and I couldn’t help but think about how miserable it must be to be a disrespected man.
He endeavoured to impress the Parliament by great words, and opened his authority by saying, "The King, our Lord and Master." The Parliament received him very coolly, and with their usual determination not to register the taxes: and in this manner the interview ended.
He tried to impress Parliament with grand statements and started by saying, "The King, our Lord and Master." Parliament responded rather coldly, maintaining their usual determination not to approve the taxes. And this is how the meeting concluded.
After this a new subject took place: In the various debates and contests which arose between the Court and the Parliaments on the subject of taxes, the Parliament of Paris at last declared that although it had been customary for Parliaments to enregister edicts for taxes as a matter of convenience, the right belonged only to the States-General; and that, therefore, the Parliament could no longer with propriety continue to debate on what it had not authority to act. The King after this came to Paris and held a meeting with the Parliament, in which he continued from ten in the morning till about six in the evening, and, in a manner that appeared to proceed from him as if unconsulted upon with the Cabinet or Ministry, gave his word to the Parliament that the States-General should be convened.
After this, a new topic came up: In the various debates and contests that emerged between the Court and the Parliaments over taxes, the Parliament of Paris finally stated that while it had been customary for Parliaments to register edicts for taxes for convenience, the right to do so belonged only to the States-General. Therefore, the Parliament could no longer properly debate matters it didn’t have the authority to act on. Following this, the King came to Paris and held a meeting with the Parliament, which lasted from ten in the morning until about six in the evening. In a way that seemed spontaneous and not pre-discussed with his Cabinet or Ministry, he assured the Parliament that the States-General would be convened.
But after this another scene arose, on a ground different from all the former. The Minister and the Cabinet were averse to calling the States-General. They well knew that if the States-General were assembled, themselves must fall; and as the King had not mentioned any time, they hit on a project calculated to elude, without appearing to oppose.
But after this, another scene unfolded, set in a completely different context. The Minister and the Cabinet were not in favor of calling the States-General. They knew very well that if the States-General were convened, they would lose their positions; and since the King hadn’t specified a time, they came up with a plan designed to avoid that outcome without seeming to resist it.
For this purpose, the Court set about making a sort of constitution itself. It was principally the work of M. Lamoignon, the Keeper of the Seals, who afterwards shot himself. This new arrangement consisted in establishing a body under the name of a Cour Pleniere, or Full Court, in which were invested all the powers that the Government might have occasion to make use of. The persons composing this Court were to be nominated by the King; the contended right of taxation was given up on the part of the King, and a new criminal code of laws and law proceedings was substituted in the room of the former. The thing, in many points, contained better principles than those upon which the Government had hitherto been administered; but with respect to the Cour Pleniere, it was no other than a medium through which despotism was to pass, without appearing to act directly from itself.
For this purpose, the Court set out to create a kind of constitution itself. It was mainly the work of M. Lamoignon, the Keeper of the Seals, who later killed himself. This new structure involved establishing a body called the Cour Pleniere, or Full Court, which was given all the powers that the Government might need to use. The members of this Court were to be nominated by the King; the contested right of taxation was relinquished by the King, and a new criminal code and legal procedures replaced the old ones. In many ways, it included better principles than those that had previously governed the system; however, regarding the Cour Pleniere, it served merely as a mechanism through which despotism could operate without appearing to act directly from itself.
The Cabinet had high expectations from their new contrivance. The people who were to compose the Cour Pleniere were already nominated; and as it was necessary to carry a fair appearance, many of the best characters in the nation were appointed among the number. It was to commence on May 8, 1788; but an opposition arose to it on two grounds the one as to principle, the other as to form.
The Cabinet had high hopes for their new device. The people who were to make up the Cour Pleniere were already chosen, and to maintain a good image, many of the most respected individuals in the country were included. It was set to start on May 8, 1788; however, opposition emerged for two reasons: one related to principles and the other to the structure.
On the ground of Principle it was contended that Government had not a right to alter itself, and that if the practice was once admitted it would grow into a principle and be made a precedent for any future alterations the Government might wish to establish: that the right of altering the Government was a national right, and not a right of Government. And on the ground of form it was contended that the Cour Pleniere was nothing more than a larger Cabinet.
On the basis of principle, it was argued that the government didn't have the right to change itself, and that if this practice was allowed, it would become a principle and set a precedent for any future changes the government might want to make: that the right to change the government was a national right, not a government right. And on the basis of form, it was argued that the Cour Pleniere was just a larger cabinet.
The then Duke de la Rochefoucault, Luxembourg, De Noailles, and many others, refused to accept the nomination, and strenuously opposed the whole plan. When the edict for establishing this new court was sent to the Parliaments to be unregistered and put into execution, they resisted also. The Parliament of Paris not only refused, but denied the authority; and the contest renewed itself between the Parliament and the Cabinet more strongly than ever. While the Parliament were sitting in debate on this subject, the Ministry ordered a regiment of soldiers to surround the House and form a blockade. The members sent out for beds and provisions, and lived as in a besieged citadel: and as this had no effect, the commanding officer was ordered to enter the Parliament House and seize them, which he did, and some of the principal members were shut up in different prisons. About the same time a deputation of persons arrived from the province of Brittany to remonstrate against the establishment of the Cour Pleniere, and those the archbishop sent to the Bastille. But the spirit of the nation was not to be overcome, and it was so fully sensible of the strong ground it had taken—that of withholding taxes—that it contented itself with keeping up a sort of quiet resistance, which effectually overthrew all the plans at that time formed against it. The project of the Cour Pleniere was at last obliged to be given up, and the Prime Minister not long afterwards followed its fate, and M. Neckar was recalled into office.
The Duke de la Rochefoucault, Luxembourg, De Noailles, and several others refused to accept the nomination and strongly opposed the entire plan. When the order to establish this new court was sent to the Parliaments for registration and enforcement, they resisted as well. The Parliament of Paris not only refused but also denied the authority of the order, and the conflict between the Parliament and the Cabinet intensified more than ever. While the Parliament debated this issue, the Ministry ordered a regiment of soldiers to surround the House and create a blockade. The members called for beds and supplies, living as if they were in a besieged fortress. Since this had no effect, the commanding officer was ordered to enter the Parliament House and arrest them, which he did, leading to the imprisonment of some key members in various jails. Around the same time, a group from Brittany arrived to protest the establishment of the Cour Pleniere, and those were sent by the archbishop to the Bastille. However, the spirit of the nation was not easily broken, and it was fully aware of its strong position—refusing to pay taxes—so it maintained a form of quiet resistance that effectively undermined all the plans against it at that time. The project for the Cour Pleniere had to be abandoned, and soon after, the Prime Minister also lost his position, leading to M. Neckar being recalled into office.
The attempt to establish the Cour Pleniere had an effect upon the nation which itself did not perceive. It was a sort of new form of government that insensibly served to put the old one out of sight and to unhinge it from the superstitious authority of antiquity. It was Government dethroning Government; and the old one, by attempting to make a new one, made a chasm.
The effort to set up the Cour Pleniere had an impact on the nation that it didn't even realize. It was a new kind of government that gradually overshadowed the old one and disconnected it from the traditional authority of the past. It was the government replacing the government; and in trying to create a new system, the old one created a gap.
The failure of this scheme renewed the subject of convening the State-General; and this gave rise to a new series of politics. There was no settled form for convening the States-General: all that it positively meant was a deputation from what was then called the Clergy, the Noblesse, and the Commons; but their numbers or their proportions had not been always the same. They had been convened only on extraordinary occasions, the last of which was in 1614; their numbers were then in equal proportions, and they voted by orders.
The collapse of this plan brought back the discussion about gathering the State-General, leading to a new wave of political activity. There wasn’t a fixed way to call the States-General; it simply referred to a delegation from what was known as the Clergy, the Nobility, and the Commons. However, their numbers or proportions weren’t always consistent. They had only been called together in exceptional circumstances, the last time being in 1614; at that time, their numbers were equal, and they voted by groups.
It could not well escape the sagacity of M. Neckar, that the mode of 1614 would answer neither the purpose of the then government nor of the nation. As matters were at that time circumstanced it would have been too contentious to agree upon anything. The debates would have been endless upon privileges and exemptions, in which neither the wants of the Government nor the wishes of the nation for a Constitution would have been attended to. But as he did not choose to take the decision upon himself, he summoned again the Assembly of the Notables and referred it to them. This body was in general interested in the decision, being chiefly of aristocracy and high-paid clergy, and they decided in favor of the mode of 1614. This decision was against the sense of the Nation, and also against the wishes of the Court; for the aristocracy opposed itself to both and contended for privileges independent of either. The subject was then taken up by the Parliament, who recommended that the number of the Commons should be equal to the other two: and they should all sit in one house and vote in one body. The number finally determined on was 1,200; 600 to be chosen by the Commons (and this was less than their proportion ought to have been when their worth and consequence is considered on a national scale), 300 by the Clergy, and 300 by the Aristocracy; but with respect to the mode of assembling themselves, whether together or apart, or the manner in which they should vote, those matters were referred.*9
M. Neckar was well aware that the approach from 1614 wouldn't meet the needs of the government or the nation at that time. Given the circumstances, agreeing on anything would have been too contentious. The debates would have dragged on endlessly over privileges and exemptions, ignoring both the government's needs and the nation's desire for a Constitution. Since he didn’t want to make the decision alone, he called for another meeting of the Assembly of Notables and passed it on to them. This group, mostly made up of aristocrats and high-paid clergy, had a vested interest in the decision, and they ended up supporting the approach from 1614. This choice went against the will of the nation and the wishes of the court, as the aristocracy opposed both and argued for privileges independent of either. The issue was then taken up by the Parliament, which suggested that the number of Commons should equal that of the other two groups, with all of them sitting in one house and voting as a single body. The final number decided was 1,200: 600 to be chosen by the Commons (which was less than their fair share considering their importance at a national level), 300 by the Clergy, and 300 by the Aristocracy. However, matters concerning how they would assemble—whether together or separately—and how they would vote were left undecided.*9
The election that followed was not a contested election, but an animated one. The candidates were not men, but principles. Societies were formed in Paris, and committees of correspondence and communication established throughout the nation, for the purpose of enlightening the people, and explaining to them the principles of civil government; and so orderly was the election conducted, that it did not give rise even to the rumour of tumult.
The election that took place was not a competitive one, but it was lively. The candidates weren't individuals; they were ideas. Groups were created in Paris, and committees for correspondence and communication were set up all over the country, aiming to educate the public and explain the principles of civil government. The election was so well-organized that it didn't even lead to rumors of chaos.
The States-General were to meet at Versailles in April 1789, but did not assemble till May. They situated themselves in three separate chambers, or rather the Clergy and Aristocracy withdrew each into a separate chamber. The majority of the Aristocracy claimed what they called the privilege of voting as a separate body, and of giving their consent or their negative in that manner; and many of the bishops and the high-beneficed clergy claimed the same privilege on the part of their Order.
The States-General were supposed to meet at Versailles in April 1789, but they didn't gather until May. They settled into three separate chambers, or more accurately, the Clergy and the Aristocracy each moved into their own chambers. Most of the Aristocracy asserted what they referred to as the right to vote as a separate group, allowing them to give their approval or disapproval that way; many of the bishops and high-ranking clergy members also claimed the same right for their Order.
The Tiers Etat (as they were then called) disowned any knowledge of artificial orders and artificial privileges; and they were not only resolute on this point, but somewhat disdainful. They began to consider the Aristocracy as a kind of fungus growing out of the corruption of society, that could not be admitted even as a branch of it; and from the disposition the Aristocracy had shown by upholding Lettres de Cachet, and in sundry other instances, it was manifest that no constitution could be formed by admitting men in any other character than as National Men.
The Third Estate (as they were called at the time) rejected any idea of artificial hierarchies and privileges. They were not only determined about this but also a bit contemptuous. They started to see the Aristocracy as a sort of fungus that thrived on society's corruption, which couldn’t even be considered a legitimate part of it; given the Aristocracy’s behavior in supporting Lettres de Cachet and in various other cases, it was clear that no real constitution could be created by acknowledging people in any role other than as Citizens of the Nation.
After various altercations on this head, the Tiers Etat or Commons (as they were then called) declared themselves (on a motion made for that purpose by the Abbe Sieyes) "The Representative Of The Nation; and that the two Orders could be considered but as deputies of corporations, and could only have a deliberate voice when they assembled in a national character with the national representatives." This proceeding extinguished the style of Etats Generaux, or States-General, and erected it into the style it now bears, that of L'Assemblee Nationale, or National Assembly.
After various disagreements on this matter, the Third Estate (or Commons, as they were known at that time) declared themselves (following a motion made for that purpose by Abbe Sieyes) "The Representative of the Nation," stating that the other two Orders should be seen merely as representatives of their respective groups and could only have a voice when they came together in a national capacity with the national representatives. This action replaced the title of États Généraux, or States-General, with its current title, L'Assemblée Nationale, or National Assembly.
This motion was not made in a precipitate manner. It was the result of cool deliberation, and concerned between the national representatives and the patriotic members of the two chambers, who saw into the folly, mischief, and injustice of artificial privileged distinctions. It was become evident, that no constitution, worthy of being called by that name, could be established on anything less than a national ground. The Aristocracy had hitherto opposed the despotism of the Court, and affected the language of patriotism; but it opposed it as its rival (as the English Barons opposed King John) and it now opposed the nation from the same motives.
This motion wasn’t made hastily. It came from careful consideration and involved discussions between the national representatives and the patriotic members of both chambers, who recognized the foolishness, harm, and injustice of artificial privileged distinctions. It became clear that no constitution worthy of that name could be established on anything less than a national basis. The Aristocracy had previously resisted the tyranny of the Court while pretending to speak for patriotism; however, it opposed it as a competitor (just like the English Barons opposed King John) and now stood against the nation for the same reasons.
On carrying this motion, the national representatives, as had been concerted, sent an invitation to the two chambers, to unite with them in a national character, and proceed to business. A majority of the clergy, chiefly of the parish priests, withdrew from the clerical chamber, and joined the nation; and forty-five from the other chamber joined in like manner. There is a sort of secret history belonging to this last circumstance, which is necessary to its explanation; it was not judged prudent that all the patriotic members of the chamber styling itself the Nobles, should quit it at once; and in consequence of this arrangement, they drew off by degrees, always leaving some, as well to reason the case, as to watch the suspected. In a little time the numbers increased from forty-five to eighty, and soon after to a greater number; which, with the majority of the clergy, and the whole of the national representatives, put the malcontents in a very diminutive condition.
When this motion was carried, the national representatives, as planned, sent an invitation to both chambers to join them in a national capacity and start working together. A majority of the clergy, mainly parish priests, left the clerical chamber and aligned with the nation, and forty-five members from the other chamber did the same. There’s a sort of hidden story connected to this last point that’s important for understanding it; it wasn’t considered wise for all the patriotic members of the chamber calling itself the Nobles to leave at the same time. Because of this strategy, they gradually withdrew, always leaving some behind to discuss the situation and keep an eye on those they suspected. Before long, the numbers grew from forty-five to eighty, and soon after to an even larger count; this, combined with the majority of the clergy and all the national representatives, left the dissenters in a very weak position.
The King, who, very different from the general class called by that name, is a man of a good heart, showed himself disposed to recommend a union of the three chambers, on the ground the National Assembly had taken; but the malcontents exerted themselves to prevent it, and began now to have another project in view. Their numbers consisted of a majority of the aristocratical chamber, and the minority of the clerical chamber, chiefly of bishops and high-beneficed clergy; and these men were determined to put everything to issue, as well by strength as by stratagem. They had no objection to a constitution; but it must be such a one as themselves should dictate, and suited to their own views and particular situations. On the other hand, the Nation disowned knowing anything of them but as citizens, and was determined to shut out all such up-start pretensions. The more aristocracy appeared, the more it was despised; there was a visible imbecility and want of intellects in the majority, a sort of je ne sais quoi, that while it affected to be more than citizen, was less than man. It lost ground from contempt more than from hatred; and was rather jeered at as an ass, than dreaded as a lion. This is the general character of aristocracy, or what are called Nobles or Nobility, or rather No-ability, in all countries.
The King, unlike the typical person referred to by that title, was a good-hearted man who was open to the idea of uniting the three chambers based on the National Assembly's stance. However, the dissenters worked hard to block this, and they started plotting something else. Their group was mainly made up of a majority from the aristocratic chamber and a minority from the clerical chamber, mainly bishops and high-ranking clergy. These individuals were determined to push their agenda through both force and cunning. They were okay with having a constitution, but it needed to be one that they controlled, tailored to their own interests and situations. Conversely, the Nation rejected them, only recognizing them as citizens and firmly deciding to reject their pretentious claims. The more the aristocracy tried to assert itself, the more it was looked down upon; there was a clear lack of intelligence and capability in the majority, an ineffable quality that, while pretending to be more than just citizens, was even less than human. It lost its influence due to contempt rather than hatred, and was more likely to be mocked as a fool than feared like a beast. This represents the general nature of aristocracy, or what are called Nobles or Nobility, or perhaps No-ability, in all countries.
The plan of the malcontents consisted now of two things; either to deliberate and vote by chambers (or orders), more especially on all questions respecting a Constitution (by which the aristocratical chamber would have had a negative on any article of the Constitution); or, in case they could not accomplish this object, to overthrow the National Assembly entirely.
The plan of the dissenters now included two options: either to discuss and vote by chambers (or orders), particularly on all matters related to a Constitution (which would allow the aristocratic chamber to veto any article of the Constitution); or, if they couldn't achieve this goal, to take down the National Assembly completely.
To effect one or other of these objects they began to cultivate a friendship with the despotism they had hitherto attempted to rival, and the Count D'Artois became their chief. The king (who has since declared himself deceived into their measures) held, according to the old form, a Bed of Justice, in which he accorded to the deliberation and vote par tete (by head) upon several subjects; but reserved the deliberation and vote upon all questions respecting a constitution to the three chambers separately. This declaration of the king was made against the advice of M. Neckar, who now began to perceive that he was growing out of fashion at Court, and that another minister was in contemplation.
To achieve one or the other of these goals, they started to build a friendship with the autocracy they had previously tried to challenge, and Count D'Artois became their leader. The king (who later claimed he was misled into supporting their plans) held a Bed of Justice in the traditional manner, where he permitted discussions and votes by head on several issues; however, he reserved discussions and votes on all constitutional questions for the three chambers separately. This announcement from the king was made against the advice of M. Neckar, who was starting to notice that he was losing favor at Court and that another minister was being considered.
As the form of sitting in separate chambers was yet apparently kept up, though essentially destroyed, the national representatives immediately after this declaration of the King resorted to their own chambers to consult on a protest against it; and the minority of the chamber (calling itself the Nobles), who had joined the national cause, retired to a private house to consult in like manner. The malcontents had by this time concerted their measures with the court, which the Count D'Artois undertook to conduct; and as they saw from the discontent which the declaration excited, and the opposition making against it, that they could not obtain a control over the intended constitution by a separate vote, they prepared themselves for their final object—that of conspiring against the National Assembly, and overthrowing it.
As the practice of sitting in separate chambers was still apparently maintained, even though it was effectively broken, the national representatives immediately after the King’s declaration went back to their chambers to discuss a protest against it. The minority in the chamber (calling themselves the Nobles), who had aligned with the national cause, retreated to a private house for their own discussions. By this time, the discontented had coordinated their plans with the court, which Count D'Artois took upon himself to lead; and seeing the unrest that the declaration stirred up and the opposition it faced, they realized they couldn't gain control over the planned constitution through a separate vote. Therefore, they readied themselves for their ultimate goal—to conspire against the National Assembly and bring it down.
The next morning the door of the chamber of the National Assembly was shut against them, and guarded by troops; and the members were refused admittance. On this they withdrew to a tennis-ground in the neighbourhood of Versailles, as the most convenient place they could find, and, after renewing their session, took an oath never to separate from each other, under any circumstance whatever, death excepted, until they had established a constitution. As the experiment of shutting up the house had no other effect than that of producing a closer connection in the members, it was opened again the next day, and the public business recommenced in the usual place.
The next morning, the door to the National Assembly was locked against them and guarded by troops, and the members were denied entry. In response, they moved to a nearby tennis court in Versailles, which was the most convenient spot they could find, and after reconvening, they took an oath to never separate from one another, under any circumstances except death, until they had established a constitution. Since the attempt to lock them out only strengthened their unity, the assembly was reopened the following day, and public business resumed in the usual location.
We are now to have in view the forming of the new ministry, which was to accomplish the overthrow of the National Assembly. But as force would be necessary, orders were issued to assemble thirty thousand troops, the command of which was given to Broglio, one of the intended new ministry, who was recalled from the country for this purpose. But as some management was necessary to keep this plan concealed till the moment it should be ready for execution, it is to this policy that a declaration made by Count D'Artois must be attributed, and which is here proper to be introduced.
We are now looking at the formation of the new government, which aimed to bring down the National Assembly. Since force would be required, orders were given to gather thirty thousand troops, commanded by Broglio, who was one of the proposed members of the new government and was brought back from the countryside for this task. However, some strategy was needed to keep this plan secret until the right moment for it to be put into action, which is why a statement made by Count D'Artois should be highlighted here.
It could not but occur while the malcontents continued to resort to their chambers separate from the National Assembly, more jealousy would be excited than if they were mixed with it, and that the plot might be suspected. But as they had taken their ground, and now wanted a pretence for quitting it, it was necessary that one should be devised. This was effectually accomplished by a declaration made by the Count D'Artois: "That if they took not a Part in the National Assembly, the life of the king would be endangered": on which they quitted their chambers, and mixed with the Assembly, in one body.
It was bound to happen that while the dissenters kept retreating to their separate chambers instead of joining the National Assembly, it would stir up more jealousy than if they were involved, and their plot might get uncovered. However, since they had already established their position and needed an excuse to leave it, they had to come up with a reason. This was effectively achieved through a statement made by Count D'Artois: "If they don’t participate in the National Assembly, the king's life will be at risk." After that, they left their chambers and joined the Assembly as one group.
At the time this declaration was made, it was generally treated as a piece of absurdity in Count D'Artois calculated merely to relieve the outstanding members of the two chambers from the diminutive situation they were put in; and if nothing more had followed, this conclusion would have been good. But as things best explain themselves by their events, this apparent union was only a cover to the machinations which were secretly going on; and the declaration accommodated itself to answer that purpose. In a little time the National Assembly found itself surrounded by troops, and thousands more were daily arriving. On this a very strong declaration was made by the National Assembly to the King, remonstrating on the impropriety of the measure, and demanding the reason. The King, who was not in the secret of this business, as himself afterwards declared, gave substantially for answer, that he had no other object in view than to preserve the public tranquility, which appeared to be much disturbed.
At the time this declaration was made, it was mostly seen as a ridiculous move by Count D'Artois aimed simply at getting the members of the two chambers out of the awkward position they found themselves in; if nothing else had happened, that conclusion would have been valid. However, as events tend to reveal the truth, this apparent unity was just a cover for the secret schemes that were occurring behind the scenes, and the declaration was crafted to serve that purpose. Before long, the National Assembly found itself surrounded by troops, with thousands more arriving daily. In response, the National Assembly issued a strong declaration to the King, complaining about the inappropriateness of the situation and asking for an explanation. The King, who claimed later that he wasn't aware of what was really going on, responded essentially that his only aim was to maintain public peace, which seemed to be significantly disrupted.
But in a few days from this time the plot unravelled itself M. Neckar and the ministry were displaced, and a new one formed of the enemies of the Revolution; and Broglio, with between twenty-five and thirty thousand foreign troops, was arrived to support them. The mask was now thrown off, and matters were come to a crisis. The event was that in a space of three days the new ministry and their abettors found it prudent to fly the nation; the Bastille was taken, and Broglio and his foreign troops dispersed, as is already related in the former part of this work.
But just a few days later, the situation changed dramatically. M. Neckar and the rest of the ministry were ousted, and a new government was formed by those opposed to the Revolution. Broglio arrived with about twenty-five to thirty thousand foreign troops to back them up. The pretense was dropped, and things reached a breaking point. Within three days, the new ministry and their supporters decided it was wise to flee the country; the Bastille was stormed, and Broglio and his foreign troops were scattered, as previously described in the earlier sections of this work.
There are some curious circumstances in the history of this short-lived ministry, and this short-lived attempt at a counter-revolution. The Palace of Versailles, where the Court was sitting, was not more than four hundred yards distant from the hall where the National Assembly was sitting. The two places were at this moment like the separate headquarters of two combatant armies; yet the Court was as perfectly ignorant of the information which had arrived from Paris to the National Assembly, as if it had resided at an hundred miles distance. The then Marquis de la Fayette, who (as has been already mentioned) was chosen to preside in the National Assembly on this particular occasion, named by order of the Assembly three successive deputations to the king, on the day and up to the evening on which the Bastille was taken, to inform and confer with him on the state of affairs; but the ministry, who knew not so much as that it was attacked, precluded all communication, and were solacing themselves how dextrously they had succeeded; but in a few hours the accounts arrived so thick and fast that they had to start from their desks and run. Some set off in one disguise, and some in another, and none in their own character. Their anxiety now was to outride the news, lest they should be stopt, which, though it flew fast, flew not so fast as themselves.
There are some interesting events in the history of this short-lived ministry and its brief attempt at a counter-revolution. The Palace of Versailles, where the Court was located, was only about four hundred yards from the hall where the National Assembly was meeting. At that moment, the two locations felt like the separate headquarters of two opposing armies; yet the Court was completely unaware of the information coming from Paris to the National Assembly, as if it were a hundred miles away. The Marquis de la Fayette, who was mentioned earlier and chosen to lead the National Assembly on this occasion, appointed three successive delegations to visit the king on the day and evening the Bastille was taken, to inform him and discuss the situation. However, the ministry, unaware that their position was under attack, cut off all communication and congratulated themselves on their cleverness; but in just a few hours, reports came in so rapidly that they had to abandon their desks and flee. Some left in one disguise, others in another, none in their real identities. Their main concern was to outrun the news so they wouldn’t be caught, which, despite traveling fast, didn’t move as quickly as they did.
It is worth remarking that the National Assembly neither pursued those fugitive conspirators, nor took any notice of them, nor sought to retaliate in any shape whatever. Occupied with establishing a constitution founded on the Rights of Man and the Authority of the People, the only authority on which Government has a right to exist in any country, the National Assembly felt none of those mean passions which mark the character of impertinent governments, founding themselves on their own authority, or on the absurdity of hereditary succession. It is the faculty of the human mind to become what it contemplates, and to act in unison with its object.
It’s important to note that the National Assembly neither went after those escaping conspirators, nor paid them any attention, nor tried to take any kind of revenge. Focused on creating a constitution based on the Rights of Man and the Authority of the People, the only valid foundation for government in any nation, the National Assembly didn’t feel any of the petty emotions that define the nature of arrogant governments that base themselves on their own authority or the nonsense of hereditary rule. The human mind has the ability to become what it focuses on and to act in harmony with its target.
The conspiracy being thus dispersed, one of the first works of the National Assembly, instead of vindictive proclamations, as has been the case with other governments, was to publish a declaration of the Rights of Man, as the basis on which the new constitution was to be built, and which is here subjoined:
The conspiracy being broken up, one of the first actions of the National Assembly, instead of vengeful declarations like other governments have done, was to issue a declaration of the Rights of Man as the foundation for the new constitution, which is included here:
Declaration Of The Rights Of Man And Of Citizens By The National Assembly Of France
Declaration Of The Rights Of Man And Citizens By The National Assembly Of France
The representatives of the people of France, formed into a National Assembly, considering that ignorance, neglect, or contempt of human rights, are the sole causes of public misfortunes and corruptions of Government, have resolved to set forth in a solemn declaration, these natural, imprescriptible, and inalienable rights: that this declaration being constantly present to the minds of the members of the body social, they may be forever kept attentive to their rights and their duties; that the acts of the legislative and executive powers of Government, being capable of being every moment compared with the end of political institutions, may be more respected; and also, that the future claims of the citizens, being directed by simple and incontestable principles, may always tend to the maintenance of the Constitution, and the general happiness.
The representatives of the people of France, organized as a National Assembly, recognize that ignorance, neglect, or disregard for human rights are the main causes of public suffering and government corruption. They have decided to outline in a formal declaration these natural, inherent, and non-transferable rights: that this declaration remains constantly in the thoughts of the members of society so they remain aware of their rights and responsibilities; that the actions of the legislative and executive branches of government can be constantly measured against the purpose of political institutions, thus earning more respect; and also, that the future demands of citizens, guided by clear and undeniable principles, will always focus on upholding the Constitution and promoting overall happiness.
For these reasons the National Assembly doth recognize and declare, in the presence of the Supreme Being, and with the hope of his blessing and favour, the following sacred rights of men and of citizens:
For these reasons, the National Assembly recognizes and declares, in the presence of a higher power, and with the hope of receiving blessings and favor, the following sacred rights of individuals and citizens:
One: Men are born, and always continue, free and equal in respect of their Rights. Civil distinctions, therefore, can be founded only on Public Utility.
One: Men are born and always remain free and equal when it comes to their Rights. Civil distinctions, therefore, can only be based on Public Utility.
Two: The end of all Political associations is the Preservation of the Natural and Imprescriptible Rights of Man; and these rights are Liberty, Property, Security, and Resistance of Oppression.
Two: The purpose of all political associations is to safeguard the natural and inherent rights of individuals; these rights include liberty, property, security, and the ability to resist oppression.
Three: The Nation is essentially the source of all Sovereignty; nor can any individual, or any body of Men, be entitled to any authority which is not expressly derived from it.
Three: The Nation is basically the source of all power; no individual or group of people can claim any authority that's not clearly derived from it.
Four: Political Liberty consists in the power of doing whatever does not Injure another. The exercise of the Natural Rights of every Man, has no other limits than those which are necessary to secure to every other Man the Free exercise of the same Rights; and these limits are determinable only by the Law.
Four: Political Liberty means having the freedom to do anything that doesn’t harm someone else. Every person’s Natural Rights can only be limited by what’s needed to ensure that everyone else can freely exercise the same Rights; and these limits can only be defined by the Law.
Five: The Law ought to Prohibit only actions hurtful to Society. What is not Prohibited by the Law should not be hindered; nor should anyone be compelled to that which the Law does not Require.
Five: The law should only ban actions that harm society. Anything that isn’t prohibited by the law shouldn’t be restricted, and no one should be forced to do what the law doesn’t require.
Six: the Law is an expression of the Will of the Community. All Citizens have a right to concur, either personally or by their Representatives, in its formation. It Should be the same to all, whether it protects or punishes; and all being equal in its sight, are equally eligible to all Honours, Places, and employments, according to their different abilities, without any other distinction than that created by their Virtues and talents.
Six: the Law represents the Will of the Community. Every Citizen has the right to participate, either directly or through their Representatives, in its creation. It should apply equally to everyone, whether it offers protection or punishment; and since all are equal in its eyes, they are equally qualified for all Honors, Positions, and jobs, based on their individual abilities, without any distinction other than that arising from their Virtues and talents.
Seven: No Man should be accused, arrested, or held in confinement, except in cases determined by the Law, and according to the forms which it has prescribed. All who promote, solicit, execute, or cause to be executed, arbitrary orders, ought to be punished, and every Citizen called upon, or apprehended by virtue of the Law, ought immediately to obey, and renders himself culpable by resistance.
Seven: No one should be accused, arrested, or detained, except in cases established by law, and according to the procedures it has set out. Anyone who promotes, solicits, carries out, or causes arbitrary orders to be carried out should be punished, and every citizen who is called upon or apprehended under the law must comply immediately, and they are guilty if they resist.
Eight: The Law ought to impose no other penalties but such as are absolutely and evidently necessary; and no one ought to be punished, but in virtue of a Law promulgated before the offence, and Legally applied.
Eight: The law should only impose penalties that are clearly and absolutely necessary; and no one should be punished except under a law that was established before the offense and legally enforced.
Nine: Every Man being presumed innocent till he has been convicted, whenever his detention becomes indispensable, all rigour to him, more than is necessary to secure his person, ought to be provided against by the Law.
Nine: Every person is assumed innocent until proven guilty. Whenever someone's detention is absolutely necessary, the law should ensure that no more harsh treatment is applied than what is needed to keep them secure.
Ten: No Man ought to be molested on account of his opinions, not even on account of his Religious opinions, provided his avowal of them does not disturb the Public Order established by the Law.
Ten: No one should be bothered because of their opinions, including their religious beliefs, as long as expressing those beliefs doesn’t disrupt the public order set by the law.
Eleven: The unrestrained communication of thoughts and opinions being one of the Most Precious Rights of Man, every Citizen may speak, write, and publish freely, provided he is responsible for the abuse of this Liberty, in cases determined by the Law.
Eleven: The unrestricted sharing of thoughts and opinions is one of the most valuable rights of man. Every citizen can speak, write, and publish freely, as long as they are accountable for any misuse of this freedom, in cases specified by the law.
Twelve: A Public force being necessary to give security to the Rights of Men and of Citizens, that force is instituted for the benefit of the Community and not for the particular benefit of the persons to whom it is intrusted.
Twelve: A public force is necessary to ensure the rights of individuals and citizens, and this force is established for the good of the community, not for the personal advantage of those who are entrusted with it.
Thirteen: A common contribution being necessary for the support of the Public force, and for defraying the other expenses of Government, it ought to be divided equally among the Members of the Community, according to their abilities.
Thirteen: Since a common contribution is necessary to support the public force and cover other government expenses, it should be divided equally among the community members based on their abilities.
Fourteen: every Citizen has a Right, either by himself or his Representative, to a free voice in determining the necessity of Public Contributions, the appropriation of them, and their amount, mode of assessment, and duration.
Fourteen: every Citizen has the Right, either by themselves or through their Representative, to have a say in deciding the need for Public Contributions, how they are allocated, and their amount, method of assessment, and duration.
Fifteen: every Community has a Right to demand of all its agents an account of their conduct.
Fifteen: every Community has the right to ask all its members for an explanation of their actions.
Sixteen: every Community in which a Separation of Powers and a Security of Rights is not Provided for, wants a Constitution.
Sixteen: any Community that does not ensure a Separation of Powers and the Protection of Rights needs a Constitution.
Seventeen: The Right to Property being inviolable and sacred, no one ought to be deprived of it, except in cases of evident Public necessity, legally ascertained, and on condition of a previous just Indemnity.
Seventeen: The right to property is absolute and sacred; no one should be deprived of it except in clear cases of public necessity, legally determined, and with a prior fair compensation.
OBSERVATIONS ON THE DECLARATION OF RIGHTS
The first three articles comprehend in general terms the whole of a Declaration of Rights, all the succeeding articles either originate from them or follow as elucidations. The 4th, 5th, and 6th define more particularly what is only generally expressed in the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd.
The first three articles cover the entire Declaration of Rights in broad terms, and all the following articles either derive from them or serve as explanations. The 4th, 5th, and 6th articles specifically define what is only generally mentioned in the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd.
The 7th, 8th, 9th, 10th, and 11th articles are declaratory of principles upon which laws shall be constructed, conformable to rights already declared. But it is questioned by some very good people in France, as well as in other countries, whether the 10th article sufficiently guarantees the right it is intended to accord with; besides which it takes off from the divine dignity of religion, and weakens its operative force upon the mind, to make it a subject of human laws. It then presents itself to man like light intercepted by a cloudy medium, in which the source of it is obscured from his sight, and he sees nothing to reverence in the dusky ray.*10
The 7th, 8th, 9th, 10th, and 11th articles state the principles on which laws should be based, aligned with previously established rights. However, some well-meaning people in France and other countries question whether the 10th article adequately guarantees the right it aims to support. Furthermore, by making religion a matter of human law, it diminishes its sacred nature and weakens its influence on the mind. It then appears to people like light filtered through a cloudy lens, where the source is hidden, leaving them with nothing to respect in the dim beams. *10*
The remaining articles, beginning with the twelfth, are substantially contained in the principles of the preceding articles; but in the particular situation in which France then was, having to undo what was wrong, as well as to set up what was right, it was proper to be more particular than what in another condition of things would be necessary.
The remaining articles, starting with the twelfth, are largely based on the principles from the earlier articles; however, given France's circumstances at the time, needing to correct past mistakes while also establishing what was right, it made sense to be more specific than would typically be required in a different situation.
While the Declaration of Rights was before the National Assembly some of its members remarked that if a declaration of rights were published it should be accompanied by a Declaration of Duties. The observation discovered a mind that reflected, and it only erred by not reflecting far enough. A Declaration of Rights is, by reciprocity, a Declaration of Duties also. Whatever is my right as a man is also the right of another; and it becomes my duty to guarantee as well as to possess.
While the Declaration of Rights was being discussed in the National Assembly, some members pointed out that if a declaration of rights was released, it should also include a Declaration of Duties. This comment showed thoughtful consideration, but it missed the point by not exploring it enough. A Declaration of Rights inherently includes a Declaration of Duties as well. Whatever my rights as a person are, they are also the rights of others; and it becomes my responsibility to ensure these rights, not just to enjoy them.
The three first articles are the base of Liberty, as well individual as national; nor can any country be called free whose government does not take its beginning from the principles they contain, and continue to preserve them pure; and the whole of the Declaration of Rights is of more value to the world, and will do more good, than all the laws and statutes that have yet been promulgated.
The first three articles are the foundation of both individual and national freedom; no country can truly be called free if its government doesn't start with the principles they represent and maintain them in their purest form. The entire Declaration of Rights is more valuable to the world and will do more good than all the laws and statutes that have ever been established.
In the declaratory exordium which prefaces the Declaration of Rights we see the solemn and majestic spectacle of a nation opening its commission, under the auspices of its Creator, to establish a Government, a scene so new, and so transcendantly unequalled by anything in the European world, that the name of a Revolution is diminutive of its character, and it rises into a Regeneration of man. What are the present Governments of Europe but a scene of iniquity and oppression? What is that of England? Do not its own inhabitants say it is a market where every man has his price, and where corruption is common traffic at the expense of a deluded people? No wonder, then, that the French Revolution is traduced. Had it confined itself merely to the destruction of flagrant despotism perhaps Mr. Burke and some others had been silent. Their cry now is, "It has gone too far"—that is, it has gone too far for them. It stares corruption in the face, and the venal tribe are all alarmed. Their fear discovers itself in their outrage, and they are but publishing the groans of a wounded vice. But from such opposition the French Revolution, instead of suffering, receives an homage. The more it is struck the more sparks it will emit; and the fear is it will not be struck enough. It has nothing to dread from attacks; truth has given it an establishment, and time will record it with a name as lasting as his own.
In the opening statement of the Declaration of Rights, we witness the powerful and awe-inspiring moment of a nation beginning its mission, guided by its Creator, to create a new Government. This scene is unprecedented and far exceeds anything in Europe, making the term Revolution seem too small to capture its significance; it becomes a Rebirth of humanity. What are the current Governments of Europe if not a display of injustice and oppression? What about England? Don’t its own people say it’s a marketplace where everyone has a price, and where corruption is a common business at the expense of a misled populace? It’s no surprise that the French Revolution is criticized. If it had only focused on eliminating blatant tyranny, perhaps Mr. Burke and others would have stayed quiet. Their claim now is, "It has gone too far"—meaning it has gone too far for their comfort. It directly confronts corruption, and the corrupt are all frightened. Their fear shows itself in their anger, revealing the cries of a wounded vice. Yet, rather than suffering from such opposition, the French Revolution gains respect. The more it is attacked, the more sparks it will produce; and there’s a worry it won’t be challenged enough. It has nothing to fear from assaults; truth has given it a foundation, and history will remember it with a name as enduring as its own.
Having now traced the progress of the French Revolution through most of its principal stages, from its commencement to the taking of the Bastille, and its establishment by the Declaration of Rights, I will close the subject with the energetic apostrophe of M. de la Fayette, "May this great monument, raised to Liberty, serve as a lesson to the oppressor, and an example to the oppressed!"*11
Having now followed the course of the French Revolution through its key stages, from its start to the storming of the Bastille, and its foundation with the Declaration of Rights, I will wrap up the topic with the powerful statement from M. de la Fayette, "May this great monument, dedicated to Liberty, stand as a lesson to the oppressor and an example to the oppressed!"*11
MISCELLANEOUS CHAPTER
Miscellaneous Chapter
To prevent interrupting the argument in the preceding part of this work, or the narrative that follows it, I reserved some observations to be thrown together in a Miscellaneous Chapter; by which variety might not be censured for confusion. Mr. Burke's book is all Miscellany. His intention was to make an attack on the French Revolution; but instead of proceeding with an orderly arrangement, he has stormed it with a mob of ideas tumbling over and destroying one another.
To avoid disrupting the argument in the previous section of this work or the story that comes next, I set aside some comments to be compiled in a Miscellaneous Chapter, ensuring that variety wouldn’t be criticized for being chaotic. Mr. Burke's book is entirely a mix of different topics. His goal was to critique the French Revolution, but instead of presenting his thoughts in a clear order, he has bombarded it with a chaotic jumble of ideas that clash and undermine each other.
But this confusion and contradiction in Mr. Burke's Book is easily accounted for.—When a man in a wrong cause attempts to steer his course by anything else than some polar truth or principle, he is sure to be lost. It is beyond the compass of his capacity to keep all the parts of an argument together, and make them unite in one issue, by any other means than having this guide always in view. Neither memory nor invention will supply the want of it. The former fails him, and the latter betrays him.
But this confusion and contradiction in Mr. Burke's book is easy to explain. When someone on the wrong side of an issue tries to navigate without a clear truth or principle to guide them, they're bound to get lost. It’s beyond their ability to hold all parts of an argument together and make them come to a single conclusion without having that guiding truth always in sight. Neither memory nor creativity can replace that need. Memory will let them down, and imagination will mislead them.
Notwithstanding the nonsense, for it deserves no better name, that Mr. Burke has asserted about hereditary rights, and hereditary succession, and that a Nation has not a right to form a Government of itself; it happened to fall in his way to give some account of what Government is. "Government," says he, "is a contrivance of human wisdom."
Not considering the nonsense, since it doesn’t deserve any better label, that Mr. Burke claimed about inherited rights and hereditary succession, and that a nation doesn’t have the right to create its own government; he managed to share some thoughts on what government really is. "Government," he says, "is a creation of human wisdom."
Admitting that government is a contrivance of human wisdom, it must necessarily follow, that hereditary succession, and hereditary rights (as they are called), can make no part of it, because it is impossible to make wisdom hereditary; and on the other hand, that cannot be a wise contrivance, which in its operation may commit the government of a nation to the wisdom of an idiot. The ground which Mr. Burke now takes is fatal to every part of his cause. The argument changes from hereditary rights to hereditary wisdom; and the question is, Who is the wisest man? He must now show that every one in the line of hereditary succession was a Solomon, or his title is not good to be a king. What a stroke has Mr. Burke now made! To use a sailor's phrase, he has swabbed the deck, and scarcely left a name legible in the list of Kings; and he has mowed down and thinned the House of Peers, with a scythe as formidable as Death and Time.
Recognizing that government is a product of human intelligence, it follows that hereditary succession and hereditary rights cannot be part of it, because wisdom cannot be passed down through generations. Moreover, a system that can potentially hand over a nation’s leadership to someone unwise isn't truly wise. Mr. Burke's current stance undermines his entire argument. The focus shifts from hereditary rights to hereditary wisdom; now the question is, who is the wisest person? He must prove that everyone in the line of hereditary succession is as wise as Solomon, or his claim to the throne is invalid. What a blow Mr. Burke has dealt! To use a sailor's term, he has swept the deck clean, leaving hardly any names legible on the list of Kings; and he has drastically reduced the House of Peers with a scythe as powerful as Death and Time.
But Mr. Burke appears to have been aware of this retort; and he has taken care to guard against it, by making government to be not only a contrivance of human wisdom, but a monopoly of wisdom. He puts the nation as fools on one side, and places his government of wisdom, all wise men of Gotham, on the other side; and he then proclaims, and says that "Men have a Right that their Wants should be provided for by this wisdom." Having thus made proclamation, he next proceeds to explain to them what their wants are, and also what their rights are. In this he has succeeded dextrously, for he makes their wants to be a want of wisdom; but as this is cold comfort, he then informs them, that they have a right (not to any of the wisdom) but to be governed by it; and in order to impress them with a solemn reverence for this monopoly-government of wisdom, and of its vast capacity for all purposes, possible or impossible, right or wrong, he proceeds with astrological mysterious importance, to tell to them its powers in these words: "The rights of men in government are their advantages; and these are often in balance between differences of good; and in compromises sometimes between good and evil, and sometimes between evil and evil. Political reason is a computing principle; adding—subtracting—multiplying—and dividing, morally and not metaphysically or mathematically, true moral denominations."
But Mr. Burke seems to have been aware of this comeback; and he has made sure to defend against it by insisting that government is not just a product of human wisdom but a monopoly on wisdom. He positions the nation as fools on one side and his wise government, all wise men of Gotham, on the other. He then declares that "People have a right to have their needs addressed by this wisdom." Having made this declaration, he goes on to explain what their needs are and what their rights entail. He does this skillfully, framing their needs as a lack of wisdom; but since this isn't much consolation, he informs them that they have a right (not to any of the wisdom) but to be governed by it. To instill a deep respect for this monopoly-government of wisdom and its immense potential for all outcomes, whether possible or impossible, right or wrong, he proceeds with an air of astrological mystery to describe its powers in these words: "The rights of people in government are their benefits; and these are often weighed between different goods; and sometimes require compromises between good and evil, and sometimes between evils. Political reasoning is a system of calculations; adding—subtracting—multiplying—and dividing, morally and not metaphysically or mathematically, according to moral principles."
As the wondering audience, whom Mr. Burke supposes himself talking to, may not understand all this learned jargon, I will undertake to be its interpreter. The meaning, then, good people, of all this, is: That government is governed by no principle whatever; that it can make evil good, or good evil, just as it pleases. In short, that government is arbitrary power.
As the curious audience that Mr. Burke thinks he’s addressing might not get all this complicated language, I'll take on the role of translator. So, the gist of this, dear folks, is: that government isn't bound by any principles; it can turn good into bad or bad into good, whenever it wants. In short, government is just arbitrary power.
But there are some things which Mr. Burke has forgotten. First, he has not shown where the wisdom originally came from: and secondly, he has not shown by what authority it first began to act. In the manner he introduces the matter, it is either government stealing wisdom, or wisdom stealing government. It is without an origin, and its powers without authority. In short, it is usurpation.
But there are some things Mr. Burke has overlooked. First, he hasn't explained where the wisdom originally came from; and second, he hasn't indicated by what authority it first started to operate. Based on how he presents the issue, it looks like either the government is taking wisdom or wisdom is taking over the government. It lacks a clear origin, and its powers lack legitimate authority. In short, it's an act of usurpation.
Whether it be from a sense of shame, or from a consciousness of some radical defect in a government necessary to be kept out of sight, or from both, or from any other cause, I undertake not to determine, but so it is, that a monarchical reasoner never traces government to its source, or from its source. It is one of the shibboleths by which he may be known. A thousand years hence, those who shall live in America or France, will look back with contemplative pride on the origin of their government, and say, This was the work of our glorious ancestors! But what can a monarchical talker say? What has he to exult in? Alas he has nothing. A certain something forbids him to look back to a beginning, lest some robber, or some Robin Hood, should rise from the long obscurity of time and say, I am the origin. Hard as Mr. Burke laboured at the Regency Bill and Hereditary Succession two years ago, and much as he dived for precedents, he still had not boldness enough to bring up William of Normandy, and say, There is the head of the list! there is the fountain of honour! the son of a prostitute, and the plunderer of the English nation.
Whether it's from a sense of shame, an awareness of a fundamental flaw in a government that needs to be hidden, or for any other reason, I'm not here to say. What’s clear is that a monarchist never traces the government back to its roots. It's one of the signs that marks them. A thousand years from now, people living in America or France will look back with pride on the origins of their government and say, "This was the work of our amazing ancestors!" But what can a monarchist boast about? What do they have to celebrate? Unfortunately, they have nothing. Something prevents them from looking back at the beginning, for fear that some robber or some Robin Hood might emerge from the shadows of history and declare, "I am the origin." No matter how hard Mr. Burke worked on the Regency Bill and Hereditary Succession two years ago, and despite his deep dive into precedents, he still didn’t have the courage to bring up William of Normandy and say, “There’s the top of the list! There’s the source of honor! The son of a prostitute and the plunderer of the English nation.”
The opinions of men with respect to government are changing fast in all countries. The Revolutions of America and France have thrown a beam of light over the world, which reaches into man. The enormous expense of governments has provoked people to think, by making them feel; and when once the veil begins to rend, it admits not of repair. Ignorance is of a peculiar nature: once dispelled, it is impossible to re-establish it. It is not originally a thing of itself, but is only the absence of knowledge; and though man may be kept ignorant, he cannot be made ignorant. The mind, in discovering truth, acts in the same manner as it acts through the eye in discovering objects; when once any object has been seen, it is impossible to put the mind back to the same condition it was in before it saw it. Those who talk of a counter-revolution in France, show how little they understand of man. There does not exist in the compass of language an arrangement of words to express so much as the means of effecting a counter-revolution. The means must be an obliteration of knowledge; and it has never yet been discovered how to make man unknow his knowledge, or unthink his thoughts.
The views of people regarding government are changing rapidly in all countries. The American and French Revolutions have shed light on the world, touching people's lives. The huge costs of government have pushed citizens to think about these issues, making them feel the impact. Once the veil starts to tear, it can't be fixed. Ignorance is unique: once it’s lifted, it can't be reinstated. It isn't a thing in itself; it's just the lack of knowledge. While people can be kept in the dark, they can't be made unaware. The mind discovers truth like the eye finds objects; once something has been seen, the mind can’t go back to the way it was before. Those who talk about a counter-revolution in France reveal how little they understand human nature. There's no way to express in words how to achieve a counter-revolution. The only way would be to erase knowledge, and no one has figured out how to make a person forget what they know or stop thinking their thoughts.
Mr. Burke is labouring in vain to stop the progress of knowledge; and it comes with the worse grace from him, as there is a certain transaction known in the city which renders him suspected of being a pensioner in a fictitious name. This may account for some strange doctrine he has advanced in his book, which though he points it at the Revolution Society, is effectually directed against the whole nation.
Mr. Burke is working hard but unsuccessfully to halt the advancement of knowledge; and it looks even worse coming from him, as there’s a certain deal known in the city that makes him suspected of being a paid supporter under a fake name. This might explain some odd ideas he has put forward in his book, which, although aimed at the Revolution Society, is really directed at the entire nation.
"The King of England," says he, "holds his crown (for it does not belong to the Nation, according to Mr. Burke) in contempt of the choice of the Revolution Society, who have not a single vote for a king among them either individually or collectively; and his Majesty's heirs each in their time and order, will come to the Crown with the same contempt of their choice, with which his Majesty has succeeded to that which he now wears."
"The King of England," he says, "holds his crown (which, according to Mr. Burke, doesn't belong to the Nation) in disregard of the selection made by the Revolution Society, who don't have a single vote for a king, either individually or collectively; and each of his Majesty's heirs will come to the Crown in the same disregard of their choice, just as his Majesty has taken on the crown he currently wears."
As to who is King in England, or elsewhere, or whether there is any King at all, or whether the people choose a Cherokee chief, or a Hessian hussar for a King, it is not a matter that I trouble myself about—be that to themselves; but with respect to the doctrine, so far as it relates to the Rights of Men and Nations, it is as abominable as anything ever uttered in the most enslaved country under heaven. Whether it sounds worse to my ear, by not being accustomed to hear such despotism, than what it does to another person, I am not so well a judge of; but of its abominable principle I am at no loss to judge.
As for who is King in England or anywhere else, or if there’s even a King at all, or if the people choose a Cherokee chief or a Hessian hussar as their King, I don’t concern myself with that—let them handle it. However, when it comes to the idea related to the Rights of Men and Nations, it’s as terrible as anything ever said in the most oppressed country on earth. I’m not sure if it sounds worse to me, since I’m not used to hearing such tyranny, compared to how it sounds to someone else, but I have no doubt about its disgusting principle.
It is not the Revolution Society that Mr. Burke means; it is the Nation, as well in its original as in its representative character; and he has taken care to make himself understood, by saying that they have not a vote either collectively or individually. The Revolution Society is composed of citizens of all denominations, and of members of both the Houses of Parliament; and consequently, if there is not a right to a vote in any of the characters, there can be no right to any either in the nation or in its Parliament. This ought to be a caution to every country how to import foreign families to be kings. It is somewhat curious to observe, that although the people of England had been in the habit of talking about kings, it is always a Foreign House of Kings; hating Foreigners yet governed by them.—It is now the House of Brunswick, one of the petty tribes of Germany.
It’s not the Revolution Society that Mr. Burke is referring to; it’s the Nation, both in its original form and in its representative role; and he has made it clear that they don’t have a vote, either as a group or as individuals. The Revolution Society consists of citizens from all backgrounds and members of both Houses of Parliament; therefore, if there’s no right to vote in any of those roles, there can’t be a right to vote in the nation or its Parliament either. This should serve as a warning to every country about bringing in foreign families to rule as kings. It’s interesting to note that although the people of England often talked about kings, they always referred to foreign royal families; they dislike foreigners yet are ruled by them. Currently, it’s the House of Brunswick, one of the small tribes from Germany.
It has hitherto been the practice of the English Parliaments to regulate what was called the succession (taking it for granted that the Nation then continued to accord to the form of annexing a monarchical branch of its government; for without this the Parliament could not have had authority to have sent either to Holland or to Hanover, or to impose a king upon the nation against its will). And this must be the utmost limit to which Parliament can go upon this case; but the right of the Nation goes to the whole case, because it has the right of changing its whole form of government. The right of a Parliament is only a right in trust, a right by delegation, and that but from a very small part of the Nation; and one of its Houses has not even this. But the right of the Nation is an original right, as universal as taxation. The nation is the paymaster of everything, and everything must conform to its general will.
It has been the practice of the English Parliaments to manage what was known as the succession (assuming that the Nation still agreed to have a monarchy as part of its government; without this, Parliament wouldn’t have had the power to send anyone to Holland or Hanover, or to impose a king on the nation against its wishes). This represents the maximum extent to which Parliament can go on this issue; however, the Nation's right encompasses the entire matter because it has the authority to change its entire system of government. The authority of Parliament is merely a delegated right, a right entrusted by a very small segment of the Nation; and one of its Houses doesn't even have this. But the Nation's right is an original right, as fundamental as taxation. The nation is responsible for everything, and everything must align with its collective will.
I remember taking notice of a speech in what is called the English House of Peers, by the then Earl of Shelburne, and I think it was at the time he was Minister, which is applicable to this case. I do not directly charge my memory with every particular; but the words and the purport, as nearly as I remember, were these: "That the form of a Government was a matter wholly at the will of the Nation at all times, that if it chose a monarchical form, it had a right to have it so; and if it afterwards chose to be a Republic, it had a right to be a Republic, and to say to a King, 'We have no longer any occasion for you.'"
I remember noticing a speech in what’s known as the English House of Peers, by the Earl of Shelburne at the time when he was Minister, which relates to this situation. I can't recall every detail exactly, but the gist of it, as best as I remember, was this: "The structure of a government is completely up to the Nation at all times. If it decides to have a monarchy, it has the right to do so; and if it later decides to become a Republic, it has the right to be a Republic and tell a King, 'We no longer need you.'"
When Mr. Burke says that "His Majesty's heirs and successors, each in their time and order, will come to the crown with the same content of their choice with which His Majesty had succeeded to that he wears," it is saying too much even to the humblest individual in the country; part of whose daily labour goes towards making up the million sterling a-year, which the country gives the person it styles a king. Government with insolence is despotism; but when contempt is added it becomes worse; and to pay for contempt is the excess of slavery. This species of government comes from Germany; and reminds me of what one of the Brunswick soldiers told me, who was taken prisoner by, the Americans in the late war: "Ah!" said he, "America is a fine free country, it is worth the people's fighting for; I know the difference by knowing my own: in my country, if the prince says eat straw, we eat straw." God help that country, thought I, be it England or elsewhere, whose liberties are to be protected by German principles of government, and Princes of Brunswick!
When Mr. Burke says that "His Majesty's heirs and successors, each in their time and order, will come to the crown with the same content of their choice with which His Majesty had succeeded to that he wears," it’s saying way too much even to the simplest person in the country; part of whose daily work contributes to the million pounds a year that the country gives to the person it calls a king. Governed with arrogance is despotism; but when you add contempt, it becomes worse; and to pay for contempt is the ultimate form of slavery. This type of government comes from Germany; and it reminds me of something a Brunswick soldier told me, who was taken prisoner by the Americans in the recent war: "Ah!" he said, "America is a great free country, it's worth fighting for; I know the difference because I know my own: in my country, if the prince says eat straw, we eat straw." God help that country, I thought, whether it's England or somewhere else, whose freedoms are to be protected by German principles of government and Princes of Brunswick!
As Mr. Burke sometimes speaks of England, sometimes of France, and sometimes of the world, and of government in general, it is difficult to answer his book without apparently meeting him on the same ground. Although principles of Government are general subjects, it is next to impossible, in many cases, to separate them from the idea of place and circumstance, and the more so when circumstances are put for arguments, which is frequently the case with Mr. Burke.
As Mr. Burke occasionally talks about England, sometimes about France, and often about the world and government in general, it’s tough to respond to his book without seeming like I'm addressing him on the same topics. While the principles of government are broad subjects, it’s nearly impossible in many situations to separate them from the context of place and circumstances, especially when those circumstances are used as arguments, which happens often with Mr. Burke.
In the former part of his book, addressing himself to the people of France, he says: "No experience has taught us (meaning the English), that in any other course or method than that of a hereditary crown, can our liberties be regularly perpetuated and preserved sacred as our hereditary right." I ask Mr. Burke, who is to take them away? M. de la Fayette, in speaking to France, says: "For a Nation to be free, it is sufficient that she wills it." But Mr. Burke represents England as wanting capacity to take care of itself, and that its liberties must be taken care of by a King holding it in "contempt." If England is sunk to this, it is preparing itself to eat straw, as in Hanover, or in Brunswick. But besides the folly of the declaration, it happens that the facts are all against Mr. Burke. It was by the government being hereditary, that the liberties of the people were endangered. Charles I. and James II. are instances of this truth; yet neither of them went so far as to hold the Nation in contempt.
In the earlier part of his book, speaking to the people of France, he says: "No experience has taught us (referring to the English) that in any other way besides having a hereditary crown can our freedoms be consistently maintained and treated as our birthright." I ask Mr. Burke, who is going to take them away? M. de la Fayette, addressing France, says: "For a nation to be free, it is enough that it wants to be." But Mr. Burke portrays England as incapable of taking care of itself, suggesting that its freedoms need to be guarded by a king who views it with "contempt." If England has indeed fallen to this point, it is setting itself up for a miserable existence, like in Hanover or Brunswick. Aside from the ridiculousness of his statement, the facts actually contradict Mr. Burke. It was the hereditary nature of the government that put the people's freedoms at risk. Charles I and James II are examples of this truth; yet neither of them went so far as to disrespect the nation.
As it is sometimes of advantage to the people of one country to hear what those of other countries have to say respecting it, it is possible that the people of France may learn something from Mr. Burke's book, and that the people of England may also learn something from the answers it will occasion. When Nations fall out about freedom, a wide field of debate is opened. The argument commences with the rights of war, without its evils, and as knowledge is the object contended for, the party that sustains the defeat obtains the prize.
Sometimes it's beneficial for the people of one country to hear what others think about them, so it's possible that the people of France could learn something from Mr. Burke's book, and the people of England might also gain insights from the discussions it sparks. When nations clash over freedom, it opens up a broad area for debate. The argument starts with the rights of war, ignoring its downsides, and since knowledge is what's at stake, the side that faces defeat ends up with the reward.
Mr. Burke talks about what he calls an hereditary crown, as if it were some production of Nature; or as if, like Time, it had a power to operate, not only independently, but in spite of man; or as if it were a thing or a subject universally consented to. Alas! it has none of those properties, but is the reverse of them all. It is a thing in imagination, the propriety of which is more than doubted, and the legality of which in a few years will be denied.
Mr. Burke talks about what he calls a hereditary crown, as if it were some natural creation; or as if, like Time, it had the ability to act not just on its own, but even against humanity; or as if it were something everyone agreed on. Unfortunately, it has none of those qualities, but is the complete opposite of all of them. It’s a concept in our minds, the legitimacy of which is seriously questioned, and its legality will be rejected in just a few years.
But, to arrange this matter in a clearer view than what general expression can heads under which (what is called) an hereditary crown, or more properly speaking, an hereditary succession to the Government of a Nation, can be considered; which are:
But to present this issue more clearly than what general terms can cover regarding what is known as an hereditary crown, or more accurately, an hereditary succession to the government of a nation, we can consider the following:
First, The right of a particular Family to establish itself.
First, the right of a specific family to settle down.
Secondly, The right of a Nation to establish a particular Family.
Secondly, a nation's right to establish a specific family.
With respect to the first of these heads, that of a Family establishing itself with hereditary powers on its own authority, and independent of the consent of a Nation, all men will concur in calling it despotism; and it would be trespassing on their understanding to attempt to prove it.
Regarding the first point, where a family sets itself up with hereditary powers on its own authority, independent of a nation's consent, everyone would agree to call it despotism; trying to argue otherwise would be insulting their intelligence.
But the second head, that of a Nation establishing a particular Family with hereditary powers, does not present itself as despotism on the first reflection; but if men will permit it a second reflection to take place, and carry that reflection forward but one remove out of their own persons to that of their offspring, they will then see that hereditary succession becomes in its consequences the same despotism to others, which they reprobated for themselves. It operates to preclude the consent of the succeeding generations; and the preclusion of consent is despotism. When the person who at any time shall be in possession of a Government, or those who stand in succession to him, shall say to a Nation, I hold this power in "contempt" of you, it signifies not on what authority he pretends to say it. It is no relief, but an aggravation to a person in slavery, to reflect that he was sold by his parent; and as that which heightens the criminality of an act cannot be produced to prove the legality of it, hereditary succession cannot be established as a legal thing.
But the second aspect, that of a nation building a specific family with inherited powers, doesn’t immediately come off as tyranny. However, if people will allow themselves to reflect on it a bit more and think about how it affects their children, they will realize that hereditary succession ends up being the same kind of tyranny for others that they condemned for themselves. It prevents future generations from giving their consent, and the lack of consent is tyranny. When someone in power, or those next in line, tells a nation, "I hold this power despite you," it doesn't matter what authority they claim. For someone in slavery, it doesn’t help to think that they were sold by their parent; such a realization only makes their suffering worse. And since what increases the wrongness of an act can't be used to justify its legality, hereditary succession can't be established as a lawful concept.
In order to arrive at a more perfect decision on this head, it will be proper to consider the generation which undertakes to establish a Family with hereditary powers, apart and separate from the generations which are to follow; and also to consider the character in which the first generation acts with respect to succeeding generations.
To make a better decision on this matter, it's important to think about the generation that sets up a family with hereditary powers, separate from the generations that will come after; and to also reflect on the role of the first generation in relation to those that follow.
The generation which first selects a person, and puts him at the head of its Government, either with the title of King, or any other distinction, acts on its own choice, be it wise or foolish, as a free agent for itself The person so set up is not hereditary, but selected and appointed; and the generation who sets him up, does not live under a hereditary government, but under a government of its own choice and establishment. Were the generation who sets him up, and the person so set up, to live for ever, it never could become hereditary succession; and of consequence hereditary succession can only follow on the death of the first parties.
The generation that first chooses someone to lead its government, whether they call them King or something else, makes that choice freely, regardless of whether it's a good or bad decision. The person selected isn't part of a bloodline; they are chosen and appointed. The generation that chooses them does not live under a hereditary government but one they established based on their own decisions. Even if both the generation that makes the choice and the appointed leader were to live forever, it would never turn into hereditary succession; therefore, hereditary succession can only begin after the first parties pass away.
As, therefore, hereditary succession is out of the question with respect to the first generation, we have now to consider the character in which that generation acts with respect to the commencing generation, and to all succeeding ones.
As hereditary succession is not an option for the first generation, we now need to examine the role that this generation plays in relation to the next generation and all the generations that follow.
It assumes a character, to which it has neither right nor title. It changes itself from a Legislator to a Testator, and effects to make its Will, which is to have operation after the demise of the makers, to bequeath the Government; and it not only attempts to bequeath, but to establish on the succeeding generation, a new and different form of Government under which itself lived. Itself, as already observed, lived not under a hereditary Government but under a Government of its own choice and establishment; and it now attempts, by virtue of a will and testament (and which it has not authority to make), to take from the commencing generation, and all future ones, the rights and free agency by which itself acted.
It takes on a role that it has no right to. It shifts from being a Lawmaker to being a Willmaker, trying to create a Will that would take effect after its creators are gone, intending to pass on the Government. Not only does it try to pass it on, but it also aims to impose a new and different type of Government on the next generation, one that it itself did not live under. As previously mentioned, it existed not under a hereditary Government but one of its own choosing and establishment. Now, it is attempting, through a supposed will and testament (which it has no authority to make), to strip the upcoming generation and all future ones of the rights and freedoms that allowed it to act as it did.
But, exclusive of the right which any generation has to act collectively as a testator, the objects to which it applies itself in this case, are not within the compass of any law, or of any will or testament.
But, aside from the right that any generation has to act together as a testator, the things it focuses on in this case are not covered by any law, or by any will or testament.
The rights of men in society, are neither devisable or transferable, nor annihilable, but are descendable only, and it is not in the power of any generation to intercept finally, and cut off the descent. If the present generation, or any other, are disposed to be slaves, it does not lessen the right of the succeeding generation to be free. Wrongs cannot have a legal descent. When Mr. Burke attempts to maintain that the English nation did at the Revolution of 1688, most solemnly renounce and abdicate their rights for themselves, and for all their posterity for ever, he speaks a language that merits not reply, and which can only excite contempt for his prostitute principles, or pity for his ignorance.
The rights of individuals in society cannot be divided, transferred, or destroyed; they can only be inherited. No generation has the authority to permanently seize or cut off this inheritance. If the current generation or any other chooses to be enslaved, it doesn't diminish the right of future generations to be free. Injustice cannot be legally inherited. When Mr. Burke argues that the English nation, during the Revolution of 1688, solemnly renounced and gave up their rights for themselves and for all their descendants forever, he is expressing ideas that don't deserve a response and only provoke contempt for his corrupt principles or pity for his lack of understanding.
In whatever light hereditary succession, as growing out of the will and testament of some former generation, presents itself, it is an absurdity. A cannot make a will to take from B the property of B, and give it to C; yet this is the manner in which (what is called) hereditary succession by law operates. A certain former generation made a will, to take away the rights of the commencing generation, and all future ones, and convey those rights to a third person, who afterwards comes forward, and tells them, in Mr. Burke's language, that they have no rights, that their rights are already bequeathed to him and that he will govern in contempt of them. From such principles, and such ignorance, good Lord deliver the world!
No matter how you look at hereditary succession, which comes from the will of a previous generation, it's ridiculous. A can't make a will that takes B's property and gives it to C; yet that's exactly how what we call hereditary succession by law works. A past generation created a will that strips the rights of the current generation and all future ones, passing those rights to a third party, who then comes forward and, in Mr. Burke's words, tells them they have no rights, that their rights have already been handed down to him, and that he will rule over them regardless. From such ideas and such ignorance, good Lord, save the world!
But, after all, what is this metaphor called a crown, or rather what is monarchy? Is it a thing, or is it a name, or is it a fraud? Is it a "contrivance of human wisdom," or of human craft to obtain money from a nation under specious pretences? Is it a thing necessary to a nation? If it is, in what does that necessity consist, what service does it perform, what is its business, and what are its merits? Does the virtue consist in the metaphor, or in the man? Doth the goldsmith that makes the crown, make the virtue also? Doth it operate like Fortunatus's wishing-cap, or Harlequin's wooden sword? Doth it make a man a conjurer? In fine, what is it? It appears to be something going much out of fashion, falling into ridicule, and rejected in some countries, both as unnecessary and expensive. In America it is considered as an absurdity; and in France it has so far declined, that the goodness of the man, and the respect for his personal character, are the only things that preserve the appearance of its existence.
But really, what is this metaphor called a crown, or more accurately, what is monarchy? Is it a tangible thing, just a name, or a deception? Is it a “product of human wisdom,” or just a way for people to extract money from a country under false pretenses? Is it something essential for a nation? If it is, what exactly makes it necessary, what role does it play, what is its purpose, and what are its benefits? Does its value lie in the metaphor itself or in the individual? Does the goldsmith who creates the crown also create its value? Does it work like Fortunatus's wishing-cap or Harlequin's wooden sword? Does it turn a person into a magician? In short, what is it? It seems to be something that’s quickly going out of style, becoming a target for ridicule, and is rejected in some places for being both unnecessary and costly. In America, it's seen as ridiculous; in France, it has declined to the point where only the goodness of the individual and respect for their personal character keep the illusion of its existence alive.
If government be what Mr. Burke describes it, "a contrivance of human wisdom" I might ask him, if wisdom was at such a low ebb in England, that it was become necessary to import it from Holland and from Hanover? But I will do the country the justice to say, that was not the case; and even if it was it mistook the cargo. The wisdom of every country, when properly exerted, is sufficient for all its purposes; and there could exist no more real occasion in England to have sent for a Dutch Stadtholder, or a German Elector, than there was in America to have done a similar thing. If a country does not understand its own affairs, how is a foreigner to understand them, who knows neither its laws, its manners, nor its language? If there existed a man so transcendently wise above all others, that his wisdom was necessary to instruct a nation, some reason might be offered for monarchy; but when we cast our eyes about a country, and observe how every part understands its own affairs; and when we look around the world, and see that of all men in it, the race of kings are the most insignificant in capacity, our reason cannot fail to ask us—What are those men kept for?
If government is what Mr. Burke calls “a contrivance of human wisdom,” I might ask him if wisdom was really so lacking in England that it became necessary to import it from Holland and Hanover? But I’ll give the country its due; that wasn’t the case. Even if it were, it chose the wrong shipment. The wisdom of any country, when applied correctly, is enough for all its needs; there was no real reason for England to call in a Dutch Stadtholder or a German Elector, just as there was no reason for America to do the same. If a country doesn’t understand its own issues, how can a foreigner grasp them, who knows none of its laws, customs, or language? If there existed a person so exceptionally wise that his wisdom was essential to guide a nation, there might be a case for monarchy. But when we look around a country and see how every part manages its own affairs, and when we observe globally that among all people, the royal class is usually the least capable, our reasoning must lead us to ask—what purpose do those people serve?
If there is anything in monarchy which we people of America do not understand, I wish Mr. Burke would be so kind as to inform us. I see in America, a government extending over a country ten times as large as England, and conducted with regularity, for a fortieth part of the expense which Government costs in England. If I ask a man in America if he wants a King, he retorts, and asks me if I take him for an idiot? How is it that this difference happens? are we more or less wise than others? I see in America the generality of people living in a style of plenty unknown in monarchical countries; and I see that the principle of its government, which is that of the equal Rights of Man, is making a rapid progress in the world.
If there's anything about monarchy that we Americans don't get, I wish Mr. Burke would kindly explain it to us. Here in America, we have a government that oversees a country ten times larger than England, and it runs smoothly for a fraction of what the government costs in England. When I ask someone in America if they want a King, they respond by asking if I think they're an idiot. Why is there such a difference? Are we more or less wise than others? I see that the average person in America lives in a level of abundance that's unheard of in monarchies, and I notice that the principle of equal rights for all is quickly gaining ground worldwide.
If monarchy is a useless thing, why is it kept up anywhere? and if a necessary thing, how can it be dispensed with? That civil government is necessary, all civilized nations will agree; but civil government is republican government. All that part of the government of England which begins with the office of constable, and proceeds through the department of magistrate, quarter-sessions, and general assize, including trial by jury, is republican government. Nothing of monarchy appears in any part of it, except in the name which William the Conqueror imposed upon the English, that of obliging them to call him "Their Sovereign Lord the King."
If monarchy is pointless, why does it still exist anywhere? And if it’s essential, how can it be done away with? All civilized nations agree that civil government is necessary; however, civil government is essentially republican government. Everything in the English government that starts with the role of constable and goes through the functions of magistrate, quarter-sessions, and general assize, including trial by jury, is republican government. There’s no trace of monarchy in any of it, except for the title that William the Conqueror forced upon the English, making them call him "Their Sovereign Lord the King."
It is easy to conceive that a band of interested men, such as Placemen, Pensioners, Lords of the bed-chamber, Lords of the kitchen, Lords of the necessary-house, and the Lord knows what besides, can find as many reasons for monarchy as their salaries, paid at the expense of the country, amount to; but if I ask the farmer, the manufacturer, the merchant, the tradesman, and down through all the occupations of life to the common labourer, what service monarchy is to him? he can give me no answer. If I ask him what monarchy is, he believes it is something like a sinecure.
It's easy to imagine that a group of people with vested interests, like government officials, pensioners, royal advisors, kitchen staff, maintenance teams, and who knows who else, can come up with as many justifications for a monarchy as their salaries, which are paid for by the taxpayers. But if I ask the farmer, the manufacturer, the merchant, the shopkeeper, and everyone else down to the regular laborer what benefits a monarchy has for them, they can't tell me anything. If I ask them what a monarchy is, they think it's something similar to a no-show job.
Notwithstanding the taxes of England amount to almost seventeen millions a year, said to be for the expenses of Government, it is still evident that the sense of the Nation is left to govern itself, and does govern itself, by magistrates and juries, almost at its own charge, on republican principles, exclusive of the expense of taxes. The salaries of the judges are almost the only charge that is paid out of the revenue. Considering that all the internal government is executed by the people, the taxes of England ought to be the lightest of any nation in Europe; instead of which, they are the contrary. As this cannot be accounted for on the score of civil government, the subject necessarily extends itself to the monarchical part.
Despite the fact that taxes in England total almost seventeen million a year, supposedly for government expenses, it's clear that the will of the people largely governs itself, through magistrates and juries, mostly at its own expense, based on republican principles, aside from tax costs. The salaries of judges are nearly the only expenses covered by tax revenue. Given that the internal governance is carried out by the people, England’s taxes should be the lightest of any European nation; instead, they are quite the opposite. Since this doesn't make sense in terms of civil governance, it naturally leads to considerations of the monarchical aspect.
When the people of England sent for George the First (and it would puzzle a wiser man than Mr. Burke to discover for what he could be wanted, or what service he could render), they ought at least to have conditioned for the abandonment of Hanover. Besides the endless German intrigues that must follow from a German Elector being King of England, there is a natural impossibility of uniting in the same person the principles of Freedom and the principles of Despotism, or as it is usually called in England Arbitrary Power. A German Elector is in his electorate a despot; how then could it be expected that he should be attached to principles of liberty in one country, while his interest in another was to be supported by despotism? The union cannot exist; and it might easily have been foreseen that German Electors would make German Kings, or in Mr. Burke's words, would assume government with "contempt." The English have been in the habit of considering a King of England only in the character in which he appears to them; whereas the same person, while the connection lasts, has a home-seat in another country, the interest of which is different to their own, and the principles of the governments in opposition to each other. To such a person England will appear as a town-residence, and the Electorate as the estate. The English may wish, as I believe they do, success to the principles of liberty in France, or in Germany; but a German Elector trembles for the fate of despotism in his electorate; and the Duchy of Mecklenburgh, where the present Queen's family governs, is under the same wretched state of arbitrary power, and the people in slavish vassalage.
When the people of England called for George the First (and it would confuse anyone, including Mr. Burke, to figure out what he was wanted for or what he could actually do), they should have at least demanded he give up Hanover. Besides the endless German politics that would follow from a German Elector being King of England, there’s a natural impossibility in combining the principles of Freedom with those of Despotism, or what’s often referred to in England as Arbitrary Power. A German Elector is a despot in his own territory; so how could we expect him to support liberty in one country while relying on despotism in another? Such a union can’t work, and it could have easily been predicted that German Electors would create German Kings, or as Mr. Burke put it, would take the reins of government with "contempt." The English have a tendency to view a King of England only in the role he plays for them; however, that same person, as long as the connection remains, has a home base in another country, whose interests differ from theirs, and whose governing principles oppose their own. For that person, England may seem like a city home, while the Electorate feels more like estate property. The English might hope, as I believe they do, for the success of liberty in France or Germany; but a German Elector fears for the fate of despotism in his territory; and the Duchy of Mecklenburgh, where the current Queen's family rules, is stuck in the same miserable state of arbitrary power, with its people living in servitude.
There never was a time when it became the English to watch continental intrigues more circumspectly than at the present moment, and to distinguish the politics of the Electorate from the politics of the Nation. The Revolution of France has entirely changed the ground with respect to England and France, as nations; but the German despots, with Prussia at their head, are combining against liberty; and the fondness of Mr. Pitt for office, and the interest which all his family connections have obtained, do not give sufficient security against this intrigue.
There has never been a time when the English have been more careful about observing continental politics than right now, and in recognizing the difference between the politics of the Electorate and those of the Nation. The French Revolution has completely altered the relationship between England and France as nations; however, the German rulers, led by Prussia, are uniting against freedom. Mr. Pitt's desire for power and the interests of his family connections don't provide enough assurance against this scheming.
As everything which passes in the world becomes matter for history, I will now quit this subject, and take a concise review of the state of parties and politics in England, as Mr. Burke has done in France.
As everything that happens in the world becomes part of history, I will now move on from this topic and briefly review the state of parties and politics in England, just like Mr. Burke did in France.
Whether the present reign commenced with contempt, I leave to Mr. Burke: certain, however, it is, that it had strongly that appearance. The animosity of the English nation, it is very well remembered, ran high; and, had the true principles of Liberty been as well understood then as they now promise to be, it is probable the Nation would not have patiently submitted to so much. George the First and Second were sensible of a rival in the remains of the Stuarts; and as they could not but consider themselves as standing on their good behaviour, they had prudence to keep their German principles of government to themselves; but as the Stuart family wore away, the prudence became less necessary.
Whether the current reign started with disregard, I’ll leave to Mr. Burke: however, it’s clear that it strongly seemed that way. The hostility of the English nation was memorable; had the true principles of Liberty been as well understood then as they seem to be now, it’s likely the nation wouldn’t have calmly accepted so much. George the First and Second were aware of a rival in the remnants of the Stuarts; and since they couldn’t help but see themselves as needing to behave well, they wisely kept their German principles of governance to themselves. But as the Stuart family faded away, that caution became less necessary.
The contest between rights, and what were called prerogatives, continued to heat the nation till some time after the conclusion of the American War, when all at once it fell a calm—Execration exchanged itself for applause, and Court popularity sprung up like a mushroom in a night.
The competition between rights and what were known as prerogatives kept the nation on edge until after the end of the American War, when suddenly everything settled down—hatred turned to praise, and the popularity of the Court emerged overnight like mushrooms after rain.
To account for this sudden transition, it is proper to observe that there are two distinct species of popularity; the one excited by merit, and the other by resentment. As the Nation had formed itself into two parties, and each was extolling the merits of its parliamentary champions for and against prerogative, nothing could operate to give a more general shock than an immediate coalition of the champions themselves. The partisans of each being thus suddenly left in the lurch, and mutually heated with disgust at the measure, felt no other relief than uniting in a common execration against both. A higher stimulus or resentment being thus excited than what the contest on prerogatives occasioned, the nation quitted all former objects of rights and wrongs, and sought only that of gratification. The indignation at the Coalition so effectually superseded the indignation against the Court as to extinguish it; and without any change of principles on the part of the Court, the same people who had reprobated its despotism united with it to revenge themselves on the Coalition Parliament. The case was not, which they liked best, but which they hated most; and the least hated passed for love. The dissolution of the Coalition Parliament, as it afforded the means of gratifying the resentment of the Nation, could not fail to be popular; and from hence arose the popularity of the Court.
To explain this sudden change, it’s important to note that there are two types of popularity: one driven by merit and the other by resentment. As the country divided into two parties, each praising their parliamentary champions for and against royal power, nothing could have shocked everyone more than an immediate alliance between those champions. Supporters of each side were suddenly left feeling betrayed and were fueled by disgust at the situation, leading them to join forces in a shared condemnation of both sides. This heightened sense of resentment overshadowed the previous disagreements about rights and wrongs, as the public focused solely on seeking satisfaction. The anger towards the Coalition effectively replaced the anger towards the Court, and without any change in the Court’s principles, the same people who had criticized its tyranny came together with it to take revenge on the Coalition Parliament. It wasn’t about which side they preferred, but rather which they detested more; the one they disliked the least was seen as favorable. The dissolution of the Coalition Parliament, since it provided a way to satisfy the nation’s anger, inevitably became popular, and that’s how the Court gained its popularity.
Transitions of this kind exhibit a Nation under the government of temper, instead of a fixed and steady principle; and having once committed itself, however rashly, it feels itself urged along to justify by continuance its first proceeding. Measures which at other times it would censure it now approves, and acts persuasion upon itself to suffocate its judgment.
Transitions like this show a nation that is governed by mood rather than a consistent principle; and once it has made a decision, even if it was unwise, it feels compelled to continue justifying its initial choice. Actions that it would typically criticize are now accepted, and it convinces itself to ignore its better judgment.
On the return of a new Parliament, the new Minister, Mr. Pitt, found himself in a secure majority; and the Nation gave him credit, not out of regard to himself, but because it had resolved to do it out of resentment to another. He introduced himself to public notice by a proposed Reform of Parliament, which in its operation would have amounted to a public justification of corruption. The Nation was to be at the expense of buying up the rotten boroughs, whereas it ought to punish the persons who deal in the traffic.
On the return of a new Parliament, the new Minister, Mr. Pitt, found himself in a solid majority; and the Nation recognized him, not out of admiration for him, but because it decided to do so out of resentment toward another. He presented himself to the public by proposing a Reform of Parliament, which would effectively serve as a public endorsement of corruption. The Nation was expected to take on the cost of buying up the corrupt boroughs, while it should instead punish those who engage in this trade.
Passing over the two bubbles of the Dutch business and the million a-year to sink the national debt, the matter which most presents itself, is the affair of the Regency. Never, in the course of my observation, was delusion more successfully acted, nor a nation more completely deceived. But, to make this appear, it will be necessary to go over the circumstances.
Passing over the two bubbles of the Dutch business and the million a year to reduce the national debt, the issue that stands out the most is the situation with the Regency. Never have I seen a delusion so effectively performed, nor a nation so thoroughly misled. However, to illustrate this, it will be essential to review the circumstances.
Mr. Fox had stated in the House of Commons, that the Prince of Wales, as heir in succession, had a right in himself to assume the Government. This was opposed by Mr. Pitt; and, so far as the opposition was confined to the doctrine, it was just. But the principles which Mr. Pitt maintained on the contrary side were as bad, or worse in their extent, than those of Mr. Fox; because they went to establish an aristocracy over the nation, and over the small representation it has in the House of Commons.
Mr. Fox had stated in the House of Commons that the Prince of Wales, as the heir, had the right to take on the Government. Mr. Pitt opposed this idea, and as far as the disagreement was about the principle, it was valid. However, the principles that Mr. Pitt supported on the opposite side were just as bad, if not worse, than those of Mr. Fox; because they aimed to establish an aristocracy over the nation and over the limited representation it has in the House of Commons.
Whether the English form of Government be good or bad, is not in this case the question; but, taking it as it stands, without regard to its merits or demerits, Mr. Pitt was farther from the point than Mr. Fox.
Whether the English form of government is good or bad isn't the issue here; rather, taking it as it is, regardless of its pros or cons, Mr. Pitt was further from the point than Mr. Fox.
It is supposed to consist of three parts:—while therefore the Nation is disposed to continue this form, the parts have a national standing, independent of each other, and are not the creatures of each other. Had Mr. Fox passed through Parliament, and said that the person alluded to claimed on the ground of the Nation, Mr. Pitt must then have contended what he called the right of the Parliament against the right of the Nation.
It is supposed to consist of three parts:—while the Nation is willing to maintain this structure, the parts have their own national status, independent of each other, and are not dependent on one another. If Mr. Fox had gone through Parliament and stated that the person mentioned claimed authority based on the Nation, Mr. Pitt would have had to argue what he referred to as the authority of Parliament against the authority of the Nation.
By the appearance which the contest made, Mr. Fox took the hereditary ground, and Mr. Pitt the Parliamentary ground; but the fact is, they both took hereditary ground, and Mr. Pitt took the worst of the two.
By the way the contest played out, Mr. Fox took the traditional stance, and Mr. Pitt took the Parliamentary stance; but the truth is, they both took traditional ground, and Mr. Pitt took the worse of the two.
What is called the Parliament is made up of two Houses, one of which is more hereditary, and more beyond the control of the Nation than what the Crown (as it is called) is supposed to be. It is an hereditary aristocracy, assuming and asserting indefeasible, irrevocable rights and authority, wholly independent of the Nation. Where, then, was the merited popularity of exalting this hereditary power over another hereditary power less independent of the Nation than what itself assumed to be, and of absorbing the rights of the Nation into a House over which it has neither election nor control?
What we call Parliament consists of two Houses, one of which is more hereditary and operates more independently from the Nation than the Crown is believed to. It’s an hereditary aristocracy that claims unquestionable and permanent rights and authority, completely separate from the Nation. So, where does the deserved popularity come from in elevating this hereditary power above another hereditary power that is less independent from the Nation, while absorbing the rights of the Nation into a House that it has no ability to elect or control?
The general impulse of the Nation was right; but it acted without reflection. It approved the opposition made to the right set up by Mr. Fox, without perceiving that Mr. Pitt was supporting another indefeasible right more remote from the Nation, in opposition to it.
The overall feeling of the Nation was correct; however, it acted thoughtlessly. It supported the opposition to the right claimed by Mr. Fox, without realizing that Mr. Pitt was backing another undeniable right that was even further removed from the Nation, in contrast to it.
With respect to the House of Commons, it is elected but by a small part of the Nation; but were the election as universal as taxation, which it ought to be, it would still be only the organ of the Nation, and cannot possess inherent rights.—When the National Assembly of France resolves a matter, the resolve is made in right of the Nation; but Mr. Pitt, on all national questions, so far as they refer to the House of Commons, absorbs the rights of the Nation into the organ, and makes the organ into a Nation, and the Nation itself into a cypher.
In terms of the House of Commons, it is elected but by only a small portion of the Nation; however, if the election were as universal as taxation, which it should be, it would still just be the representative of the Nation and wouldn't have inherent rights. When the National Assembly of France makes a decision, that decision is made on behalf of the Nation; but Mr. Pitt, regarding all national issues that relate to the House of Commons, merges the rights of the Nation into this representative body, transforming the representative into a Nation, and the Nation itself into a mere symbol.
In a few words, the question on the Regency was a question of a million a-year, which is appropriated to the executive department: and Mr. Pitt could not possess himself of any management of this sum, without setting up the supremacy of Parliament; and when this was accomplished, it was indifferent who should be Regent, as he must be Regent at his own cost. Among the curiosities which this contentious debate afforded, was that of making the Great Seal into a King, the affixing of which to an act was to be royal authority. If, therefore, Royal Authority is a Great Seal, it consequently is in itself nothing; and a good Constitution would be of infinitely more value to the Nation than what the three Nominal Powers, as they now stand, are worth.
In short, the issue regarding the Regency was a matter worth a million a year, which belongs to the executive branch. Mr. Pitt couldn't take charge of this amount without establishing the authority of Parliament; once that was done, it didn’t matter who the Regent was, since they would have to pay for it themselves. One of the oddities that came out of this heated debate was the idea of turning the Great Seal into a King, as attaching it to a document would serve as royal authority. Therefore, if Royal Authority is just the Great Seal, it essentially means nothing on its own; a solid Constitution would be far more valuable to the Nation than what the three Symbolic Powers are currently worth.
The continual use of the word Constitution in the English Parliament shows there is none; and that the whole is merely a form of government without a Constitution, and constituting itself with what powers it pleases. If there were a Constitution, it certainly could be referred to; and the debate on any constitutional point would terminate by producing the Constitution. One member says this is Constitution, and another says that is Constitution—To-day it is one thing; and to-morrow something else—while the maintaining of the debate proves there is none. Constitution is now the cant word of Parliament, tuning itself to the ear of the Nation. Formerly it was the universal supremacy of Parliament—the omnipotence of Parliament: But since the progress of Liberty in France, those phrases have a despotic harshness in their note; and the English Parliament have catched the fashion from the National Assembly, but without the substance, of speaking of Constitution.
The repeated use of the term "Constitution" in the English Parliament indicates that there isn't one; the whole system is just a form of government that grants itself whatever powers it wants. If there were a Constitution, it could be referred to, and any debate over constitutional issues would end by producing the Constitution itself. One member claims this is the Constitution, while another insists that’s the Constitution—today it’s one thing, and tomorrow it’s something else—yet the ongoing debates prove that none exists. "Constitution" is just a buzzword in Parliament, catering to the public’s ears. In the past, it was all about the absolute supremacy of Parliament—the all-powerfulness of Parliament. However, since the rise of Liberty in France, those phrases now sound overly authoritarian; the English Parliament has adopted the trend from the National Assembly but lacks the real substance of discussing a Constitution.
As the present generation of the people in England did not make the Government, they are not accountable for any of its defects; but, that sooner or later, it must come into their hands to undergo a constitutional reformation, is as certain as that the same thing has happened in France. If France, with a revenue of nearly twenty-four millions sterling, with an extent of rich and fertile country above four times larger than England, with a population of twenty-four millions of inhabitants to support taxation, with upwards of ninety millions sterling of gold and silver circulating in the nation, and with a debt less than the present debt of England—still found it necessary, from whatever cause, to come to a settlement of its affairs, it solves the problem of funding for both countries.
Since the current generation of people in England didn't create the Government, they're not responsible for its shortcomings. However, sooner or later, it will be their responsibility to bring about a constitutional reform, just as it has in France. If France, with a revenue of nearly twenty-four million pounds, a rich and fertile land over four times larger than England, a population of twenty-four million to bear the taxes, over ninety million pounds worth of gold and silver in circulation, and a debt smaller than England's current debt—still found it necessary, for whatever reason, to settle its affairs, it addresses the issue of funding for both countries.
It is out of the question to say how long what is called the English constitution has lasted, and to argue from thence how long it is to last; the question is, how long can the funding system last? It is a thing but of modern invention, and has not yet continued beyond the life of a man; yet in that short space it has so far accumulated, that, together with the current expenses, it requires an amount of taxes at least equal to the whole landed rental of the nation in acres to defray the annual expenditure. That a government could not have always gone on by the same system which has been followed for the last seventy years, must be evident to every man; and for the same reason it cannot always go on.
It's impossible to say how long what we call the English constitution has lasted or to predict how long it will last in the future; the real question is how long the funding system can survive. This system is a relatively modern invention and hasn’t lasted longer than a person's lifetime; yet in that short time, it has grown to the point that, along with current expenses, it requires a tax amount at least equal to the entire land rental income of the nation to cover annual spending. It's clear to everyone that a government can't keep operating under the same system it has followed for the last seventy years, and for that same reason, it can't continue indefinitely.
The funding system is not money; neither is it, properly speaking, credit. It, in effect, creates upon paper the sum which it appears to borrow, and lays on a tax to keep the imaginary capital alive by the payment of interest and sends the annuity to market, to be sold for paper already in circulation. If any credit is given, it is to the disposition of the people to pay the tax, and not to the government, which lays it on. When this disposition expires, what is supposed to be the credit of Government expires with it. The instance of France under the former Government shows that it is impossible to compel the payment of taxes by force, when a whole nation is determined to take its stand upon that ground.
The funding system isn’t just money, and it’s not really credit either. Instead, it essentially creates a figure on paper that looks like what it’s borrowing and imposes a tax to keep that imaginary capital going through interest payments. It then sends that annuity to the market to be sold for paper that’s already in circulation. If there’s any credit involved, it’s based on the people’s willingness to pay the tax, not the government that imposes it. When that willingness runs out, the government’s supposed credit goes away too. The example of France under the previous government shows that it’s impossible to force people to pay taxes when an entire nation is set against it.
Mr. Burke, in his review of the finances of France, states the quantity of gold and silver in France, at about eighty-eight millions sterling. In doing this, he has, I presume, divided by the difference of exchange, instead of the standard of twenty-four livres to a pound sterling; for M. Neckar's statement, from which Mr. Burke's is taken, is two thousand two hundred millions of livres, which is upwards of ninety-one millions and a half sterling.
Mr. Burke, in his review of France's finances, states that the amount of gold and silver in France is around eighty-eight million pounds sterling. In doing this, I assume he has divided by the exchange rate difference, rather than using the standard of twenty-four livres to a pound sterling; because M. Neckar's statement, which Mr. Burke's is based on, is two thousand two hundred million livres, which is over ninety-one and a half million pounds sterling.
M. Neckar in France, and Mr. George Chalmers at the Office of Trade and Plantation in England, of which Lord Hawkesbury is president, published nearly about the same time (1786) an account of the quantity of money in each nation, from the returns of the Mint of each nation. Mr. Chalmers, from the returns of the English Mint at the Tower of London, states the quantity of money in England, including Scotland and Ireland, to be twenty millions sterling.*12
M. Neckar in France and Mr. George Chalmers at the Office of Trade and Plantation in England, which is led by Lord Hawkesbury, published reports around the same time (1786) detailing the amount of money in each country based on the Mint's figures. Mr. Chalmers, using data from the English Mint at the Tower of London, claims that the total amount of money in England, including Scotland and Ireland, is twenty million pounds sterling.*12
M. Neckar*13 says that the amount of money in France, recoined from the old coin which was called in, was two thousand five hundred millions of livres (upwards of one hundred and four millions sterling); and, after deducting for waste, and what may be in the West Indies and other possible circumstances, states the circulation quantity at home to be ninety-one millions and a half sterling; but, taking it as Mr. Burke has put it, it is sixty-eight millions more than the national quantity in England.
M. Neckar*13 says that the amount of money in France, re-minted from the old coins that were taken out of circulation, was two billion five hundred million livres (over one hundred four million pounds sterling); and, after accounting for waste and what might be in the West Indies and other potential factors, he estimates the amount in circulation domestically to be ninety-one and a half million pounds sterling; however, as Mr. Burke put it, this is sixty-eight million more than the national amount in England.
That the quantity of money in France cannot be under this sum, may at once be seen from the state of the French Revenue, without referring to the records of the French Mint for proofs. The revenue of France, prior to the Revolution, was nearly twenty-four millions sterling; and as paper had then no existence in France the whole revenue was collected upon gold and silver; and it would have been impossible to have collected such a quantity of revenue upon a less national quantity than M. Neckar has stated. Before the establishment of paper in England, the revenue was about a fourth part of the national amount of gold and silver, as may be known by referring to the revenue prior to King William, and the quantity of money stated to be in the nation at that time, which was nearly as much as it is now.
The amount of money in France can't be below this figure, as can be clearly seen from the state of French revenue without needing to look at the records of the French Mint for evidence. Before the Revolution, France's revenue was nearly twenty-four million pounds; and since paper currency did not exist in France at that time, the entire revenue was collected using gold and silver. It would have been impossible to collect such a large amount of revenue with a smaller national quantity than M. Neckar noted. Before paper currency was established in England, the revenue was about a quarter of the nation's total gold and silver, which can be verified by looking at the revenue before King William and the amount of money in the country at that time, which was nearly what it is now.
It can be of no real service to a nation, to impose upon itself, or to permit itself to be imposed upon; but the prejudices of some, and the imposition of others, have always represented France as a nation possessing but little money—whereas the quantity is not only more than four times what the quantity is in England, but is considerably greater on a proportion of numbers. To account for this deficiency on the part of England, some reference should be had to the English system of funding. It operates to multiply paper, and to substitute it in the room of money, in various shapes; and the more paper is multiplied, the more opportunities are offered to export the specie; and it admits of a possibility (by extending it to small notes) of increasing paper till there is no money left.
It doesn’t really help a country to impose limitations on itself or to allow others to impose them. However, due to the biases of some people and the influence of others, France has often been portrayed as a nation with little money. In reality, the amount of money it has is not only more than four times that of England, but it's also significantly higher when you consider the population size. To explain this shortfall in England, we should look at the English funding system. It creates an abundance of paper currency, which replaces actual money in various forms. The more paper is created, the more opportunities there are to export the physical currency. This system even allows for the possibility of increasing paper currency, including small notes, to the point where there is no real money left.
I know this is not a pleasant subject to English readers; but the matters I am going to mention, are so important in themselves, as to require the attention of men interested in money transactions of a public nature. There is a circumstance stated by M. Neckar, in his treatise on the administration of the finances, which has never been attended to in England, but which forms the only basis whereon to estimate the quantity of money (gold and silver) which ought to be in every nation in Europe, to preserve a relative proportion with other nations.
I understand this isn't a comfortable topic for English readers, but the issues I'm about to discuss are so important that they deserve the attention of anyone involved in public financial transactions. M. Neckar points out in his work on financial administration a fact that has never been considered in England, yet it is essential for assessing the amount of money (gold and silver) that each nation in Europe should have to maintain a relative balance with other nations.
Lisbon and Cadiz are the two ports into which (money) gold and silver from South America are imported, and which afterwards divide and spread themselves over Europe by means of commerce, and increase the quantity of money in all parts of Europe. If, therefore, the amount of the annual importation into Europe can be known, and the relative proportion of the foreign commerce of the several nations by which it can be distributed can be ascertained, they give a rule sufficiently true, to ascertain the quantity of money which ought to be found in any nation, at any given time.
Lisbon and Cadiz are the two ports where gold and silver from South America are brought in, which later gets distributed across Europe through trade, increasing the amount of money throughout the continent. Therefore, if we can determine the annual imports into Europe and figure out the share of foreign trade for each nation that will distribute it, we can create a pretty accurate rule to estimate how much money should be present in any nation at any given time.
M. Neckar shows from the registers of Lisbon and Cadiz, that the importation of gold and silver into Europe, is five millions sterling annually. He has not taken it on a single year, but on an average of fifteen succeeding years, from 1763 to 1777, both inclusive; in which time, the amount was one thousand eight hundred million livres, which is seventy-five millions sterling.*14
M. Neckar reveals from the records of Lisbon and Cadiz that the annual import of gold and silver into Europe is five million pounds. He hasn't based this on just one year, but rather on the average over fifteen consecutive years, from 1763 to 1777, inclusive; during this period, the total was one billion eight hundred million livres, which equals seventy-five million pounds.*14
From the commencement of the Hanover succession in 1714 to the time Mr. Chalmers published, is seventy-two years; and the quantity imported into Europe, in that time, would be three hundred and sixty millions sterling.
From the start of the Hanover succession in 1714 to when Mr. Chalmers published, there are seventy-two years; and the amount imported into Europe during that time would be three hundred and sixty million pounds.
If the foreign commerce of Great Britain be stated at a sixth part of what the whole foreign commerce of Europe amounts to (which is probably an inferior estimation to what the gentlemen at the Exchange would allow) the proportion which Britain should draw by commerce of this sum, to keep herself on a proportion with the rest of Europe, would be also a sixth part which is sixty millions sterling; and if the same allowance for waste and accident be made for England which M. Neckar makes for France, the quantity remaining after these deductions would be fifty-two millions; and this sum ought to have been in the nation (at the time Mr. Chalmers published), in addition to the sum which was in the nation at the commencement of the Hanover succession, and to have made in the whole at least sixty-six millions sterling; instead of which there were but twenty millions, which is forty-six millions below its proportionate quantity.
If we estimate Great Britain's foreign trade to be one-sixth of the total foreign trade of Europe (which is likely a lower estimate than what the gentlemen at the Exchange would accept), Britain should aim to draw the same one-sixth of sixty million pounds in trade to stay in line with the rest of Europe. If we consider the same allowance for losses and accidents for England that M. Neckar made for France, the amount left after these deductions would be fifty-two million pounds. This amount should have been in the nation (at the time Mr. Chalmers published), in addition to what was present at the beginning of the Hanover succession, making a total of at least sixty-six million pounds; however, there were only twenty million pounds available, which is forty-six million pounds below its proper amount.
As the quantity of gold and silver imported into Lisbon and Cadiz is more exactly ascertained than that of any commodity imported into England, and as the quantity of money coined at the Tower of London is still more positively known, the leading facts do not admit of controversy. Either, therefore, the commerce of England is unproductive of profit, or the gold and silver which it brings in leak continually away by unseen means at the average rate of about three-quarters of a million a year, which, in the course of seventy-two years, accounts for the deficiency; and its absence is supplied by paper.*15
As the amount of gold and silver brought into Lisbon and Cadiz is more accurately tracked than any goods imported into England, and since the amount of money minted at the Tower of London is even more clearly known, the main facts are undisputed. Therefore, either England's trade isn't generating profits, or the gold and silver it imports consistently disappears through invisible means at an average rate of about three-quarters of a million a year, which over seventy-two years explains the shortfall; and this gap is filled by paper.*15
The Revolution of France is attended with many novel circumstances, not only in the political sphere, but in the circle of money transactions. Among others, it shows that a government may be in a state of insolvency and a nation rich. So far as the fact is confined to the late Government of France, it was insolvent; because the nation would no longer support its extravagance, and therefore it could no longer support itself—but with respect to the nation all the means existed. A government may be said to be insolvent every time it applies to the nation to discharge its arrears. The insolvency of the late Government of France and the present of England differed in no other respect than as the dispositions of the people differ. The people of France refused their aid to the old Government; and the people of England submit to taxation without inquiry. What is called the Crown in England has been insolvent several times; the last of which, publicly known, was in May, 1777, when it applied to the nation to discharge upwards of L600,000 private debts, which otherwise it could not pay.
The French Revolution is marked by many new developments, not only in politics but also in financial matters. For instance, it highlights that a government can be bankrupt while the nation itself is wealthy. The recent French government was bankrupt because the people no longer supported its wastefulness, which meant it couldn't sustain itself anymore—but the nation had the resources. A government is considered bankrupt whenever it seeks help from the nation to cover its debts. The bankruptcy of the previous French government and the current one in England are similar except for how the people respond. The people of France denied support to the old government, while the people of England accept taxes without questioning. The Crown in England has faced insolvency multiple times; the most well-known instance was in May 1777 when it requested the nation to cover over £600,000 in private debts that it couldn't pay otherwise.
It was the error of Mr. Pitt, Mr. Burke, and all those who were unacquainted with the affairs of France to confound the French nation with the French Government. The French nation, in effect, endeavoured to render the late Government insolvent for the purpose of taking government into its own hands: and it reserved its means for the support of the new Government. In a country of such vast extent and population as France the natural means cannot be wanting, and the political means appear the instant the nation is disposed to permit them. When Mr. Burke, in a speech last winter in the British Parliament, "cast his eyes over the map of Europe, and saw a chasm that once was France," he talked like a dreamer of dreams. The same natural France existed as before, and all the natural means existed with it. The only chasm was that the extinction of despotism had left, and which was to be filled up with the Constitution more formidable in resources than the power which had expired.
It was a mistake by Mr. Pitt, Mr. Burke, and others who didn't understand French affairs to confuse the French people with the French Government. The French nation was actually trying to make the old Government fail so they could take control themselves, holding back resources to support the new Government. In a country as large and populated as France, natural resources are never lacking, and political resources emerge as soon as the nation is willing to allow them. When Mr. Burke, in a speech last winter in the British Parliament, "looked over the map of Europe and saw a gap that used to be France," he sounded like a dreamer. The same natural France that existed before is still there, along with all its natural resources. The only gap was left by the end of despotism, which would be filled by a Constitution more powerful than the government that had ended.
Although the French Nation rendered the late Government insolvent, it did not permit the insolvency to act towards the creditors; and the creditors, considering the Nation as the real pay-master, and the Government only as the agent, rested themselves on the nation, in preference to the Government. This appears greatly to disturb Mr. Burke, as the precedent is fatal to the policy by which governments have supposed themselves secure. They have contracted debts, with a view of attaching what is called the monied interest of a Nation to their support; but the example in France shows that the permanent security of the creditor is in the Nation, and not in the Government; and that in all possible revolutions that may happen in Governments, the means are always with the Nation, and the Nation always in existence. Mr. Burke argues that the creditors ought to have abided the fate of the Government which they trusted; but the National Assembly considered them as the creditors of the Nation, and not of the Government—of the master, and not of the steward.
Although the French Nation left the previous Government bankrupt, it didn’t let that bankruptcy affect the creditors. The creditors viewed the Nation as the real source of payment and the Government merely as the middleman, so they relied on the Nation rather than the Government. This significantly worries Mr. Burke, as this precedent undermines the policy by which governments believed they were safe. They have taken on debts to secure what is referred to as the financial interests of a Nation in their favor; however, the situation in France demonstrates that the true security for creditors lies with the Nation, not the Government. Regardless of any changes that might occur in Governments, the resources are always with the Nation, which is always present. Mr. Burke contends that the creditors should have accepted the outcome of the Government they supported; however, the National Assembly viewed them as creditors of the Nation, not the Government—of the master, rather than the steward.
Notwithstanding the late government could not discharge the current expenses, the present government has paid off a great part of the capital. This has been accomplished by two means; the one by lessening the expenses of government, and the other by the sale of the monastic and ecclesiastical landed estates. The devotees and penitent debauchees, extortioners and misers of former days, to ensure themselves a better world than that they were about to leave, had bequeathed immense property in trust to the priesthood for pious uses; and the priesthood kept it for themselves. The National Assembly has ordered it to be sold for the good of the whole nation, and the priesthood to be decently provided for.
Despite the previous government being unable to cover current expenses, the current government has paid off a significant portion of the debt. This has been achieved through two methods: reducing government expenses and selling off monastic and church-owned land. Those who were devout and those who lived indulgently in the past, along with greedy individuals, had left behind vast properties in trust to the clergy for charitable purposes, but the clergy kept it for themselves. The National Assembly has mandated that this property be sold for the benefit of the entire nation, ensuring that the clergy are reasonably supported.
In consequence of the revolution, the annual interest of the debt of France will be reduced at least six millions sterling, by paying off upwards of one hundred millions of the capital; which, with lessening the former expenses of government at least three millions, will place France in a situation worthy the imitation of Europe.
As a result of the revolution, France's annual debt interest will be cut by at least six million pounds by paying off over one hundred million of the principal. Coupled with a reduction in government expenses of at least three million, this will put France in a position worth emulating in Europe.
Upon a whole review of the subject, how vast is the contrast! While Mr. Burke has been talking of a general bankruptcy in France, the National Assembly has been paying off the capital of its debt; and while taxes have increased near a million a year in England, they have lowered several millions a year in France. Not a word has either Mr. Burke or Mr. Pitt said about the French affairs, or the state of the French finances, in the present Session of Parliament. The subject begins to be too well understood, and imposition serves no longer.
Upon a complete review of the topic, the contrast is striking! While Mr. Burke has been discussing a widespread bankruptcy in France, the National Assembly has been paying off its debt. Meanwhile, while taxes have increased by nearly a million a year in England, they have decreased by several million a year in France. Neither Mr. Burke nor Mr. Pitt has mentioned French affairs or the state of French finances in the current session of Parliament. The issue is becoming too well understood, and deceit is no longer effective.
There is a general enigma running through the whole of Mr. Burke's book. He writes in a rage against the National Assembly; but what is he enraged about? If his assertions were as true as they are groundless, and that France by her Revolution, had annihilated her power, and become what he calls a chasm, it might excite the grief of a Frenchman (considering himself as a national man), and provoke his rage against the National Assembly; but why should it excite the rage of Mr. Burke? Alas! it is not the nation of France that Mr. Burke means, but the Court; and every Court in Europe, dreading the same fate, is in mourning. He writes neither in the character of a Frenchman nor an Englishman, but in the fawning character of that creature known in all countries, and a friend to none—a courtier. Whether it be the Court of Versailles, or the Court of St. James, or Carlton-House, or the Court in expectation, signifies not; for the caterpillar principle of all Courts and Courtiers are alike. They form a common policy throughout Europe, detached and separate from the interest of Nations: and while they appear to quarrel, they agree to plunder. Nothing can be more terrible to a Court or Courtier than the Revolution of France. That which is a blessing to Nations is bitterness to them: and as their existence depends on the duplicity of a country, they tremble at the approach of principles, and dread the precedent that threatens their overthrow.
There’s a general mystery running through Mr. Burke's entire book. He writes in anger against the National Assembly; but what’s he actually angry about? If his claims were as true as they are unfounded, and if France, through its Revolution, had destroyed its own power and turned into what he calls a void, it might make a Frenchman (viewing himself as a patriot) feel grief and incite his anger against the National Assembly; but why should Mr. Burke be angry? Tragically, he doesn't mean the nation of France, but the Court; and every Court in Europe, fearing the same fate, is in mourning. He writes neither as a Frenchman nor an Englishman, but in the sneaky guise of that creature known in all nations, and a friend to none—a courtier. Whether it’s the Court of Versailles, the Court of St. James, Carlton-House, or the awaiting Court, it doesn’t matter, because the parasitic nature of all Courts and Courtiers is the same. They create a shared agenda throughout Europe, separate from the interests of nations: and while they seem to argue, they actually conspire to exploit. Nothing is more terrifying to a Court or Courtier than the Revolution in France. What is a blessing to nations is a curse to them: and as their survival relies on the deceit of a country, they quiver at the arrival of new principles and fear the precedent that threatens their downfall.
CONCLUSION
CONCLUSION
Reason and Ignorance, the opposites of each other, influence the great bulk of mankind. If either of these can be rendered sufficiently extensive in a country, the machinery of Government goes easily on. Reason obeys itself; and Ignorance submits to whatever is dictated to it.
Reason and Ignorance, being opposites, greatly affect most people. If either one becomes widespread in a country, the government can function smoothly. Reason follows its own rules, while Ignorance accepts whatever is imposed on it.
The two modes of the Government which prevail in the world, are:
The two types of government that exist in the world are:
First, Government by election and representation.
First, government through elections and representation.
Secondly, Government by hereditary succession.
Second, hereditary succession government.
The former is generally known by the name of republic; the latter by that of monarchy and aristocracy.
The former is commonly referred to as a republic; the latter as monarchy and aristocracy.
Those two distinct and opposite forms erect themselves on the two distinct and opposite bases of Reason and Ignorance.—As the exercise of Government requires talents and abilities, and as talents and abilities cannot have hereditary descent, it is evident that hereditary succession requires a belief from man to which his reason cannot subscribe, and which can only be established upon his ignorance; and the more ignorant any country is, the better it is fitted for this species of Government.
Those two different and opposing forms stand on two separate and opposing foundations of Reason and Ignorance. Since governing requires skills and abilities, and since skills and abilities can't be passed down through family lines, it's clear that hereditary succession relies on a belief that contradicts reason and can only be based on ignorance. The more ignorant a country is, the more suitable it is for this type of government.
On the contrary, Government, in a well-constituted republic, requires no belief from man beyond what his reason can give. He sees the rationale of the whole system, its origin and its operation; and as it is best supported when best understood, the human faculties act with boldness, and acquire, under this form of government, a gigantic manliness.
On the contrary, in a well-structured republic, the government doesn't need any belief from people beyond what they can understand through reason. They see the logic of the entire system, its origins, and how it works; and since it's most effective when understood, people's abilities operate confidently, gaining remarkable strength under this kind of government.
As, therefore, each of those forms acts on a different base, the one moving freely by the aid of reason, the other by ignorance; we have next to consider, what it is that gives motion to that species of Government which is called mixed Government, or, as it is sometimes ludicrously styled, a Government of this, that and t' other.
As each of those forms operates on a different foundation—the first moving freely through reason, the second through ignorance—we next need to consider what drives the type of government known as mixed government, or, as it's sometimes humorously called, a government of this, that, and the other.
The moving power in this species of Government is, of necessity, Corruption. However imperfect election and representation may be in mixed Governments, they still give exercise to a greater portion of reason than is convenient to the hereditary Part; and therefore it becomes necessary to buy the reason up. A mixed Government is an imperfect everything, cementing and soldering the discordant parts together by corruption, to act as a whole. Mr. Burke appears highly disgusted that France, since she had resolved on a revolution, did not adopt what he calls "A British Constitution"; and the regretful manner in which he expresses himself on this occasion implies a suspicion that the British Constitution needed something to keep its defects in countenance.
The driving force behind this type of government is, unfortunately, corruption. No matter how flawed elections and representation may be in mixed governments, they still engage more reason than is comfortable for the hereditary side; thus, it becomes necessary to bribe reason. A mixed government is essentially an imperfect system, patching together its conflicting elements through corruption to function as a whole. Mr. Burke seems quite upset that France, after deciding on a revolution, didn’t adopt what he refers to as "A British Constitution"; his regretful tone suggests he suspects that the British Constitution required something to mask its flaws.
In mixed Governments there is no responsibility: the parts cover each other till responsibility is lost; and the corruption which moves the machine, contrives at the same time its own escape. When it is laid down as a maxim, that a King can do no wrong, it places him in a state of similar security with that of idiots and persons insane, and responsibility is out of the question with respect to himself. It then descends upon the Minister, who shelters himself under a majority in Parliament, which, by places, pensions, and corruption, he can always command; and that majority justifies itself by the same authority with which it protects the Minister. In this rotatory motion, responsibility is thrown off from the parts, and from the whole.
In mixed governments, there’s no accountability: the different parts cover for each other until responsibility fades away, and the corruption that fuels the system also finds ways to evade consequences. When it’s stated as a rule that a king can do no wrong, it puts him in a similar position to that of the mentally ill, making accountability irrelevant for him. Instead, it shifts to the minister, who hides behind a majority in Parliament that he can always control through jobs, pensions, and corruption. That majority justifies itself using the same power that it uses to protect the minister. In this cycle, responsibility is discarded by both the individual parts and the whole system.
When there is a Part in a Government which can do no wrong, it implies that it does nothing; and is only the machine of another power, by whose advice and direction it acts. What is supposed to be the King in the mixed Governments, is the Cabinet; and as the Cabinet is always a part of the Parliament, and the members justifying in one character what they advise and act in another, a mixed Government becomes a continual enigma; entailing upon a country by the quantity of corruption necessary to solder the parts, the expense of supporting all the forms of government at once, and finally resolving itself into a Government by Committee; in which the advisers, the actors, the approvers, the justifiers, the persons responsible, and the persons not responsible, are the same persons.
When a part of the government can do no wrong, it means that it doesn't actually do anything; it's just a tool for another power, following its guidance and direction. In mixed governments, the role of the King is taken on by the Cabinet. Since the Cabinet is always part of Parliament, and its members justify their actions in one role while advising in another, mixed government becomes a constant puzzle. This creates corruption because it requires a lot of effort to hold everything together, the cost of maintaining all the different forms of government simultaneously, and ultimately leads to a government run by committees, where the advisers, the doers, the approvers, the justifiers, those accountable, and the ones who aren't accountable are the same people.
By this pantomimical contrivance, and change of scene and character, the parts help each other out in matters which neither of them singly would assume to act. When money is to be obtained, the mass of variety apparently dissolves, and a profusion of parliamentary praises passes between the parts. Each admires with astonishment, the wisdom, the liberality, the disinterestedness of the other: and all of them breathe a pitying sigh at the burthens of the Nation.
By this theatrical trick, along with the changing scenes and characters, the roles support each other in ways that neither would dare do alone. When it comes to getting money, the variety seems to melt away, and an overflow of political compliments flies between the roles. Each one marvels at the other's wisdom, generosity, and selflessness, and they all sigh in sympathy about the burdens of the Nation.
But in a well-constituted republic, nothing of this soldering, praising, and pitying, can take place; the representation being equal throughout the country, and complete in itself, however it may be arranged into legislative and executive, they have all one and the same natural source. The parts are not foreigners to each other, like democracy, aristocracy, and monarchy. As there are no discordant distinctions, there is nothing to corrupt by compromise, nor confound by contrivance. Public measures appeal of themselves to the understanding of the Nation, and, resting on their own merits, disown any flattering applications to vanity. The continual whine of lamenting the burden of taxes, however successfully it may be practised in mixed Governments, is inconsistent with the sense and spirit of a republic. If taxes are necessary, they are of course advantageous; but if they require an apology, the apology itself implies an impeachment. Why, then, is man thus imposed upon, or why does he impose upon himself?
But in a well-functioning republic, none of this flattering, praising, and pitying can happen; representation is equal across the country and complete in itself, regardless of how it's organized into legislative and executive branches, all sharing the same natural foundation. The parts aren't strangers to each other, like in democracy, aristocracy, and monarchy. Since there are no conflicting distinctions, nothing can be corrupted through compromise or messed up by schemes. Public measures appeal directly to the understanding of the nation, and, based on their own merits, don’t rely on flattering appeals to vanity. The constant complaint about the burden of taxes, no matter how effectively it might work in mixed governments, goes against the sense and spirit of a republic. If taxes are necessary, they must be beneficial; but if they need justification, that justification itself implies a problem. So, why is man burdened this way, or why does he put this burden on himself?
When men are spoken of as kings and subjects, or when Government is mentioned under the distinct and combined heads of monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy, what is it that reasoning man is to understand by the terms? If there really existed in the world two or more distinct and separate elements of human power, we should then see the several origins to which those terms would descriptively apply; but as there is but one species of man, there can be but one element of human power; and that element is man himself. Monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy, are but creatures of imagination; and a thousand such may be contrived as well as three.
When people talk about kings and subjects, or when government is referred to in terms of monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy, what are we really supposed to understand by those terms? If there were actually two or more distinct sources of human power, we would see the various origins those terms would accurately describe; but since there is only one species of human, there can only be one source of human power, and that source is humanity itself. Monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy are just concepts created in our minds; in fact, a thousand similar ones could be invented just like the three mentioned.
From the Revolutions of America and France, and the symptoms that have appeared in other countries, it is evident that the opinion of the world is changing with respect to systems of Government, and that revolutions are not within the compass of political calculations. The progress of time and circumstances, which men assign to the accomplishment of great changes, is too mechanical to measure the force of the mind, and the rapidity of reflection, by which revolutions are generated: All the old governments have received a shock from those that already appear, and which were once more improbable, and are a greater subject of wonder, than a general revolution in Europe would be now.
From the revolutions in America and France, and the signs of change in other countries, it's clear that people's views on government systems are shifting, and revolutions can't be predicted politically. The passage of time and circumstances that people attribute to major changes is too rigid to capture the power of thought and the swiftness of reflection that lead to revolutions. All the old governments have been shaken by those that have emerged, which once seemed unlikely, and this is more astonishing than a widespread revolution in Europe would be today.
When we survey the wretched condition of man, under the monarchical and hereditary systems of Government, dragged from his home by one power, or driven by another, and impoverished by taxes more than by enemies, it becomes evident that those systems are bad, and that a general revolution in the principle and construction of Governments is necessary.
When we look at the miserable state of humanity under monarchy and hereditary government, pulled from our homes by one force or pushed by another, and made poor by taxes more than by enemies, it’s clear that these systems are flawed, and a widespread change in the principles and structure of governments is essential.
What is government more than the management of the affairs of a Nation? It is not, and from its nature cannot be, the property of any particular man or family, but of the whole community, at whose expense it is supported; and though by force and contrivance it has been usurped into an inheritance, the usurpation cannot alter the right of things. Sovereignty, as a matter of right, appertains to the Nation only, and not to any individual; and a Nation has at all times an inherent indefeasible right to abolish any form of Government it finds inconvenient, and to establish such as accords with its interest, disposition and happiness. The romantic and barbarous distinction of men into Kings and subjects, though it may suit the condition of courtiers, cannot that of citizens; and is exploded by the principle upon which Governments are now founded. Every citizen is a member of the Sovereignty, and, as such, can acknowledge no personal subjection; and his obedience can be only to the laws.
What is government if not the management of a Nation's affairs? It is not, and by its nature cannot be, the property of any specific individual or family, but of the entire community that funds it; and even though it has been wrongfully taken as an inheritance through force and manipulation, that usurpation does not change the rightful order of things. Sovereignty, by right, belongs only to the Nation and not to any one person; a Nation always has an inherent, undeniable right to abolish any form of Government it finds unhelpful and to establish one that aligns with its interests, values, and happiness. The outdated and primitive division of people into Kings and subjects may work for courtiers, but it cannot apply to citizens, and it is challenged by the principles on which modern Governments are built. Every citizen is part of the Sovereignty and, as such, can accept no personal subjugation; their obedience can only be to the laws.
When men think of what Government is, they must necessarily suppose it to possess a knowledge of all the objects and matters upon which its authority is to be exercised. In this view of Government, the republican system, as established by America and France, operates to embrace the whole of a Nation; and the knowledge necessary to the interest of all the parts, is to be found in the center, which the parts by representation form: But the old Governments are on a construction that excludes knowledge as well as happiness; government by Monks, who knew nothing of the world beyond the walls of a Convent, is as consistent as government by Kings.
When people think about what government is, they must assume it has an understanding of all the issues and matters over which it holds authority. From this perspective, the republican systems established by America and France aim to encompass the entire nation, with the knowledge needed for the well-being of all parts being centered in the representation formed by those parts. In contrast, old governments are designed in a way that limits knowledge as well as happiness; rule by monks, who knew nothing of the world beyond the convent walls, is just as logical as rule by kings.
What were formerly called Revolutions, were little more than a change of persons, or an alteration of local circumstances. They rose and fell like things of course, and had nothing in their existence or their fate that could influence beyond the spot that produced them. But what we now see in the world, from the Revolutions of America and France, are a renovation of the natural order of things, a system of principles as universal as truth and the existence of man, and combining moral with political happiness and national prosperity.
What used to be called Revolutions were mostly just changes in leadership or shifts in local situations. They came and went as expected and didn't have any impact beyond the places where they occurred. However, what we see in the world today, from the Revolutions in America and France, is a transformation of the natural order, a set of principles as universal as truth and human existence, integrating moral and political happiness with national prosperity.
"I. Men are born, and always continue, free and equal in respect of their rights. Civil distinctions, therefore, can be founded only on public utility.
"I. Men are born and remain free and equal regarding their rights. Therefore, civil distinctions can only be based on public utility."
"II. The end of all political associations is the preservation of the natural and imprescriptible rights of man; and these rights are liberty, property, security, and resistance of oppression.
"II. The purpose of all political associations is to protect the natural and inalienable rights of individuals; these rights include freedom, property, safety, and the ability to resist oppression."
"III. The nation is essentially the source of all sovereignty; nor can any Individual, or Any Body Of Men, be entitled to any authority which is not expressly derived from it."
"III. The nation is fundamentally the source of all power; no individual or group of people can claim authority that isn’t clearly derived from it."
In these principles, there is nothing to throw a Nation into confusion by inflaming ambition. They are calculated to call forth wisdom and abilities, and to exercise them for the public good, and not for the emolument or aggrandisement of particular descriptions of men or families. Monarchical sovereignty, the enemy of mankind, and the source of misery, is abolished; and the sovereignty itself is restored to its natural and original place, the Nation. Were this the case throughout Europe, the cause of wars would be taken away.
In these principles, there’s nothing that would confuse a nation by stirring up ambition. They are meant to encourage wisdom and skills, and to use them for the public good, not for the profit or power of certain groups or families. Monarchical authority, which harms people and is the source of suffering, is eliminated; the power is returned to where it properly belongs, the nation. If this were true across Europe, the reason for wars would disappear.
It is attributed to Henry the Fourth of France, a man of enlarged and benevolent heart, that he proposed, about the year 1610, a plan for abolishing war in Europe. The plan consisted in constituting an European Congress, or as the French authors style it, a Pacific Republic; by appointing delegates from the several Nations who were to act as a Court of arbitration in any disputes that might arise between nation and nation.
It is attributed to Henry the Fourth of France, a man of great and generous heart, that he proposed, around the year 1610, a plan to end war in Europe. The plan involved creating a European Congress, or as the French authors call it, a Pacific Republic; by appointing delegates from the various nations who would act as a court of arbitration for any disputes that might arise between countries.
Had such a plan been adopted at the time it was proposed, the taxes of England and France, as two of the parties, would have been at least ten millions sterling annually to each Nation less than they were at the commencement of the French Revolution.
Had such a plan been adopted when it was suggested, the taxes of England and France, as two of the parties, would have been at least ten million pounds sterling less annually for each nation than they were at the start of the French Revolution.
To conceive a cause why such a plan has not been adopted (and that instead of a Congress for the purpose of preventing war, it has been called only to terminate a war, after a fruitless expense of several years) it will be necessary to consider the interest of Governments as a distinct interest to that of Nations.
To understand why such a plan hasn't been adopted (and that instead of a Congress meant to prevent war, it was only called to end a war after several years of wasted effort), we need to look at the interests of governments as separate from the interests of nations.
Whatever is the cause of taxes to a Nation, becomes also the means of revenue to Government. Every war terminates with an addition of taxes, and consequently with an addition of revenue; and in any event of war, in the manner they are now commenced and concluded, the power and interest of Governments are increased. War, therefore, from its productiveness, as it easily furnishes the pretence of necessity for taxes and appointments to places and offices, becomes a principal part of the system of old Governments; and to establish any mode to abolish war, however advantageous it might be to Nations, would be to take from such Government the most lucrative of its branches. The frivolous matters upon which war is made, show the disposition and avidity of Governments to uphold the system of war, and betray the motives upon which they act.
Whatever the reason for taxes in a nation, they also provide revenue for the government. Every war ends up increasing taxes and, therefore, raises revenue; in any case of war, especially as it happens today, the power and interests of governments get stronger. War, because it generates income easily, creates a convenient excuse for the need for taxes and appointments to roles and positions, making it a key component of traditional government systems. Developing any way to eliminate war, no matter how beneficial it might be for nations, would deprive such governments of one of their most profitable branches. The trivial reasons for waging war reveal governments' eagerness to maintain the war system, exposing their true motivations.
Why are not Republics plunged into war, but because the nature of their Government does not admit of an interest distinct from that of the Nation? Even Holland, though an ill-constructed Republic, and with a commerce extending over the world, existed nearly a century without war: and the instant the form of Government was changed in France, the republican principles of peace and domestic prosperity and economy arose with the new Government; and the same consequences would follow the cause in other Nations.
Why aren't republics involved in war? It's because their form of government doesn't allow for an interest that's separate from the nation's. Take Holland, for example. Even though it was a poorly designed republic with global trade, it managed to stay out of war for nearly a century. The moment the government changed in France, the republican ideals of peace, domestic stability, and economic prudence emerged with the new regime, and similar outcomes would likely occur in other nations.
As war is the system of Government on the old construction, the animosity which Nations reciprocally entertain, is nothing more than what the policy of their Governments excites to keep up the spirit of the system. Each Government accuses the other of perfidy, intrigue, and ambition, as a means of heating the imagination of their respective Nations, and incensing them to hostilities. Man is not the enemy of man, but through the medium of a false system of Government. Instead, therefore, of exclaiming against the ambition of Kings, the exclamation should be directed against the principle of such Governments; and instead of seeking to reform the individual, the wisdom of a Nation should apply itself to reform the system.
As long as war is part of the old government system, the hostility that countries feel for each other is really just what their governments stir up to maintain the system's momentum. Each government blames the other for treachery, scheming, and greed, as a way to inflame the imaginations of their citizens and provoke them into conflict. People aren't naturally enemies; they're shaped into enemies by a flawed system of governance. So rather than railing against the ambitions of kings, we should focus our anger on the principles of those governments. Instead of trying to change individuals, a nation should direct its wisdom toward changing the system itself.
Whether the forms and maxims of Governments which are still in practice, were adapted to the condition of the world at the period they were established, is not in this case the question. The older they are, the less correspondence can they have with the present state of things. Time, and change of circumstances and opinions, have the same progressive effect in rendering modes of Government obsolete as they have upon customs and manners.—Agriculture, commerce, manufactures, and the tranquil arts, by which the prosperity of Nations is best promoted, require a different system of Government, and a different species of knowledge to direct its operations, than what might have been required in the former condition of the world.
Whether the forms and principles of governments currently in use were suited to the conditions of the world when they were established is not the main issue here. The older they are, the less they likely reflect our current situation. Time, along with changes in circumstances and beliefs, has a similar effect on making government systems outdated as it does on customs and social practices. Agriculture, commerce, manufacturing, and the peaceful arts that best promote a nation's prosperity require a different system of government and a different type of knowledge to guide their operations than what may have been needed in the past.
As it is not difficult to perceive, from the enlightened state of mankind, that hereditary Governments are verging to their decline, and that Revolutions on the broad basis of national sovereignty and Government by representation, are making their way in Europe, it would be an act of wisdom to anticipate their approach, and produce Revolutions by reason and accommodation, rather than commit them to the issue of convulsions.
It’s easy to see from the progress of humanity that hereditary governments are on the decline, and that revolutions based on national sovereignty and representative government are emerging in Europe. It would be wise to prepare for their arrival and initiate revolutions through reason and compromise, rather than leaving it to chaotic upheavals.
From what we now see, nothing of reform in the political world ought to be held improbable. It is an age of Revolutions, in which everything may be looked for. The intrigue of Courts, by which the system of war is kept up, may provoke a confederation of Nations to abolish it: and an European Congress to patronise the progress of free Government, and promote the civilisation of Nations with each other, is an event nearer in probability, than once were the revolutions and alliance of France and America.
From what we can see now, nothing about reform in politics should be considered unlikely. We're in an age of Revolutions, where anything can happen. The scheming of governments, which keeps the system of war alive, might trigger a coalition of Nations to end it: and a European Congress that supports the advancement of free Government and encourages the civilization of Nations among one another is more likely to happen now than the past revolutions and alliances of France and America.
END OF PART I.
END OF PART I.
RIGHTS OF MAN. PART SECOND, COMBINING PRINCIPLE AND PRACTICE.
By Thomas Paine.
FRENCH TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE.
(1792)
THE work of which we offer a translation to the public has created the greatest sensation in England. Paine, that man of freedom, who seems born to preach "Common Sense" to the whole world with the same success as in America, explains in it to the people of England the theory of the practice of the Rights of Man.
THE work we are translating for the public has caused a huge stir in England. Paine, that champion of freedom, who seems destined to share "Common Sense" globally with the same impact as he did in America, explains to the people of England the theory and practice of human rights.
Owing to the prejudices that still govern that nation, the author has been obliged to condescend to answer Mr. Burke. He has done so more especially in an extended preface which is nothing but a piece of very tedious controversy, in which he shows himself very sensitive to criticisms that do not really affect him. To translate it seemed an insult to the free French people, and similar reasons have led the editors to suppress also a dedicatory epistle addressed by Paine to Lafayette.
Due to the biases that still influence that country, the author felt forced to respond to Mr. Burke. He did this especially in a long preface that is just a lengthy argument, where he appears overly affected by criticisms that don’t truly concern him. Translating it seemed disrespectful to the free French people, and similar reasons have led the editors to also omit a dedication from Paine to Lafayette.
The French can no longer endure dedicatory epistles. A man should write privately to those he esteems: when he publishes a book his thoughts should be offered to the public alone. Paine, that uncorrupted friend of freedom, believed too in the sincerity of Lafayette. So easy is it to deceive men of single-minded purpose! Bred at a distance from courts, that austere American does not seem any more on his guard against the artful ways and speech of courtiers than some Frenchmen who resemble him.
The French can no longer stand dedicatory letters. A person should write privately to those they admire; when they publish a book, their thoughts should be shared with the public only. Paine, that honest advocate for freedom, also believed in Lafayette's sincerity. It's so easy to mislead people with single-minded intentions! Raised away from the courts, that serious American doesn’t seem any more cautious about the cunning ways and words of courtiers than some Frenchmen who are similar to him.
TO M. DE LA FAYETTE
To M. De La Fayette
After an acquaintance of nearly fifteen years in difficult situations in America, and various consultations in Europe, I feel a pleasure in presenting to you this small treatise, in gratitude for your services to my beloved America, and as a testimony of my esteem for the virtues, public and private, which I know you to possess.
After knowing you for almost fifteen years through tough times in America and various discussions in Europe, I'm happy to share this small essay with you. It’s a thank you for your contributions to my beloved America and a testament to the respect I have for the virtues, both public and private, that I know you have.
The only point upon which I could ever discover that we differed was not as to principles of government, but as to time. For my own part I think it equally as injurious to good principles to permit them to linger, as to push them on too fast. That which you suppose accomplishable in fourteen or fifteen years, I may believe practicable in a much shorter period. Mankind, as it appears to me, are always ripe enough to understand their true interest, provided it be presented clearly to their understanding, and that in a manner not to create suspicion by anything like self-design, nor offend by assuming too much. Where we would wish to reform we must not reproach.
The only area where I ever found we disagreed was not about government principles, but about timing. Personally, I believe it's just as harmful to let good principles sit around as it is to rush them. What you think can be achieved in fourteen or fifteen years, I might think is doable in a much shorter time. It seems to me that people are always ready to grasp their true interests, as long as these are presented clearly and without any hint of selfish motive or overstepping. If we want to create change, we shouldn't point fingers.
When the American revolution was established I felt a disposition to sit serenely down and enjoy the calm. It did not appear to me that any object could afterwards arise great enough to make me quit tranquility and feel as I had felt before. But when principle, and not place, is the energetic cause of action, a man, I find, is everywhere the same.
When the American Revolution was underway, I had the urge to just sit back and enjoy the peace. It seemed to me that nothing could happen afterward that would be important enough to make me leave that calm and feel the way I did before. But when it's principle, not location, that drives a person to act, I've realized that a person behaves the same way no matter where they are.
I am now once more in the public world; and as I have not a right to contemplate on so many years of remaining life as you have, I have resolved to labour as fast as I can; and as I am anxious for your aid and your company, I wish you to hasten your principles and overtake me.
I’m back in the public eye again, and since I don’t have the luxury of many years left like you do, I’ve decided to work as hard as I can. I’m eager for your support and company, so I need you to speed up your efforts and catch up with me.
If you make a campaign the ensuing spring, which it is most probable there will be no occasion for, I will come and join you. Should the campaign commence, I hope it will terminate in the extinction of German despotism, and in establishing the freedom of all Germany. When France shall be surrounded with revolutions she will be in peace and safety, and her taxes, as well as those of Germany, will consequently become less.
If you launch a campaign next spring, which is probably unnecessary, I will come and join you. If the campaign starts, I hope it will end in the downfall of German tyranny and in securing freedom for all of Germany. When France is surrounded by revolutions, she will be at peace and safe, and her taxes, along with Germany's, will therefore be lower.
Your sincere,
Your heartfelt,
Affectionate Friend,
Warm Friend,
Thomas Paine
Thomas Paine
London, Feb. 9, 1792
London, Feb. 9, 1792
PREFACE
When I began the chapter entitled the "Conclusion" in the former part of the RIGHTS OF MAN, published last year, it was my intention to have extended it to a greater length; but in casting the whole matter in my mind, which I wish to add, I found that it must either make the work too bulky, or contract my plan too much. I therefore brought it to a close as soon as the subject would admit, and reserved what I had further to say to another opportunity.
When I started the chapter called "Conclusion" in the earlier part of the RIGHTS OF MAN, published last year, I meant to make it longer. However, after considering everything I wanted to include, I realized it would either make the work too heavy or limit my overall plan too much. So, I wrapped it up as soon as the topic allowed and saved what I still wanted to discuss for another time.
Several other reasons contributed to produce this determination. I wished to know the manner in which a work, written in a style of thinking and expression different to what had been customary in England, would be received before I proceeded farther. A great field was opening to the view of mankind by means of the French Revolution. Mr. Burke's outrageous opposition thereto brought the controversy into England. He attacked principles which he knew (from information) I would contest with him, because they are principles I believe to be good, and which I have contributed to establish, and conceive myself bound to defend. Had he not urged the controversy, I had most probably been a silent man.
Several other reasons led to this decision. I wanted to see how a work, written in a different style of thinking and expression than what was common in England, would be received before I went any further. The French Revolution was opening up a huge new world for humanity. Mr. Burke's extreme opposition to it brought the debate into England. He challenged principles that he knew I would argue against, because I believe they are good principles that I have helped establish and feel obligated to defend. If he hadn't sparked the debate, I probably would have remained silent.
Another reason for deferring the remainder of the work was, that Mr. Burke promised in his first publication to renew the subject at another opportunity, and to make a comparison of what he called the English and French Constitutions. I therefore held myself in reserve for him. He has published two works since, without doing this: which he certainly would not have omitted, had the comparison been in his favour.
Another reason for postponing the rest of the work was that Mr. Burke promised in his first publication to revisit the topic at another time and to compare what he referred to as the English and French Constitutions. So, I decided to wait for him. He has published two works since then without doing this, which he definitely would have included if the comparison had been in his favor.
In his last work, his "Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs," he has quoted about ten pages from the RIGHTS OF MAN, and having given himself the trouble of doing this, says he "shall not attempt in the smallest degree to refute them," meaning the principles therein contained. I am enough acquainted with Mr. Burke to know that he would if he could. But instead of contesting them, he immediately after consoles himself with saying that "he has done his part."—He has not done his part. He has not performed his promise of a comparison of constitutions. He started the controversy, he gave the challenge, and has fled from it; and he is now a case in point with his own opinion that "the age of chivalry is gone!"
In his final work, "Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs," he quotes about ten pages from the RIGHTS OF MAN and, having taken the effort to do this, states he "will not even try to refute them," referring to the principles expressed in it. I know Mr. Burke well enough to realize that he would if he could. But instead of arguing against them, he quickly reassures himself by saying that "he has done his part."—He has not done his part. He hasn't fulfilled his promise to compare the constitutions. He started the debate, issued the challenge, and has now backed away from it; he is now a perfect example of his own belief that "the age of chivalry is gone!"
The title, as well as the substance of his last work, his "Appeal," is his condemnation. Principles must stand on their own merits, and if they are good they certainly will. To put them under the shelter of other men's authority, as Mr. Burke has done, serves to bring them into suspicion. Mr. Burke is not very fond of dividing his honours, but in this case he is artfully dividing the disgrace.
The title and the content of his latest work, his "Appeal," serve as his condemnation. Principles need to hold up on their own, and if they're solid, they will. Relying on the authority of others, like Mr. Burke has done, only raises doubts about them. Mr. Burke isn't one to share his accolades easily, but in this situation, he's cleverly sharing the disgrace.
But who are those to whom Mr. Burke has made his appeal? A set of childish thinkers, and half-way politicians born in the last century, men who went no farther with any principle than as it suited their purposes as a party; the nation was always left out of the question; and this has been the character of every party from that day to this. The nation sees nothing of such works, or such politics, worthy its attention. A little matter will move a party, but it must be something great that moves a nation.
But who are the people that Mr. Burke is appealing to? A bunch of naive thinkers and half-hearted politicians from the last century, who only followed any principle as long as it benefited their party; the nation was never part of the discussion. This has been the nature of every party from then until now. The nation doesn't pay attention to such actions or politics. A minor issue might sway a party, but it takes something significant to move a nation.
Though I see nothing in Mr. Burke's "Appeal" worth taking much notice of, there is, however, one expression upon which I shall offer a few remarks. After quoting largely from the RIGHTS OF MAN, and declining to contest the principles contained in that work, he says: "This will most probably be done (if such writings shall be thought to deserve any other refutation than that of criminal justice) by others, who may think with Mr. Burke and with the same zeal."
Though I don’t find much in Mr. Burke's "Appeal" worth paying attention to, there is one phrase I’d like to comment on. After quoting extensively from the RIGHTS OF MAN and choosing not to challenge the ideas presented in that work, he states: "This will most likely be addressed (if such writings are deemed to require anything more than a response from the justice system) by others who may agree with Mr. Burke and share the same enthusiasm."
In the first place, it has not yet been done by anybody. Not less, I believe, than eight or ten pamphlets intended as answers to the former part of the RIGHTS OF MAN have been published by different persons, and not one of them to my knowledge, has extended to a second edition, nor are even the titles of them so much as generally remembered. As I am averse to unnecessary multiplying publications, I have answered none of them. And as I believe that a man may write himself out of reputation when nobody else can do it, I am careful to avoid that rock.
First of all, no one has done it yet. I believe that at least eight or ten pamphlets intended as responses to the first part of the RIGHTS OF MAN have been published by various individuals, and as far as I know, not one has gone to a second edition, nor are even their titles widely remembered. Since I’m against creating unnecessary publications, I haven’t responded to any of them. And because I think a person can write themselves out of reputation when no one else can, I make sure to steer clear of that trap.
But as I would decline unnecessary publications on the one hand, so would I avoid everything that might appear like sullen pride on the other. If Mr. Burke, or any person on his side the question, will produce an answer to the RIGHTS OF MAN that shall extend to a half, or even to a fourth part of the number of copies to which the Rights Of Man extended, I will reply to his work. But until this be done, I shall so far take the sense of the public for my guide (and the world knows I am not a flatterer) that what they do not think worth while to read, is not worth mine to answer. I suppose the number of copies to which the first part of the RIGHTS OF MAN extended, taking England, Scotland, and Ireland, is not less than between forty and fifty thousand.
But while I will turn down unnecessary publications on one hand, I will also steer clear of anything that might come off as sullen pride on the other. If Mr. Burke, or anyone on his side of the argument, can provide a response to the RIGHTS OF MAN that matches even half, or a quarter, of the number of copies that the Rights Of Man reached, I will respond to his work. But until that happens, I will use the public's perception as my guide (and everyone knows I’m not one to flatter) because what they don’t find worth reading isn’t worth my time to answer. I believe the number of copies that the first part of the RIGHTS OF MAN circulated, including England, Scotland, and Ireland, is no less than between forty and fifty thousand.
I now come to remark on the remaining part of the quotation I have made from Mr. Burke.
I now want to comment on the rest of the quote I took from Mr. Burke.
"If," says he, "such writings shall be thought to deserve any other refutation than that of criminal justice."
"If," he says, "such writings are considered to deserve any response other than that of the legal system."
Pardoning the pun, it must be criminal justice indeed that should condemn a work as a substitute for not being able to refute it. The greatest condemnation that could be passed upon it would be a refutation. But in proceeding by the method Mr. Burke alludes to, the condemnation would, in the final event, pass upon the criminality of the process and not upon the work, and in this case, I had rather be the author, than be either the judge or the jury that should condemn it.
Pardoning the pun, it really should be the criminal justice system that condemns a work simply for not being able to refute it. The worst criticism it could receive would be a counterargument. However, if we follow the approach Mr. Burke mentions, the judgment would ultimately reflect the wrongdoing of the process itself rather than the work, and in this situation, I would prefer to be the author instead of being either the judge or the jury that condemns it.
But to come at once to the point. I have differed from some professional gentlemen on the subject of prosecutions, and I since find they are falling into my opinion, which I will here state as fully, but as concisely as I can.
But to get straight to the point. I've disagreed with some professionals about prosecutions, and I've noticed they are starting to see things my way, which I'll explain clearly and concisely here.
I will first put a case with respect to any law, and then compare it with a government, or with what in England is, or has been, called a constitution.
I will first present a case regarding any law, and then compare it with a government, or with what is, or has been, referred to as a constitution in England.
It would be an act of despotism, or what in England is called arbitrary power, to make a law to prohibit investigating the principles, good or bad, on which such a law, or any other is founded.
It would be an act of tyranny, or what is referred to in England as arbitrary power, to create a law that prevents examining the principles, whether good or bad, on which such a law, or any other, is based.
If a law be bad it is one thing to oppose the practice of it, but it is quite a different thing to expose its errors, to reason on its defects, and to show cause why it should be repealed, or why another ought to be substituted in its place. I have always held it an opinion (making it also my practice) that it is better to obey a bad law, making use at the same time of every argument to show its errors and procure its repeal, than forcibly to violate it; because the precedent of breaking a bad law might weaken the force, and lead to a discretionary violation, of those which are good.
If a law is bad, it's one thing to oppose its enforcement, but it's quite another to point out its mistakes, discuss its flaws, and explain why it should be repealed or replaced with a better one. I've always believed (and practiced) that it's better to follow a bad law while using every argument to highlight its faults and push for its repeal than to break it forcefully. This is because setting a precedent for breaking a bad law could weaken respect for good laws and lead to people deciding to ignore those instead.
The case is the same with respect to principles and forms of government, or to what are called constitutions and the parts of which they are, composed.
The situation is the same when it comes to principles and systems of government, or what we refer to as constitutions and the components that make them up.
It is for the good of nations and not for the emolument or aggrandisement of particular individuals, that government ought to be established, and that mankind are at the expense of supporting it. The defects of every government and constitution both as to principle and form, must, on a parity of reasoning, be as open to discussion as the defects of a law, and it is a duty which every man owes to society to point them out. When those defects, and the means of remedying them, are generally seen by a nation, that nation will reform its government or its constitution in the one case, as the government repealed or reformed the law in the other. The operation of government is restricted to the making and the administering of laws; but it is to a nation that the right of forming or reforming, generating or regenerating constitutions and governments belong; and consequently those subjects, as subjects of investigation, are always before a country as a matter of right, and cannot, without invading the general rights of that country, be made subjects for prosecution. On this ground I will meet Mr. Burke whenever he please. It is better that the whole argument should come out than to seek to stifle it. It was himself that opened the controversy, and he ought not to desert it.
It’s for the benefit of nations, not for the profit or power of specific individuals, that government should be established, and that people are responsible for supporting it. The shortcomings of every government and constitution, in both principle and structure, should be just as open to discussion as the flaws of a law, and it’s a duty every person owes to society to highlight these issues. When a nation recognizes these flaws and understands how to fix them, that nation will change its government or constitution just like a government will repeal or amend a law. The role of government is limited to making and enforcing laws; however, the right to create or change constitutions and governments belongs to the nation. Therefore, those topics should always be investigated as a matter of right, and can’t be subject to prosecution without infringing on the general rights of that nation. Based on this, I'm ready to engage with Mr. Burke whenever he wants. It’s better for the whole discussion to take place than to try to suppress it. He was the one who started the debate, so he shouldn’t abandon it.
I do not believe that monarchy and aristocracy will continue seven years longer in any of the enlightened countries in Europe. If better reasons can be shown for them than against them, they will stand; if the contrary, they will not. Mankind are not now to be told they shall not think, or they shall not read; and publications that go no farther than to investigate principles of government, to invite men to reason and to reflect, and to show the errors and excellences of different systems, have a right to appear. If they do not excite attention, they are not worth the trouble of a prosecution; and if they do, the prosecution will amount to nothing, since it cannot amount to a prohibition of reading. This would be a sentence on the public, instead of the author, and would also be the most effectual mode of making or hastening revolution.
I don't think monarchy and aristocracy will last another seven years in any of the enlightened countries in Europe. If there are stronger reasons to support them than against them, they'll survive; if not, they won't. People today aren't going to be told they can't think or read. Publications that simply explore government principles, encourage people to reason and reflect, and highlight the flaws and strengths of different systems have a right to be published. If they don't attract attention, they're not worth prosecuting; and if they do, the legal action won't succeed, since it can’t stop people from reading. That would be a punishment for the public, not the author, and it would also be the most effective way to spark or speed up a revolution.
On all cases that apply universally to a nation, with respect to systems of government, a jury of twelve men is not competent to decide. Where there are no witnesses to be examined, no facts to be proved, and where the whole matter is before the whole public, and the merits or demerits of it resting on their opinion; and where there is nothing to be known in a court, but what every body knows out of it, every twelve men is equally as good a jury as the other, and would most probably reverse each other's verdict; or, from the variety of their opinions, not be able to form one. It is one case, whether a nation approve a work, or a plan; but it is quite another case, whether it will commit to any such jury the power of determining whether that nation have a right to, or shall reform its government or not. I mention those cases that Mr. Burke may see I have not written on Government without reflecting on what is Law, as well as on what are Rights.—The only effectual jury in such cases would be a convention of the whole nation fairly elected; for in all such cases the whole nation is the vicinage. If Mr. Burke will propose such a jury, I will waive all privileges of being the citizen of another country, and, defending its principles, abide the issue, provided he will do the same; for my opinion is, that his work and his principles would be condemned instead of mine.
In all matters that affect a nation universally, regarding systems of government, a jury of twelve men isn't qualified to make a decision. When there are no witnesses to examine, no facts to prove, and when the entire issue is public, relying on public opinion for its merits or flaws, then any group of twelve men would be just as competent as another, and they would likely overturn each other's verdicts; or, due to their differing views, they wouldn't be able to reach a consensus. It's one thing for a nation to support a project or plan, but it's another thing entirely to give such a jury the power to decide whether that nation has the right to reform its government. I mention this so Mr. Burke can see that I have not written about government without considering what law is, as well as what rights are. The only effective jury in these situations would be a convention of the whole nation, fairly elected; because in all such instances, the whole nation is the relevant community. If Mr. Burke will suggest such a jury, I will set aside any privileges of being a citizen of another country and stand by its principles, as long as he does the same; because I believe that his work and principles would end up being condemned instead of mine.
As to the prejudices which men have from education and habit, in favour of any particular form or system of government, those prejudices have yet to stand the test of reason and reflection. In fact, such prejudices are nothing. No man is prejudiced in favour of a thing, knowing it to be wrong. He is attached to it on the belief of its being right; and when he sees it is not so, the prejudice will be gone. We have but a defective idea of what prejudice is. It might be said, that until men think for themselves the whole is prejudice, and not opinion; for that only is opinion which is the result of reason and reflection. I offer this remark, that Mr. Burke may not confide too much in what have been the customary prejudices of the country.
Regarding the biases that people develop from education and habit in support of any specific form or system of government, those biases still must withstand scrutiny based on reason and reflection. In reality, such biases are insignificant. No one supports something knowing it’s wrong. People are drawn to it because they believe it’s right; when they realize it’s not, that bias disappears. We have a limited understanding of what prejudice is. It could be argued that until people think for themselves, everything is prejudice, not opinion; because only what comes from reason and reflection can be considered opinion. I make this comment so that Mr. Burke doesn’t place too much trust in the traditional biases of the country.
I do not believe that the people of England have ever been fairly and candidly dealt by. They have been imposed upon by parties, and by men assuming the character of leaders. It is time that the nation should rise above those trifles. It is time to dismiss that inattention which has so long been the encouraging cause of stretching taxation to excess. It is time to dismiss all those songs and toasts which are calculated to enslave, and operate to suffocate reflection. On all such subjects men have but to think, and they will neither act wrong nor be misled. To say that any people are not fit for freedom, is to make poverty their choice, and to say they had rather be loaded with taxes than not. If such a case could be proved, it would equally prove that those who govern are not fit to govern them, for they are a part of the same national mass.
I don't think the people of England have ever been treated fairly and honestly. They've been taken advantage of by groups and by people pretending to be leaders. It's time for the nation to rise above these trivial matters. It's time to put an end to the lack of attention that has long encouraged excessive taxation. It's time to stop all those songs and toasts that only serve to enslave people and stifle their ability to think. On issues like this, if people just take a moment to think, they won't act wrongly or be misled. To say that a people aren't fit for freedom is to claim that they choose poverty and would rather be burdened with taxes than not. If that could be proven, it would equally prove that those in power aren't fit to govern, as they are part of the same national group.
But admitting governments to be changed all over Europe; it certainly may be done without convulsion or revenge. It is not worth making changes or revolutions, unless it be for some great national benefit: and when this shall appear to a nation, the danger will be, as in America and France, to those who oppose; and with this reflection I close my Preface.
But if we accept that governments can change all over Europe, it can definitely happen without turmoil or vengeance. It's not worth making changes or revolutions unless it benefits the nation greatly. When this becomes clear to a nation, the real danger, as seen in America and France, will be for those who resist it. With this thought, I conclude my Preface.
THOMAS PAINE
THOMAS PAINE
London, Feb. 9, 1792
London, Feb. 9, 1792
RIGHTS OF MAN PART II.
INTRODUCTION.
What Archimedes said of the mechanical powers, may be applied to Reason and Liberty. "Had we," said he, "a place to stand upon, we might raise the world."
What Archimedes said about mechanical powers can be applied to Reason and Liberty. "If we had," he said, "a place to stand, we could lift the world."
The revolution of America presented in politics what was only theory in mechanics. So deeply rooted were all the governments of the old world, and so effectually had the tyranny and the antiquity of habit established itself over the mind, that no beginning could be made in Asia, Africa, or Europe, to reform the political condition of man. Freedom had been hunted round the globe; reason was considered as rebellion; and the slavery of fear had made men afraid to think.
The American Revolution demonstrated in politics what was just a theory in mechanics. The governments of the old world were so deeply entrenched, and the tyranny and old habits were so firmly established in people's minds, that no efforts could be made in Asia, Africa, or Europe to reform the political state of humanity. Freedom had been chased all over the world; reason was seen as rebellion; and the oppression of fear had made people too scared to think.
But such is the irresistible nature of truth, that all it asks,—and all it wants,—is the liberty of appearing. The sun needs no inscription to distinguish him from darkness; and no sooner did the American governments display themselves to the world, than despotism felt a shock and man began to contemplate redress.
But the nature of truth is so powerful that all it asks—and all it wants—is the freedom to be seen. The sun doesn’t need a label to set itself apart from darkness; and as soon as the American governments showed themselves to the world, despotic regimes felt a jolt, and people started thinking about how to make things right.
The independence of America, considered merely as a separation from England, would have been a matter but of little importance, had it not been accompanied by a revolution in the principles and practice of governments. She made a stand, not for herself only, but for the world, and looked beyond the advantages herself could receive. Even the Hessian, though hired to fight against her, may live to bless his defeat; and England, condemning the viciousness of its government, rejoice in its miscarriage.
The independence of America, viewed just as a break from England, would have been a minor issue if it hadn't been linked to a complete transformation in the principles and practices of government. America didn’t just stand up for itself; it stood up for the whole world, considering more than just its own benefits. Even the Hessian soldier, who was paid to fight against her, might end up thankful for his defeat; and England, recognizing the flaws of its own government, might celebrate its failure.
As America was the only spot in the political world where the principle of universal reformation could begin, so also was it the best in the natural world. An assemblage of circumstances conspired, not only to give birth, but to add gigantic maturity to its principles. The scene which that country presents to the eye of a spectator, has something in it which generates and encourages great ideas. Nature appears to him in magnitude. The mighty objects he beholds, act upon his mind by enlarging it, and he partakes of the greatness he contemplates.—Its first settlers were emigrants from different European nations, and of diversified professions of religion, retiring from the governmental persecutions of the old world, and meeting in the new, not as enemies, but as brothers. The wants which necessarily accompany the cultivation of a wilderness produced among them a state of society, which countries long harassed by the quarrels and intrigues of governments, had neglected to cherish. In such a situation man becomes what he ought. He sees his species, not with the inhuman idea of a natural enemy, but as kindred; and the example shows to the artificial world, that man must go back to Nature for information.
As America was the only place in the political world where the idea of universal reform could start, it was also the best in the natural world. A combination of circumstances not only led to its birth but also greatly matured its principles. The landscape that country offers to a spectator has something in it that inspires and nurtures grand ideas. Nature appears immense to him. The huge sights he witnesses expand his mind, and he shares in the greatness he observes. Its first settlers were immigrants from various European nations, representing different religions, fleeing government persecution from the old world, and coming together in the new as not enemies, but as brothers. The needs that come with cultivating a wilderness led to a type of society that many countries, long troubled by political conflicts and intrigues, had failed to nurture. In such a situation, a person becomes what they should be. They view their fellow humans, not as natural enemies, but as family; and this example illustrates to the fabricated world that humans must turn back to Nature for guidance.
From the rapid progress which America makes in every species of improvement, it is rational to conclude that, if the governments of Asia, Africa, and Europe had begun on a principle similar to that of America, or had not been very early corrupted therefrom, those countries must by this time have been in a far superior condition to what they are. Age after age has passed away, for no other purpose than to behold their wretchedness. Could we suppose a spectator who knew nothing of the world, and who was put into it merely to make his observations, he would take a great part of the old world to be new, just struggling with the difficulties and hardships of an infant settlement. He could not suppose that the hordes of miserable poor with which old countries abound could be any other than those who had not yet had time to provide for themselves. Little would he think they were the consequence of what in such countries they call government.
From the quick progress that America makes in every area of improvement, it's reasonable to conclude that if the governments of Asia, Africa, and Europe had started on a similar principle to America's, or hadn't been corrupted from it early on, those regions would likely be in a much better state by now. Ages have passed, serving no other purpose than to witness their misery. If we imagined a spectator who knew nothing about the world and was placed in it just to observe, they would likely think that a large part of the old world was new, just struggling with the challenges and difficulties of a newborn settlement. They wouldn't assume that the many miserable poor in these old countries were anything other than people who simply hadn't had the time to take care of themselves. They would hardly believe that these conditions were a result of what these countries call government.
If, from the more wretched parts of the old world, we look at those which are in an advanced stage of improvement we still find the greedy hand of government thrusting itself into every corner and crevice of industry, and grasping the spoil of the multitude. Invention is continually exercised to furnish new pretences for revenue and taxation. It watches prosperity as its prey, and permits none to escape without a tribute.
If we look at the more miserable parts of the old world compared to those that are improving, we still see the greedy hand of government reaching into every corner of industry, taking from the many. There’s a constant effort to come up with new reasons for collecting taxes and generating revenue. It views prosperity as something to prey upon, and lets no one get away without paying a fee.
As revolutions have begun (and as the probability is always greater against a thing beginning, than of proceeding after it has begun), it is natural to expect that other revolutions will follow. The amazing and still increasing expenses with which old governments are conducted, the numerous wars they engage in or provoke, the embarrassments they throw in the way of universal civilisation and commerce, and the oppression and usurpation acted at home, have wearied out the patience, and exhausted the property of the world. In such a situation, and with such examples already existing, revolutions are to be looked for. They are become subjects of universal conversation, and may be considered as the Order of the day.
As revolutions have started (and since the chances are always higher against something starting than continuing once it has started), it's natural to expect that more revolutions will follow. The incredible and still rising costs with which old governments operate, the countless wars they start or provoke, the obstacles they create for global civilization and trade, and the oppression and usurpation happening at home have drained the patience and resources of the world. In this context, with existing examples, revolutions are to be anticipated. They have become topics of widespread discussion and can be seen as the norm of the day.
If systems of government can be introduced less expensive and more productive of general happiness than those which have existed, all attempts to oppose their progress will in the end be fruitless. Reason, like time, will make its own way, and prejudice will fall in a combat with interest. If universal peace, civilisation, and commerce are ever to be the happy lot of man, it cannot be accomplished but by a revolution in the system of governments. All the monarchical governments are military. War is their trade, plunder and revenue their objects. While such governments continue, peace has not the absolute security of a day. What is the history of all monarchical governments but a disgustful picture of human wretchedness, and the accidental respite of a few years' repose? Wearied with war, and tired with human butchery, they sat down to rest, and called it peace. This certainly is not the condition that heaven intended for man; and if this be monarchy, well might monarchy be reckoned among the sins of the Jews.
If new systems of government can be put in place that are cheaper and bring about more happiness than the old ones, all efforts to resist this change will ultimately fail. Reason, much like time, will push forward, and bias will lose out to self-interest. If we are ever to achieve universal peace, civilization, and trade, it can only happen through a revolution in government systems. All monarchies are military in nature. War is their business, and plunder and profit are their goals. As long as these governments exist, peace won't be guaranteed for even a day. The history of all monarchies is just a grim portrayal of human suffering, interrupted only by the fleeting calm of a few years. Exhausted by war and human slaughter, they took a break and called it peace. This is certainly not the existence that heaven intended for humanity, and if this is what monarchy represents, then it could rightly be seen as one of the sins of the Jews.
The revolutions which formerly took place in the world had nothing in them that interested the bulk of mankind. They extended only to a change of persons and measures, but not of principles, and rose or fell among the common transactions of the moment. What we now behold may not improperly be called a "counter-revolution." Conquest and tyranny, at some earlier period, dispossessed man of his rights, and he is now recovering them. And as the tide of all human affairs has its ebb and flow in directions contrary to each other, so also is it in this. Government founded on a moral theory, on a system of universal peace, on the indefeasible hereditary Rights of Man, is now revolving from west to east by a stronger impulse than the government of the sword revolved from east to west. It interests not particular individuals, but nations in its progress, and promises a new era to the human race.
The revolutions that happened in the past didn’t really matter to most people. They only involved changes in leaders and policies, not in core values, and they occurred alongside everyday events. What we’re witnessing now can rightly be called a "counter-revolution." In earlier times, conquest and oppression took away people’s rights, and now they are fighting to get them back. Just like the ebb and flow of the tides, the course of human affairs moves in opposite directions. A government based on ethical principles, universal peace, and the unassailable rights of all people is now moving from west to east with a stronger force than the rule of oppression moved from east to west. This movement doesn’t just affect individuals; it impacts nations as a whole and signals a new era for humanity.
The danger to which the success of revolutions is most exposed is that of attempting them before the principles on which they proceed, and the advantages to result from them, are sufficiently seen and understood. Almost everything appertaining to the circumstances of a nation, has been absorbed and confounded under the general and mysterious word government. Though it avoids taking to its account the errors it commits, and the mischiefs it occasions, it fails not to arrogate to itself whatever has the appearance of prosperity. It robs industry of its honours, by pedantically making itself the cause of its effects; and purloins from the general character of man, the merits that appertain to him as a social being.
The biggest risk to the success of revolutions is trying to start them before the underlying principles and the benefits they are supposed to bring are clearly understood. Almost everything related to a nation's situation has been wrapped up in the vague and complex term government. While it tends to ignore the mistakes it makes and the harm it causes, it has no problem claiming credit for anything that looks successful. It takes away the recognition from hard work by pompously claiming to be the source of its results, and it steals from the collective character of humanity the qualities that belong to us as social beings.
It may therefore be of use in this day of revolutions to discriminate between those things which are the effect of government, and those which are not. This will best be done by taking a review of society and civilisation, and the consequences resulting therefrom, as things distinct from what are called governments. By beginning with this investigation, we shall be able to assign effects to their proper causes and analyse the mass of common errors.
It might be helpful in this era of change to distinguish between what is influenced by government and what isn’t. The best way to do this is by examining society and civilization, along with the consequences that come from them, as separate from what we refer to as governments. By starting with this analysis, we can accurately link effects to their real causes and break down the widespread misconceptions.
CHAPTER I. OF SOCIETY AND CIVILISATION
Great part of that order which reigns among mankind is not the effect of government. It has its origin in the principles of society and the natural constitution of man. It existed prior to government, and would exist if the formality of government was abolished. The mutual dependence and reciprocal interest which man has upon man, and all the parts of civilised community upon each other, create that great chain of connection which holds it together. The landholder, the farmer, the manufacturer, the merchant, the tradesman, and every occupation, prospers by the aid which each receives from the other, and from the whole. Common interest regulates their concerns, and forms their law; and the laws which common usage ordains, have a greater influence than the laws of government. In fine, society performs for itself almost everything which is ascribed to government.
A large part of the order that exists among people isn't due to government. It comes from the principles of society and the natural make-up of humans. It existed before formal government and would still be around if government were eliminated. The mutual reliance and shared interests that individuals have with one another, and all the parts of a civilized community with each other, create the strong connections that hold everything together. Landowners, farmers, manufacturers, merchants, tradespeople, and every profession benefit from the support they provide to one another and to the community as a whole. Shared interests govern their activities and shape their rules; the laws established by common practice have more impact than government laws. In short, society takes care of almost everything that is attributed to government.
To understand the nature and quantity of government proper for man, it is necessary to attend to his character. As Nature created him for social life, she fitted him for the station she intended. In all cases she made his natural wants greater than his individual powers. No one man is capable, without the aid of society, of supplying his own wants, and those wants, acting upon every individual, impel the whole of them into society, as naturally as gravitation acts to a centre.
To understand the kind and amount of government suitable for humans, we need to consider their character. Nature designed us for social living, preparing us for the roles we are meant to play. In every case, she created our natural needs to be greater than what any one person can fulfill on their own. No individual can meet their own needs without the support of society, and these needs drive all individuals into society just as gravity pulls things toward a center.
But she has gone further. She has not only forced man into society by a diversity of wants which the reciprocal aid of each other can supply, but she has implanted in him a system of social affections, which, though not necessary to his existence, are essential to his happiness. There is no period in life when this love for society ceases to act. It begins and ends with our being.
But she has taken it a step further. She has not only driven man into society through a variety of needs that can be met by helping one another, but she has also instilled in him a system of social emotions that, while not critical for survival, are vital for happiness. There isn’t a time in life when this love for society stops being a factor. It starts and ends with our existence.
If we examine with attention into the composition and constitution of man, the diversity of his wants, and the diversity of talents in different men for reciprocally accommodating the wants of each other, his propensity to society, and consequently to preserve the advantages resulting from it, we shall easily discover, that a great part of what is called government is mere imposition.
If we take a close look at how humans are made up and what they need, as well as the different skills people have to meet each other's needs, along with their natural tendency to form communities and maintain the benefits that come from it, we will quickly see that much of what we refer to as government is just coercion.
Government is no farther necessary than to supply the few cases to which society and civilisation are not conveniently competent; and instances are not wanting to show, that everything which government can usefully add thereto, has been performed by the common consent of society, without government.
Government is only necessary to handle a few situations that society and civilization can't manage on their own. There are plenty of examples showing that everything useful the government can provide has been accomplished by society working together, without the need for government intervention.
For upwards of two years from the commencement of the American War, and to a longer period in several of the American States, there were no established forms of government. The old governments had been abolished, and the country was too much occupied in defence to employ its attention in establishing new governments; yet during this interval order and harmony were preserved as inviolate as in any country in Europe. There is a natural aptness in man, and more so in society, because it embraces a greater variety of abilities and resource, to accommodate itself to whatever situation it is in. The instant formal government is abolished, society begins to act: a general association takes place, and common interest produces common security.
For over two years after the start of the American War, and even longer in some American states, there were no established forms of government. The old governments had been dismantled, and the country was too focused on defense to pay attention to creating new governments; yet during this time, order and harmony were maintained as well as in any country in Europe. There is a natural ability in people, and even more so in societies, since they include a wider range of skills and resources, to adapt to whatever situation they find themselves in. The moment formal government is removed, society begins to take action: a general association forms, and shared interests lead to shared security.
So far is it from being true, as has been pretended, that the abolition of any formal government is the dissolution of society, that it acts by a contrary impulse, and brings the latter the closer together. All that part of its organisation which it had committed to its government, devolves again upon itself, and acts through its medium. When men, as well from natural instinct as from reciprocal benefits, have habituated themselves to social and civilised life, there is always enough of its principles in practice to carry them through any changes they may find necessary or convenient to make in their government. In short, man is so naturally a creature of society that it is almost impossible to put him out of it.
It's not true, as some have claimed, that getting rid of any formal government means society falls apart. In fact, it does the opposite and brings people closer together. All the parts of its organization that were handed over to the government return to the people, who then manage them. When people, driven by natural instinct and mutual benefits, adjust to social and civilized life, there's always enough of those principles in practice to help them through any changes they find necessary or convenient in their governance. In short, humans are so naturally social that it's nearly impossible to remove them from society.
Formal government makes but a small part of civilised life; and when even the best that human wisdom can devise is established, it is a thing more in name and idea than in fact. It is to the great and fundamental principles of society and civilisation—to the common usage universally consented to, and mutually and reciprocally maintained—to the unceasing circulation of interest, which, passing through its million channels, invigorates the whole mass of civilised man—it is to these things, infinitely more than to anything which even the best instituted government can perform, that the safety and prosperity of the individual and of the whole depends.
Formal government is just a small part of civilized life; and even when the best human wisdom creates something, it often exists more in name and concept than in reality. It's the great and essential principles of society and civilization—the common practices that everyone agrees upon and supports—that really matter. It's the ongoing flow of interests, which moves through countless channels and energizes all of civilized society. The safety and prosperity of individuals and the community rely much more on these elements than on anything that even the most effective government can achieve.
The more perfect civilisation is, the less occasion has it for government, because the more does it regulate its own affairs, and govern itself; but so contrary is the practice of old governments to the reason of the case, that the expenses of them increase in the proportion they ought to diminish. It is but few general laws that civilised life requires, and those of such common usefulness, that whether they are enforced by the forms of government or not, the effect will be nearly the same. If we consider what the principles are that first condense men into society, and what are the motives that regulate their mutual intercourse afterwards, we shall find, by the time we arrive at what is called government, that nearly the whole of the business is performed by the natural operation of the parts upon each other.
The more advanced a society is, the less it needs government because it manages its own affairs and self-regulates. However, traditional governments often work in the opposite direction, where their expenses grow instead of decreasing as they should. Civilized life only requires a few general laws, and these are so universally useful that whether they are enforced by a government or not, the outcome will be almost the same. When we think about the principles that initially bring people together in a society and the motivations that guide their interactions, we can see that by the time we talk about government, most of the functions are handled naturally by the interactions among individuals.
Man, with respect to all those matters, is more a creature of consistency than he is aware, or than governments would wish him to believe. All the great laws of society are laws of nature. Those of trade and commerce, whether with respect to the intercourse of individuals or of nations, are laws of mutual and reciprocal interest. They are followed and obeyed, because it is the interest of the parties so to do, and not on account of any formal laws their governments may impose or interpose.
Man, in relation to all these issues, is more consistent than he realizes, or than governments want him to think. The major laws of society are also natural laws. Those concerning trade and commerce, whether involving individuals or nations, are based on mutual and reciprocal interests. People follow and adhere to these laws because it's in their best interest, not because of any formal regulations imposed by their governments.
But how often is the natural propensity to society disturbed or destroyed by the operations of government! When the latter, instead of being ingrafted on the principles of the former, assumes to exist for itself, and acts by partialities of favour and oppression, it becomes the cause of the mischiefs it ought to prevent.
But how often is the natural tendency to be part of society disrupted or destroyed by government actions! When government, instead of being built on the principles of society, acts independently and operates with favoritism and oppression, it becomes the source of the problems it should be fixing.
If we look back to the riots and tumults which at various times have happened in England, we shall find that they did not proceed from the want of a government, but that government was itself the generating cause; instead of consolidating society it divided it; it deprived it of its natural cohesion, and engendered discontents and disorders which otherwise would not have existed. In those associations which men promiscuously form for the purpose of trade, or of any concern in which government is totally out of the question, and in which they act merely on the principles of society, we see how naturally the various parties unite; and this shows, by comparison, that governments, so far from being always the cause or means of order, are often the destruction of it. The riots of 1780 had no other source than the remains of those prejudices which the government itself had encouraged. But with respect to England there are also other causes.
If we look back at the riots and unrest that have happened in England at different times, we’ll see that they didn’t come from a lack of government; rather, government itself was the root cause. Instead of bringing society together, it tore it apart; it stripped away its natural unity and created discontent and chaos that wouldn’t have existed otherwise. In the groups that people form for trade or any activities where government isn’t involved, and where they operate purely on social principles, we can see how easily different parties come together. This comparison shows that governments, instead of always being the source or means of order, often lead to its breakdown. The riots of 1780 stemmed solely from the lingering prejudices that the government itself had promoted. However, regarding England, there are also other factors.
Excess and inequality of taxation, however disguised in the means, never fail to appear in their effects. As a great mass of the community are thrown thereby into poverty and discontent, they are constantly on the brink of commotion; and deprived, as they unfortunately are, of the means of information, are easily heated to outrage. Whatever the apparent cause of any riots may be, the real one is always want of happiness. It shows that something is wrong in the system of government that injures the felicity by which society is to be preserved.
Excessive and unequal taxation, no matter how it's masked, always shows up in its consequences. A large portion of the community is pushed into poverty and discontent, constantly teetering on the edge of unrest. Lacking access to information, they can be easily stirred to anger. Regardless of the surface reasons for any riots, the underlying cause is always a lack of happiness. This highlights a flaw in the government system that harms the well-being essential for maintaining society.
But as a fact is superior to reasoning, the instance of America presents itself to confirm these observations. If there is a country in the world where concord, according to common calculation, would be least expected, it is America. Made up as it is of people from different nations,*16 accustomed to different forms and habits of government, speaking different languages, and more different in their modes of worship, it would appear that the union of such a people was impracticable; but by the simple operation of constructing government on the principles of society and the rights of man, every difficulty retires, and all the parts are brought into cordial unison. There the poor are not oppressed, the rich are not privileged. Industry is not mortified by the splendid extravagance of a court rioting at its expense. Their taxes are few, because their government is just: and as there is nothing to render them wretched, there is nothing to engender riots and tumults.
But just as facts are more important than reasoning, the example of America confirms these observations. If there’s any country in the world where harmony would be least expected, it’s America. Composed as it is of people from different nations,*16 used to various forms and habits of government, speaking different languages, and differing greatly in their religious practices, it might seem impossible for such a diverse population to unite. However, by simply establishing a government based on the principles of society and the rights of individuals, all challenges fade away, and everyone comes together in harmony. There, the poor aren't oppressed, and the rich aren't privileged. Work isn't crushed under the lavish extravagance of a court living off their labor. Their taxes are low because their government is fair; with nothing to make them miserable, there's nothing to spark riots and unrest.
A metaphysical man, like Mr. Burke, would have tortured his invention to discover how such a people could be governed. He would have supposed that some must be managed by fraud, others by force, and all by some contrivance; that genius must be hired to impose upon ignorance, and show and parade to fascinate the vulgar. Lost in the abundance of his researches, he would have resolved and re-resolved, and finally overlooked the plain and easy road that lay directly before him.
A philosophical guy, like Mr. Burke, would have strained his imagination to figure out how to govern such a people. He would have thought that some people had to be controlled through deception, others through intimidation, and all through some clever scheme; that talent needed to be employed to take advantage of ignorance, showcasing and displaying to charm the masses. Overwhelmed by his extensive studies, he would have analyzed and re-analyzed, ultimately missing the straightforward and simple path that lay right in front of him.
One of the great advantages of the American Revolution has been, that it led to a discovery of the principles, and laid open the imposition, of governments. All the revolutions till then had been worked within the atmosphere of a court, and never on the grand floor of a nation. The parties were always of the class of courtiers; and whatever was their rage for reformation, they carefully preserved the fraud of the profession.
One of the major benefits of the American Revolution was that it revealed the underlying principles of government and exposed their impositions. Before this, all revolutions took place in the context of a royal court, not on the larger stage of a nation. The participants were always from the ranks of courtiers, and no matter how strong their desire for change, they always maintained the deception of their role.
In all cases they took care to represent government as a thing made up of mysteries, which only themselves understood; and they hid from the understanding of the nation the only thing that was beneficial to know, namely, That government is nothing more than a national association adding on the principles of society.
In all cases, they made sure to portray the government as something filled with mysteries that only they understood; and they kept from the public the one thing that was truly important to know, which is that the government is simply a national group built on the principles of society.
Having thus endeavoured to show that the social and civilised state of man is capable of performing within itself almost everything necessary to its protection and government, it will be proper, on the other hand, to take a review of the present old governments, and examine whether their principles and practice are correspondent thereto.
Having tried to demonstrate that the social and civilized state of humanity can handle almost everything needed for its protection and governance, it’s important to take a look at the current old governments and see if their principles and practices align with this.
CHAPTER II. OF THE ORIGIN OF THE PRESENT OLD GOVERNMENTS
It is impossible that such governments as have hitherto existed in the world, could have commenced by any other means than a total violation of every principle sacred and moral. The obscurity in which the origin of all the present old governments is buried, implies the iniquity and disgrace with which they began. The origin of the present government of America and France will ever be remembered, because it is honourable to record it; but with respect to the rest, even Flattery has consigned them to the tomb of time, without an inscription.
It’s impossible that the governments that have existed in the world up to now could have started in any way other than by completely breaking every sacred and moral principle. The darkness surrounding the origins of all the current old governments suggests the wrongdoing and shame with which they began. The origin of the current government of America and France will always be remembered because it’s honorable to acknowledge it; however, regarding the others, even Flattery has buried them in the grave of time without a marker.
It could have been no difficult thing in the early and solitary ages of the world, while the chief employment of men was that of attending flocks and herds, for a banditti of ruffians to overrun a country, and lay it under contributions. Their power being thus established, the chief of the band contrived to lose the name of Robber in that of Monarch; and hence the origin of Monarchy and Kings.
It wouldn’t have been too hard in the early, lonely days of the world, when people primarily took care of sheep and cattle, for a group of thugs to invade a country and extort it for money. Once they secured their power, the leader of the gang found a way to change his title from Robber to Monarch; this is how Monarchy and Kings came to be.
The origin of the Government of England, so far as relates to what is called its line of monarchy, being one of the latest, is perhaps the best recorded. The hatred which the Norman invasion and tyranny begat, must have been deeply rooted in the nation, to have outlived the contrivance to obliterate it. Though not a courtier will talk of the curfew-bell, not a village in England has forgotten it.
The origin of the Government of England, especially regarding its monarchy, is one of the most well-documented. The resentment that arose from the Norman invasion and its tyranny must have been deeply ingrained in the nation, surviving efforts to erase it. Even though not a single courtier will mention the curfew bell, every village in England remembers it.
Those bands of robbers having parcelled out the world, and divided it into dominions, began, as is naturally the case, to quarrel with each other. What at first was obtained by violence was considered by others as lawful to be taken, and a second plunderer succeeded the first. They alternately invaded the dominions which each had assigned to himself, and the brutality with which they treated each other explains the original character of monarchy. It was ruffian torturing ruffian. The conqueror considered the conquered, not as his prisoner, but his property. He led him in triumph rattling in chains, and doomed him, at pleasure, to slavery or death. As time obliterated the history of their beginning, their successors assumed new appearances, to cut off the entail of their disgrace, but their principles and objects remained the same. What at first was plunder, assumed the softer name of revenue; and the power originally usurped, they affected to inherit.
Those groups of robbers had divided the world into territories and started to fight among themselves, which is what usually happens. What was initially taken by force was seen by others as fair game to seize, leading to a new thief replacing the first. They took turns invading each other’s claimed lands, and the cruelty they showed one another explains the basic nature of monarchy. It was one thug torturing another. The victor viewed the defeated not as a captive but as a possession. He paraded him around in chains and decided at will whether he would face slavery or death. As time passed and the origins of their rule faded from memory, their descendants adopted new appearances to hide their shame, but their principles and goals remained unchanged. What started as robbery became known as revenue, and the power initially seized was claimed as an inheritance.
From such beginning of governments, what could be expected but a continued system of war and extortion? It has established itself into a trade. The vice is not peculiar to one more than to another, but is the common principle of all. There does not exist within such governments sufficient stamina whereon to engraft reformation; and the shortest and most effectual remedy is to begin anew on the ground of the nation.
From such an inception of governments, what could be expected but a continuous cycle of war and exploitation? It has turned into a trade. This issue isn’t unique to one more than another; it is the common principle of all. There isn’t enough strength within such governments to support reform, and the quickest and most effective solution is to start fresh from the foundation of the nation.
What scenes of horror, what perfection of iniquity, present themselves in contemplating the character and reviewing the history of such governments! If we would delineate human nature with a baseness of heart and hypocrisy of countenance that reflection would shudder at and humanity disown, it is kings, courts and cabinets that must sit for the portrait. Man, naturally as he is, with all his faults about him, is not up to the character.
What horrifying scenes and perfect evil come to mind when we think about the character and history of such governments! If we wanted to depict human nature with a heart full of unworthiness and a face full of deceit that would make us shudder and that humanity would reject, it would be kings, courts, and cabinets that would provide the model. Man, in his true nature, with all his flaws, doesn’t quite match up to this image.
Can we possibly suppose that if governments had originated in a right principle, and had not an interest in pursuing a wrong one, the world could have been in the wretched and quarrelsome condition we have seen it? What inducement has the farmer, while following the plough, to lay aside his peaceful pursuit, and go to war with the farmer of another country? or what inducement has the manufacturer? What is dominion to them, or to any class of men in a nation? Does it add an acre to any man's estate, or raise its value? Are not conquest and defeat each of the same price, and taxes the never-failing consequence?—Though this reasoning may be good to a nation, it is not so to a government. War is the Pharo-table of governments, and nations the dupes of the game.
Can we really believe that if governments had started with the right principles and weren't interested in the wrong ones, the world would be in the miserable and conflict-ridden state we've seen it in? What motivates a farmer, while plowing his field, to abandon his peaceful work and go to war with a farmer from another country? Or what about a manufacturer? What does power mean to them, or to any group of people in a nation? Does it give anyone more land or increase its worth? Aren’t both victory and defeat equally costly, with taxes being the never-ending result? — While this reasoning might hold true for a nation, it doesn’t apply to a government. War is the casino table for governments, and nations are the unsuspecting players in the game.
If there is anything to wonder at in this miserable scene of governments more than might be expected, it is the progress which the peaceful arts of agriculture, manufacture and commerce have made beneath such a long accumulating load of discouragement and oppression. It serves to show that instinct in animals does not act with stronger impulse than the principles of society and civilisation operate in man. Under all discouragements, he pursues his object, and yields to nothing but impossibilities.
If there's anything surprising about this dismal situation of governments, it’s the progress that peaceful activities like farming, manufacturing, and trade have made despite a long history of discouragement and oppression. It demonstrates that animal instincts don’t drive behavior with more force than the principles of society and civilization do in humans. Despite all the setbacks, people keep pursuing their goals and only give up when faced with the impossible.
CHAPTER III. OF THE OLD AND NEW SYSTEMS OF GOVERNMENT
Nothing can appear more contradictory than the principles on which the old governments began, and the condition to which society, civilisation and commerce are capable of carrying mankind. Government, on the old system, is an assumption of power, for the aggrandisement of itself; on the new, a delegation of power for the common benefit of society. The former supports itself by keeping up a system of war; the latter promotes a system of peace, as the true means of enriching a nation. The one encourages national prejudices; the other promotes universal society, as the means of universal commerce. The one measures its prosperity, by the quantity of revenue it extorts; the other proves its excellence, by the small quantity of taxes it requires.
Nothing seems more contradictory than the principles that the old governments started with and the state to which society, civilization, and commerce can elevate humanity. Under the old system, government is a power grab aimed at self-interest; in contrast, the new system delegates power for the common good of society. The former maintains itself by fueling a system of war; the latter fosters a culture of peace as the real way to enrich a nation. One fuels national prejudices; the other encourages a global community as a means of global trade. The former measures its success by how much revenue it extracts; the latter demonstrates its merit by the minimal taxes it needs.
Mr. Burke has talked of old and new whigs. If he can amuse himself with childish names and distinctions, I shall not interrupt his pleasure. It is not to him, but to the Abbe Sieyes, that I address this chapter. I am already engaged to the latter gentleman to discuss the subject of monarchical government; and as it naturally occurs in comparing the old and new systems, I make this the opportunity of presenting to him my observations. I shall occasionally take Mr. Burke in my way.
Mr. Burke has mentioned old and new whigs. If he finds entertainment in silly names and labels, I won't spoil his fun. This chapter is for the Abbe Sieyes, not Mr. Burke. I've already committed to discussing monarchical government with him, and since it comes up when comparing the old and new systems, I'll use this chance to share my thoughts. I might occasionally reference Mr. Burke along the way.
Though it might be proved that the system of government now called the New, is the most ancient in principle of all that have existed, being founded on the original, inherent Rights of Man: yet, as tyranny and the sword have suspended the exercise of those rights for many centuries past, it serves better the purpose of distinction to call it the new, than to claim the right of calling it the old.
Though it may be proven that the government system now referred to as the New is actually the oldest in principle of all that have existed, being based on the original, inherent Rights of Man, the truth is that tyranny and violence have interrupted the exercise of those rights for many centuries. Therefore, it's more effective to call it the new rather than assert the right to label it as the old.
The first general distinction between those two systems, is, that the one now called the old is hereditary, either in whole or in part; and the new is entirely representative. It rejects all hereditary government:
The main difference between these two systems is that the one now referred to as the old is hereditary, either completely or partially, while the new system is fully representative. It completely rejects any form of hereditary government.
First, As being an imposition on mankind.
First, as being a burden on humanity.
Secondly, As inadequate to the purposes for which government is necessary.
Secondly, it's insufficient for the purposes that require government.
With respect to the first of these heads—It cannot be proved by what right hereditary government could begin; neither does there exist within the compass of mortal power a right to establish it. Man has no authority over posterity in matters of personal right; and, therefore, no man, or body of men, had, or can have, a right to set up hereditary government. Were even ourselves to come again into existence, instead of being succeeded by posterity, we have not now the right of taking from ourselves the rights which would then be ours. On what ground, then, do we pretend to take them from others?
Regarding the first point—It can't be proven by what right hereditary government could start; there's also no existing authority within human power to establish it. No one has the power over future generations in terms of personal rights; thus, no individual or group has, or can have, the right to create hereditary government. Even if we were to come back to life, rather than being replaced by future generations, we still wouldn't have the right to take away the rights that would then belong to us. So, on what basis do we claim the right to take them from others?
All hereditary government is in its nature tyranny. An heritable crown, or an heritable throne, or by what other fanciful name such things may be called, have no other significant explanation than that mankind are heritable property. To inherit a government, is to inherit the people, as if they were flocks and herds.
All hereditary governments are essentially tyrannical. An inherited crown, an inherited throne, or whatever other fanciful name these things might have, can only mean that people are treated as property. To inherit a government is to inherit the population, as if they were just livestock.
With respect to the second head, that of being inadequate to the purposes for which government is necessary, we have only to consider what government essentially is, and compare it with the circumstances to which hereditary succession is subject.
With regard to the second point, which is about being unsuitable for the reasons government is needed, we just need to understand what government really is and compare it to the conditions that affect hereditary succession.
Government ought to be a thing always in full maturity. It ought to be so constructed as to be superior to all the accidents to which individual man is subject; and, therefore, hereditary succession, by being subject to them all, is the most irregular and imperfect of all the systems of government.
Government should always operate at full maturity. It should be designed to be better than all the unpredictabilities that individual humans face; thus, hereditary succession, by being vulnerable to all of these, is the most inconsistent and flawed system of government.
We have heard the Rights of Man called a levelling system; but the only system to which the word levelling is truly applicable, is the hereditary monarchical system. It is a system of mental levelling. It indiscriminately admits every species of character to the same authority. Vice and virtue, ignorance and wisdom, in short, every quality good or bad, is put on the same level. Kings succeed each other, not as rationals, but as animals. It signifies not what their mental or moral characters are. Can we then be surprised at the abject state of the human mind in monarchical countries, when the government itself is formed on such an abject levelling system?—It has no fixed character. To-day it is one thing; to-morrow it is something else. It changes with the temper of every succeeding individual, and is subject to all the varieties of each. It is government through the medium of passions and accidents. It appears under all the various characters of childhood, decrepitude, dotage, a thing at nurse, in leading-strings, or in crutches. It reverses the wholesome order of nature. It occasionally puts children over men, and the conceits of nonage over wisdom and experience. In short, we cannot conceive a more ridiculous figure of government, than hereditary succession, in all its cases, presents.
We've heard the Rights of Man referred to as a leveling system, but the term "leveling" truly applies to the hereditary monarchy system. It's a way of flattening mental capacities. It allows all types of character to hold the same authority without discrimination. Vice and virtue, ignorance and wisdom—all qualities, good or bad, are treated equally. Kings follow one another, not as rational beings, but like animals. It doesn't matter what their mental or moral traits are. Can we really be surprised by the miserable state of the human mind in monarchical countries when the government itself is built on such a degrading leveling system?—It lacks a consistent character. Today it’s one thing; tomorrow it’s something entirely different. It shifts with the moods of each new ruler and is influenced by all their quirks. It governs through the lens of emotions and random events. It appears in the various stages of life: childhood, old age, senility, like a child being cared for, in training wheels, or using crutches. It disrupts the natural order. Sometimes it places children above adults, and the opinions of the inexperienced over wisdom and knowledge. In short, we can't imagine a more absurd form of government than hereditary succession in all its various forms.
Could it be made a decree in nature, or an edict registered in heaven, and man could know it, that virtue and wisdom should invariably appertain to hereditary succession, the objection to it would be removed; but when we see that nature acts as if she disowned and sported with the hereditary system; that the mental character of successors, in all countries, is below the average of human understanding; that one is a tyrant, another an idiot, a third insane, and some all three together, it is impossible to attach confidence to it, when reason in man has power to act.
If it could be declared a law of nature or an order recognized in heaven, and people could be sure that virtue and wisdom would always come with hereditary succession, then the objections would be gone. But when we see that nature seems to reject and play with the hereditary system—where the qualities of successors, across all countries, fall short of human intelligence; where one is a tyrant, another is an idiot, a third is insane, and some combine all three—it becomes impossible to trust it, especially when human reason has the ability to take action.
It is not to the Abbe Sieyes that I need apply this reasoning; he has already saved me that trouble by giving his own opinion upon the case. "If it be asked," says he, "what is my opinion with respect to hereditary right, I answer without hesitation, That in good theory, an hereditary transmission of any power of office, can never accord with the laws of a true representation. Hereditaryship is, in this sense, as much an attaint upon principle, as an outrage upon society. But let us," continues he, "refer to the history of all elective monarchies and principalities: is there one in which the elective mode is not worse than the hereditary succession?"
It's not Abbe Sieyes I need to convince; he's already expressed his views on the matter. "If someone asks," he says, "what my opinion is on hereditary rights, I answer without doubt that, in theory, passing down any power through heredity doesn't align with the principles of true representation. In this sense, hereditary succession is as much a violation of principle as it is a harm to society. But let's," he continues, "look at the history of all elective monarchies and principalities: is there even one where the elective system isn't worse than hereditary succession?"
As to debating on which is the worst of the two, it is admitting both to be bad; and herein we are agreed. The preference which the Abbe has given, is a condemnation of the thing that he prefers. Such a mode of reasoning on such a subject is inadmissible, because it finally amounts to an accusation upon Providence, as if she had left to man no other choice with respect to government than between two evils, the best of which he admits to be "an attaint upon principle, and an outrage upon society."
When it comes to deciding which of the two is worse, it basically admits that both are bad, and we agree on that. The choice that the Abbe has made actually condemns what he prefers. This kind of reasoning about this topic is unacceptable because it ultimately blames Providence, as if she had left humanity with no option for governance other than choosing between two evils, the better of which he acknowledges is "a stain on principle and a threat to society."
Passing over, for the present, all the evils and mischiefs which monarchy has occasioned in the world, nothing can more effectually prove its uselessness in a state of civil government, than making it hereditary. Would we make any office hereditary that required wisdom and abilities to fill it? And where wisdom and abilities are not necessary, such an office, whatever it may be, is superfluous or insignificant.
Passing over, for now, all the problems and troubles that monarchy has caused in the world, nothing proves its uselessness in a civil government more than making it hereditary. Would we make any office hereditary if it required wisdom and skills to perform? And where wisdom and skills aren't necessary, such an office, whatever it is, is unnecessary or trivial.
Hereditary succession is a burlesque upon monarchy. It puts it in the most ridiculous light, by presenting it as an office which any child or idiot may fill. It requires some talents to be a common mechanic; but to be a king requires only the animal figure of man—a sort of breathing automaton. This sort of superstition may last a few years more, but it cannot long resist the awakened reason and interest of man.
Hereditary succession is a joke when it comes to monarchy. It makes it seem completely absurd by showing it as a position that any child or fool can take on. Being a basic mechanic requires some skills, but being a king only needs the physical presence of a person—a kind of living robot. This kind of superstition might go on for a few more years, but it won't be able to withstand the growing awareness and interests of people for long.
As to Mr. Burke, he is a stickler for monarchy, not altogether as a pensioner, if he is one, which I believe, but as a political man. He has taken up a contemptible opinion of mankind, who, in their turn, are taking up the same of him. He considers them as a herd of beings that must be governed by fraud, effigy, and show; and an idol would be as good a figure of monarchy with him, as a man. I will, however, do him the justice to say that, with respect to America, he has been very complimentary. He always contended, at least in my hearing, that the people of America were more enlightened than those of England, or of any country in Europe; and that therefore the imposition of show was not necessary in their governments.
As for Mr. Burke, he's a strong advocate for monarchy, not just because he benefits from it as a pensioner, if that’s true, which I believe it is, but also as a political figure. He has developed a pretty low opinion of humanity, and in return, people feel the same way about him. He sees them as a group of individuals who can only be controlled through deception, spectacle, and pretense; to him, an idol would represent monarchy just as well as a person would. However, I have to give him credit for being quite flattering about America. He always maintained, at least when I was around, that the American people were more enlightened than those in England or any other European country, and that’s why they didn’t need the same kind of show in their governments.
Though the comparison between hereditary and elective monarchy, which the Abbe has made, is unnecessary to the case, because the representative system rejects both: yet, were I to make the comparison, I should decide contrary to what he has done.
Though the comparison between hereditary and elective monarchy that the Abbe made is unnecessary to the case, as the representative system dismisses both, if I were to make the comparison, I would choose the opposite of what he has concluded.
The civil wars which have originated from contested hereditary claims, are more numerous, and have been more dreadful, and of longer continuance, than those which have been occasioned by election. All the civil wars in France arose from the hereditary system; they were either produced by hereditary claims, or by the imperfection of the hereditary form, which admits of regencies or monarchy at nurse. With respect to England, its history is full of the same misfortunes. The contests for succession between the houses of York and Lancaster lasted a whole century; and others of a similar nature have renewed themselves since that period. Those of 1715 and 1745 were of the same kind. The succession war for the crown of Spain embroiled almost half Europe. The disturbances of Holland are generated from the hereditaryship of the Stadtholder. A government calling itself free, with an hereditary office, is like a thorn in the flesh, that produces a fermentation which endeavours to discharge it.
The civil wars that have come from disputed hereditary claims are more numerous, more horrific, and last longer than those caused by elections. All the civil wars in France originated from the hereditary system; they either stemmed from hereditary claims or from the flaws in the hereditary system, which allows for regencies or a monarchy in infancy. As for England, its history is filled with similar tragedies. The struggles for succession between the houses of York and Lancaster continued for an entire century, and similar conflicts have arisen since then. The wars of 1715 and 1745 were of the same nature. The succession struggle for the crown of Spain involved almost half of Europe. The unrest in Holland is rooted in the hereditary position of the Stadtholder. A government that calls itself free while maintaining an hereditary office is like a thorn in the flesh, creating an irritation that seeks to expel it.
But I might go further, and place also foreign wars, of whatever kind, to the same cause. It is by adding the evil of hereditary succession to that of monarchy, that a permanent family interest is created, whose constant objects are dominion and revenue. Poland, though an elective monarchy, has had fewer wars than those which are hereditary; and it is the only government that has made a voluntary essay, though but a small one, to reform the condition of the country.
But I might go further and include foreign wars, of any kind, as part of the same issue. By combining the problems of hereditary succession with monarchy, we create a lasting family interest focused on power and profit. Poland, even though it has an elective monarchy, has experienced fewer wars than hereditary monarchies; and it is the only government that has made a voluntary attempt, although a small one, to improve the situation in the country.
Having thus glanced at a few of the defects of the old, or hereditary systems of government, let us compare it with the new, or representative system.
Having briefly looked at some of the flaws in the old hereditary systems of government, let's compare them to the new representative system.
The representative system takes society and civilisation for its basis; nature, reason, and experience, for its guide.
The representative system is based on society and civilization; it uses nature, reason, and experience as its guide.
Experience, in all ages, and in all countries, has demonstrated that it is impossible to control Nature in her distribution of mental powers. She gives them as she pleases. Whatever is the rule by which she, apparently to us, scatters them among mankind, that rule remains a secret to man. It would be as ridiculous to attempt to fix the hereditaryship of human beauty, as of wisdom. Whatever wisdom constituently is, it is like a seedless plant; it may be reared when it appears, but it cannot be voluntarily produced. There is always a sufficiency somewhere in the general mass of society for all purposes; but with respect to the parts of society, it is continually changing its place. It rises in one to-day, in another to-morrow, and has most probably visited in rotation every family of the earth, and again withdrawn.
Experience, throughout history and across all cultures, has shown that it's impossible to control how Nature distributes mental capabilities. She gives them out as she wishes. The way she seems to divide them among people is a mystery to us. It would be just as absurd to try to determine the inheritance of human beauty as it would be for wisdom. Whatever wisdom truly is, it's like a seedless plant; it can be nurtured when it appears, but it can't be produced on demand. There's always enough of it somewhere in society for all needs, but regarding individual parts of society, its presence constantly shifts. It pops up in one person today, in another tomorrow, and has likely touched every family on Earth at some point before moving on.
As this is in the order of nature, the order of government must necessarily follow it, or government will, as we see it does, degenerate into ignorance. The hereditary system, therefore, is as repugnant to human wisdom as to human rights; and is as absurd as it is unjust.
As this aligns with the natural order, the order of government must naturally follow it, or else government will, as we can observe, sink into ignorance. The hereditary system, therefore, is just as against human wisdom as it is against human rights; and it is as ridiculous as it is unfair.
As the republic of letters brings forward the best literary productions, by giving to genius a fair and universal chance; so the representative system of government is calculated to produce the wisest laws, by collecting wisdom from where it can be found. I smile to myself when I contemplate the ridiculous insignificance into which literature and all the sciences would sink, were they made hereditary; and I carry the same idea into governments. An hereditary governor is as inconsistent as an hereditary author. I know not whether Homer or Euclid had sons; but I will venture an opinion that if they had, and had left their works unfinished, those sons could not have completed them.
As the community of writers showcases the best literary works by giving talent a fair and equal opportunity, the representative system of government is designed to create the smartest laws by gathering knowledge from wherever it exists. I can't help but smile when I think about how laughably insignificant literature and all sciences would become if they were passed down through inheritance; I apply the same thought to governments. An inherited leader is just as illogical as an inherited author. I’m not sure if Homer or Euclid had sons, but I’m willing to bet that if they did and left their works unfinished, those sons wouldn't have been able to complete them.
Do we need a stronger evidence of the absurdity of hereditary government than is seen in the descendants of those men, in any line of life, who once were famous? Is there scarcely an instance in which there is not a total reverse of the character? It appears as if the tide of mental faculties flowed as far as it could in certain channels, and then forsook its course, and arose in others. How irrational then is the hereditary system, which establishes channels of power, in company with which wisdom refuses to flow! By continuing this absurdity, man is perpetually in contradiction with himself; he accepts, for a king, or a chief magistrate, or a legislator, a person whom he would not elect for a constable.
Do we need stronger evidence of the ridiculousness of hereditary government than what we see in the descendants of once-famous individuals? Is there hardly an example where their character isn’t a complete turnaround? It seems like the flow of intelligence goes as far as it can in certain paths and then abandons them to rise in others. How irrational is the hereditary system, which creates channels of power while wisdom refuses to follow? By maintaining this nonsense, humanity is constantly at odds with itself; we end up accepting someone as our king, chief magistrate, or legislator whom we wouldn’t choose even as a constable.
It appears to general observation, that revolutions create genius and talents; but those events do no more than bring them forward. There is existing in man, a mass of sense lying in a dormant state, and which, unless something excites it to action, will descend with him, in that condition, to the grave. As it is to the advantage of society that the whole of its faculties should be employed, the construction of government ought to be such as to bring forward, by a quiet and regular operation, all that extent of capacity which never fails to appear in revolutions.
It seems pretty clear that revolutions bring out genius and talent; however, these events simply reveal what was already there. Each person has a wealth of potential lying dormant, and unless something sparks it into action, it will go with them to the grave. Since it's beneficial for society to make use of all its capabilities, the design of government should encourage a smooth and steady process that brings out the full range of abilities that typically emerge during revolutions.
This cannot take place in the insipid state of hereditary government, not only because it prevents, but because it operates to benumb. When the mind of a nation is bowed down by any political superstition in its government, such as hereditary succession is, it loses a considerable portion of its powers on all other subjects and objects. Hereditary succession requires the same obedience to ignorance, as to wisdom; and when once the mind can bring itself to pay this indiscriminate reverence, it descends below the stature of mental manhood. It is fit to be great only in little things. It acts a treachery upon itself, and suffocates the sensations that urge the detection.
This can't happen in the dull environment of hereditary government, not just because it holds back progress, but because it actually numbs the mind. When a nation's mindset is weighed down by any political superstition, like hereditary succession, it loses a significant amount of its abilities on all other issues. Hereditary succession demands the same respect for ignorance as it does for wisdom; and once the mind starts giving this blind reverence, it falls short of true intellectual maturity. It is only capable of greatness in trivial matters. It betrays itself and stifles the feelings that push for understanding.
Though the ancient governments present to us a miserable picture of the condition of man, there is one which above all others exempts itself from the general description. I mean the democracy of the Athenians. We see more to admire, and less to condemn, in that great, extraordinary people, than in anything which history affords.
Though ancient governments show us a bleak view of human conditions, there is one that stands out from the rest. I’m talking about the democracy of the Athenians. We see more to admire and less to criticize in that remarkable, exceptional people than in anything history has to offer.
Mr. Burke is so little acquainted with constituent principles of government, that he confounds democracy and representation together. Representation was a thing unknown in the ancient democracies. In those the mass of the people met and enacted laws (grammatically speaking) in the first person. Simple democracy was no other than the common hall of the ancients. It signifies the form, as well as the public principle of the government. As those democracies increased in population, and the territory extended, the simple democratical form became unwieldy and impracticable; and as the system of representation was not known, the consequence was, they either degenerated convulsively into monarchies, or became absorbed into such as then existed. Had the system of representation been then understood, as it now is, there is no reason to believe that those forms of government, now called monarchical or aristocratical, would ever have taken place. It was the want of some method to consolidate the parts of society, after it became too populous, and too extensive for the simple democratical form, and also the lax and solitary condition of shepherds and herdsmen in other parts of the world, that afforded opportunities to those unnatural modes of government to begin.
Mr. Burke is so unfamiliar with the foundational principles of government that he confuses democracy with representation. Representation was something unknown in the ancient democracies. In those systems, the people gathered and enacted laws directly in the first person. Simple democracy was essentially the gathering place of the ancients. It represents both the structure and the public principle of governance. As these democracies grew in population and territory, the straightforward democratic model became cumbersome and impractical; and since the idea of representation wasn’t known, the result was that they either violently transformed into monarchies or were absorbed into existing ones. If the concept of representation had been understood back then as it is now, there’s no reason to believe that the forms of government we now know as monarchies or aristocracies would have ever emerged. It was the lack of a way to unify society after it became too large and widespread for simple democracy, combined with the isolated and individual conditions of shepherds and herdsmen in other regions, that created opportunities for those unnatural forms of government to arise.
As it is necessary to clear away the rubbish of errors, into which the subject of government has been thrown, I will proceed to remark on some others.
As it's important to get rid of the misconceptions surrounding government, I will go on to comment on a few other points.
It has always been the political craft of courtiers and court-governments, to abuse something which they called republicanism; but what republicanism was, or is, they never attempt to explain. Let us examine a little into this case.
It has always been the political skill of courtiers and court governments to misuse something they referred to as republicanism; however, they never try to clarify what republicanism actually was or is. Let's take a closer look at this situation.
The only forms of government are the democratical, the aristocratical, the monarchical, and what is now called the representative.
The only types of government are democratic, aristocratic, monarchical, and what's now known as representative.
What is called a republic is not any particular form of government. It is wholly characteristical of the purport, matter or object for which government ought to be instituted, and on which it is to be employed, Res-Publica, the public affairs, or the public good; or, literally translated, the public thing. It is a word of a good original, referring to what ought to be the character and business of government; and in this sense it is naturally opposed to the word monarchy, which has a base original signification. It means arbitrary power in an individual person; in the exercise of which, himself, and not the res-publica, is the object.
What we call a republic isn't just a specific type of government. It primarily reflects the purpose, focus, or goal for which government should be established and how it should function—Res-Publica, meaning public affairs or the common good; or, literally translated, the public thing. It's a term with a positive origin that points to what the essence and role of government should be; in this sense, it's naturally contrasted with the term monarchy, which has a negative core meaning. Monarchy refers to the arbitrary power held by one individual, where that person, rather than the res-publica, is the focal point.
Every government that does not act on the principle of a Republic, or in other words, that does not make the res-publica its whole and sole object, is not a good government. Republican government is no other than government established and conducted for the interest of the public, as well individually as collectively. It is not necessarily connected with any particular form, but it most naturally associates with the representative form, as being best calculated to secure the end for which a nation is at the expense of supporting it.
Every government that doesn't operate on the principle of a Republic, or in other words, that doesn't prioritize the public good above all else, is not a good government. A Republican government is simply one that is set up and run for the benefit of the people, both individually and as a group. It isn't bound to a specific structure, but it naturally aligns with the representative form, as this is the best way to achieve the purpose for which a nation invests in its governance.
Various forms of government have affected to style themselves a republic. Poland calls itself a republic, which is an hereditary aristocracy, with what is called an elective monarchy. Holland calls itself a republic, which is chiefly aristocratical, with an hereditary stadtholdership. But the government of America, which is wholly on the system of representation, is the only real Republic, in character and in practice, that now exists. Its government has no other object than the public business of the nation, and therefore it is properly a republic; and the Americans have taken care that This, and no other, shall always be the object of their government, by their rejecting everything hereditary, and establishing governments on the system of representation only. Those who have said that a republic is not a form of government calculated for countries of great extent, mistook, in the first place, the business of a government, for a form of government; for the res-publica equally appertains to every extent of territory and population. And, in the second place, if they meant anything with respect to form, it was the simple democratical form, such as was the mode of government in the ancient democracies, in which there was no representation. The case, therefore, is not, that a republic cannot be extensive, but that it cannot be extensive on the simple democratical form; and the question naturally presents itself, What is the best form of government for conducting the Res-Publica, or the Public Business of a nation, after it becomes too extensive and populous for the simple democratical form? It cannot be monarchy, because monarchy is subject to an objection of the same amount to which the simple democratical form was subject.
Different types of government have claimed to be a republic. Poland refers to itself as a republic, which is actually an hereditary aristocracy with what is known as an elective monarchy. Holland also calls itself a republic, which is primarily aristocratic, with a hereditary stadtholder. However, the government of America, which operates entirely on the system of representation, is the only true Republic, both in its character and in its practice, that currently exists. Its government is solely focused on the public business of the nation, making it a proper republic; and the Americans have ensured that this, and nothing else, will always be the focus of their government by rejecting everything hereditary and establishing governments based only on representation. Those who claim that a republic isn't suitable for large countries misunderstood, first of all, the purpose of a government for the form of government; for the res-publica applies equally to any size of territory and population. Secondly, if they were referring to the form, they meant the simple democratic form, like the one in ancient democracies, where there was no representation. The issue, therefore, isn't that a republic can't be large, but that it can't be large with just the simple democratic form; and the question arises naturally, what is the best form of government for managing the Res-Publica or the public business of a nation once it becomes too large and populated for the simple democratic form? It can't be monarchy, because monarchy has the same drawback as the simple democratic form.
It is possible that an individual may lay down a system of principles, on which government shall be constitutionally established to any extent of territory. This is no more than an operation of the mind, acting by its own powers. But the practice upon those principles, as applying to the various and numerous circumstances of a nation, its agriculture, manufacture, trade, commerce, etc., etc., a knowledge of a different kind, and which can be had only from the various parts of society. It is an assemblage of practical knowledge, which no individual can possess; and therefore the monarchical form is as much limited, in useful practice, from the incompetency of knowledge, as was the democratical form, from the multiplicity of population. The one degenerates, by extension, into confusion; the other, into ignorance and incapacity, of which all the great monarchies are an evidence. The monarchical form, therefore, could not be a substitute for the democratical, because it has equal inconveniences.
An individual can create a system of principles that forms the basis for a government established over any area. This is merely a mental exercise, generated by one's own abilities. However, applying those principles to the diverse and complex situations of a nation—such as agriculture, manufacturing, trade, commerce, and so on—requires a different kind of knowledge that only comes from various sectors of society. It's a collection of practical knowledge that no single person can fully master. As a result, the monarchical system is just as limited in practical utility due to a lack of knowledge as the democratic system is troubled by a large population. The first can lead to confusion through expansion, while the latter tends to foster ignorance and incompetence, which we see evident in the major monarchies. Thus, the monarchical system can't replace the democratic one because it comes with equal drawbacks.
Much less could it when made hereditary. This is the most effectual of all forms to preclude knowledge. Neither could the high democratical mind have voluntarily yielded itself to be governed by children and idiots, and all the motley insignificance of character, which attends such a mere animal system, the disgrace and the reproach of reason and of man.
Much less could it be when it becomes hereditary. This is the most effective way to block knowledge. Nor could a truly democratic mindset willingly submit to being governed by children and fools, along with all the mixed insignificance of character that comes with such a shallow system, the shame and dishonor of reason and humanity.
As to the aristocratical form, it has the same vices and defects with the monarchical, except that the chance of abilities is better from the proportion of numbers, but there is still no security for the right use and application of them.*17
As for the aristocratic system, it shares the same flaws and issues as the monarchical one, except there's a better chance of finding capable individuals due to the larger number of people involved. However, there's still no guarantee that these abilities will be used and applied correctly.*17
Referring them to the original simple democracy, it affords the true data from which government on a large scale can begin. It is incapable of extension, not from its principle, but from the inconvenience of its form; and monarchy and aristocracy, from their incapacity. Retaining, then, democracy as the ground, and rejecting the corrupt systems of monarchy and aristocracy, the representative system naturally presents itself; remedying at once the defects of the simple democracy as to form, and the incapacity of the other two with respect to knowledge.
Referring to the original simple democracy, it provides the accurate information needed to start a large-scale government. It can't expand, not because of its principles, but due to the impracticality of its structure; and both monarchy and aristocracy fail because of their limitations. By keeping democracy as the foundation and eliminating the corrupt systems of monarchy and aristocracy, the representative system naturally emerges; it addresses both the structural flaws of simple democracy and the knowledge shortcomings of the other two.
Simple democracy was society governing itself without the aid of secondary means. By ingrafting representation upon democracy, we arrive at a system of government capable of embracing and confederating all the various interests and every extent of territory and population; and that also with advantages as much superior to hereditary government, as the republic of letters is to hereditary literature.
Simple democracy was society governing itself without the help of secondary means. By adding representation to democracy, we create a government system that can encompass and unite all the different interests and varying areas of land and population; and it also has benefits that are far better than hereditary government, just as the republic of letters is superior to hereditary literature.
It is on this system that the American government is founded. It is representation ingrafted upon democracy. It has fixed the form by a scale parallel in all cases to the extent of the principle. What Athens was in miniature America will be in magnitude. The one was the wonder of the ancient world; the other is becoming the admiration of the present. It is the easiest of all the forms of government to be understood and the most eligible in practice; and excludes at once the ignorance and insecurity of the hereditary mode, and the inconvenience of the simple democracy.
This is the foundation of the American government. It combines representation with democracy. It has established a framework that corresponds to the degree of the principle in every case. What Athens was in miniature, America will be in full scale. One was the marvel of the ancient world; the other is becoming the admiration of today. It’s the simplest form of government to understand and the most effective in practice; it immediately eliminates the ignorance and instability of hereditary rule, as well as the drawbacks of pure democracy.
It is impossible to conceive a system of government capable of acting over such an extent of territory, and such a circle of interests, as is immediately produced by the operation of representation. France, great and populous as it is, is but a spot in the capaciousness of the system. It is preferable to simple democracy even in small territories. Athens, by representation, would have outrivalled her own democracy.
It's hard to imagine a government system that can function effectively across such a vast territory and diverse interests created by representation. France, for all its size and population, is just a small part of this broader system. It’s better than direct democracy, even in smaller areas. If Athens had used representation, it would have surpassed its own form of democracy.
That which is called government, or rather that which we ought to conceive government to be, is no more than some common center in which all the parts of society unite. This cannot be accomplished by any method so conducive to the various interests of the community, as by the representative system. It concentrates the knowledge necessary to the interest of the parts, and of the whole. It places government in a state of constant maturity. It is, as has already been observed, never young, never old. It is subject neither to nonage, nor dotage. It is never in the cradle, nor on crutches. It admits not of a separation between knowledge and power, and is superior, as government always ought to be, to all the accidents of individual man, and is therefore superior to what is called monarchy.
What we call government, or what we should think of government as, is simply a common center where all parts of society come together. This can't be achieved through any method as effective for the different interests of the community as the representative system. It gathers the knowledge necessary for both the individual parts and the whole community. It keeps government in a state of constant growth. As has been pointed out before, it’s never young, never old. It’s not immature, nor is it senile. It’s never in its infancy, nor dependent on others. There’s no separation between knowledge and power, and it is, as government should always be, greater than the random circumstances of individual people, and therefore it’s greater than what is called monarchy.
A nation is not a body, the figure of which is to be represented by the human body; but is like a body contained within a circle, having a common center, in which every radius meets; and that center is formed by representation. To connect representation with what is called monarchy, is eccentric government. Representation is of itself the delegated monarchy of a nation, and cannot debase itself by dividing it with another.
A nation isn’t just a physical entity to be represented by a human body; it’s more like a body enclosed in a circle, with a shared center where all lines converge. This center is shaped by representation. Linking representation to what is termed monarchy creates a strange government model. Representation itself serves as the delegated monarchy of a nation, and it can’t lower its status by sharing it with another.
Mr. Burke has two or three times, in his parliamentary speeches, and in his publications, made use of a jingle of words that convey no ideas. Speaking of government, he says, "It is better to have monarchy for its basis, and republicanism for its corrective, than republicanism for its basis, and monarchy for its corrective."—If he means that it is better to correct folly with wisdom, than wisdom with folly, I will no otherwise contend with him, than that it would be much better to reject the folly entirely.
Mr. Burke has used a catchy phrase a couple of times in his speeches and writings that doesn’t really say much. When talking about government, he says, "It's better to have monarchy as a foundation and republicanism as a check, rather than republicanism as a foundation and monarchy as a check." If he means that it’s better to fix foolishness with wisdom rather than the other way around, I won’t argue with him, except to say it would be far better to eliminate the foolishness altogether.
But what is this thing which Mr. Burke calls monarchy? Will he explain it? All men can understand what representation is; and that it must necessarily include a variety of knowledge and talents. But what security is there for the same qualities on the part of monarchy? or, when the monarchy is a child, where then is the wisdom? What does it know about government? Who then is the monarch, or where is the monarchy? If it is to be performed by regency, it proves to be a farce. A regency is a mock species of republic, and the whole of monarchy deserves no better description. It is a thing as various as imagination can paint. It has none of the stable character that government ought to possess. Every succession is a revolution, and every regency a counter-revolution. The whole of it is a scene of perpetual court cabal and intrigue, of which Mr. Burke is himself an instance. To render monarchy consistent with government, the next in succession should not be born a child, but a man at once, and that man a Solomon. It is ridiculous that nations are to wait and government be interrupted till boys grow to be men.
But what is this thing Mr. Burke calls monarchy? Can he explain it? All people understand what representation is, and that it must necessarily include a mix of knowledge and skills. But what guarantees the same qualities when it comes to monarchy? Or, when the monarch is a child, where is the wisdom? What does it know about governance? Who is the monarch, or where is the monarchy? If it’s going to be managed by a regent, then it becomes a joke. A regency is a fake kind of republic, and monarchy deserves no better description. It’s something as varied as the imagination can envision. It lacks the stable character that government should have. Every succession is a revolution, and every regency is a counter-revolution. The whole thing is a scene of constant court intrigue and scheming, of which Mr. Burke himself is an example. To make monarchy consistent with governance, the next in line shouldn’t be born a child, but should be a man right away, and that man should be a Solomon. It’s ridiculous that nations have to wait and governance gets interrupted until boys grow up to be men.
Whether I have too little sense to see, or too much to be imposed upon; whether I have too much or too little pride, or of anything else, I leave out of the question; but certain it is, that what is called monarchy, always appears to me a silly, contemptible thing. I compare it to something kept behind a curtain, about which there is a great deal of bustle and fuss, and a wonderful air of seeming solemnity; but when, by any accident, the curtain happens to be open—and the company see what it is, they burst into laughter.
Whether I’m too naïve to notice or too wise to accept it; whether I have too much pride or not enough, or any other quality, I won’t get into that; but it’s clear to me that what we call monarchy always seems like a ridiculous, laughable idea. I liken it to something hidden behind a curtain, surrounded by a lot of commotion and a fake sense of seriousness; but when the curtain is accidentally pulled back—and everyone sees what it really is, they explode with laughter.
In the representative system of government, nothing of this can happen. Like the nation itself, it possesses a perpetual stamina, as well of body as of mind, and presents itself on the open theatre of the world in a fair and manly manner. Whatever are its excellences or defects, they are visible to all. It exists not by fraud and mystery; it deals not in cant and sophistry; but inspires a language that, passing from heart to heart, is felt and understood.
In a representative government, none of this can occur. Just like the nation itself, it has a lasting strength, both physically and mentally, and stands boldly on the world stage in a straightforward and honorable way. Its strengths and weaknesses are clear to everyone. It doesn’t rely on deception or secrecy; it doesn’t use empty words or tricky arguments; instead, it communicates in a way that connects with people, resonating and being understood.
We must shut our eyes against reason, we must basely degrade our understanding, not to see the folly of what is called monarchy. Nature is orderly in all her works; but this is a mode of government that counteracts nature. It turns the progress of the human faculties upside down. It subjects age to be governed by children, and wisdom by folly.
We have to ignore reason and lower our understanding to overlook the foolishness of what's called monarchy. Nature is orderly in everything it does, but this type of government goes against that order. It turns the natural growth of human abilities on its head. It puts the old under the control of the young and lets foolishness rule over wisdom.
On the contrary, the representative system is always parallel with the order and immutable laws of nature, and meets the reason of man in every part. For example:
On the other hand, the representative system consistently aligns with the order and unchanging laws of nature, and connects with human reason at every level. For example:
In the American Federal Government, more power is delegated to the President of the United States than to any other individual member of Congress. He cannot, therefore, be elected to this office under the age of thirty-five years. By this time the judgment of man becomes more matured, and he has lived long enough to be acquainted with men and things, and the country with him.—But on the monarchial plan (exclusive of the numerous chances there are against every man born into the world, of drawing a prize in the lottery of human faculties), the next in succession, whatever he may be, is put at the head of a nation, and of a government, at the age of eighteen years. Does this appear like an action of wisdom? Is it consistent with the proper dignity and the manly character of a nation? Where is the propriety of calling such a lad the father of the people?—In all other cases, a person is a minor until the age of twenty-one years. Before this period, he is not trusted with the management of an acre of land, or with the heritable property of a flock of sheep, or an herd of swine; but, wonderful to tell! he may, at the age of eighteen years, be trusted with a nation.
In the American Federal Government, the President of the United States holds more power than any other individual member of Congress. Therefore, he cannot be elected to this position until he is at least thirty-five years old. By that age, a person's judgment tends to be more developed, and they have enough life experience to understand people and issues, along with the country itself. However, in a monarchy (not considering the many chances against anyone born into the world to emerge with the right talents), the next in line to rule, regardless of their qualifications, assumes control of a nation and government at just eighteen years old. Does that seem wise? Is it in line with the dignity and maturity expected of a nation? How can we appropriately refer to such a young person as the father of the people?—In all other cases, an individual is considered a minor until they turn twenty-one. Before that age, they aren't trusted with managing even a small piece of land, or the inheritance of a flock of sheep, or a herd of pigs; yet, surprisingly, they can be entrusted with a nation at just eighteen.
That monarchy is all a bubble, a mere court artifice to procure money, is evident (at least to me) in every character in which it can be viewed. It would be impossible, on the rational system of representative government, to make out a bill of expenses to such an enormous amount as this deception admits. Government is not of itself a very chargeable institution. The whole expense of the federal government of America, founded, as I have already said, on the system of representation, and extending over a country nearly ten times as large as England, is but six hundred thousand dollars, or one hundred and thirty-five thousand pounds sterling.
That monarchy is just a show, a clever trick to make money, which is clear (at least to me) from any angle you look at it. It's impossible, under the rational model of representative government, to justify such a huge expense as this deception implies. Government, by itself, isn’t usually very costly. The entire cost of the federal government of America, which, as I've already mentioned, is based on the system of representation and covers an area nearly ten times the size of England, is only six hundred thousand dollars, or one hundred and thirty-five thousand pounds sterling.
I presume that no man in his sober senses will compare the character of any of the kings of Europe with that of General Washington. Yet, in France, and also in England, the expense of the civil list only, for the support of one man, is eight times greater than the whole expense of the federal government in America. To assign a reason for this, appears almost impossible. The generality of people in America, especially the poor, are more able to pay taxes, than the generality of people either in France or England.
I think it's safe to say that no one in their right mind would compare the character of any of the kings of Europe to General Washington. Yet, in France and England, the cost of the civil list to support one person is eight times greater than the total expense of the federal government in America. It’s almost impossible to explain why this is the case. Most people in America, especially the poor, are more capable of paying taxes than most people in France or England.
But the case is, that the representative system diffuses such a body of knowledge throughout a nation, on the subject of government, as to explode ignorance and preclude imposition. The craft of courts cannot be acted on that ground. There is no place for mystery; nowhere for it to begin. Those who are not in the representation, know as much of the nature of business as those who are. An affectation of mysterious importance would there be scouted. Nations can have no secrets; and the secrets of courts, like those of individuals, are always their defects.
But the reality is that the representative system spreads a wealth of knowledge across a nation about government, which dispels ignorance and prevents manipulation. The tricks of the courts can’t work in that environment. There’s no room for mystery; it can’t even begin. Those who aren’t part of the representation understand just as much about the nature of business as those who are. Any pretentious display of mysterious significance would be rejected. Nations can’t have secrets; and the secrets of courts, just like those of individuals, always reveal their flaws.
In the representative system, the reason for everything must publicly appear. Every man is a proprietor in government, and considers it a necessary part of his business to understand. It concerns his interest, because it affects his property. He examines the cost, and compares it with the advantages; and above all, he does not adopt the slavish custom of following what in other governments are called Leaders.
In a representative system, the reason for everything needs to be made clear to the public. Every person has a stake in the government and sees it as essential to understand how it works. It's in their interest because it impacts their property. They look at the costs and weigh them against the benefits; and most importantly, they don’t blindly follow what other governments refer to as Leaders.
It can only be by blinding the understanding of man, and making him believe that government is some wonderful mysterious thing, that excessive revenues are obtained. Monarchy is well calculated to ensure this end. It is the popery of government; a thing kept up to amuse the ignorant, and quiet them into taxes.
It can only be by clouding people’s understanding and making them think that government is some incredible, mysterious entity that excessive revenues are collected. Monarchy is designed to achieve this goal. It’s like the mystique of governance; something maintained to entertain the uninformed and keep them compliant with taxes.
The government of a free country, properly speaking, is not in the persons, but in the laws. The enacting of those requires no great expense; and when they are administered, the whole of civil government is performed—the rest is all court contrivance.
The government of a free country, in reality, isn't found in the individuals but in the laws. Creating those laws doesn't need much money; and when they are put into action, the entirety of civil government is carried out—the rest is just legal maneuvering.
CHAPTER IV. OF CONSTITUTIONS
That men mean distinct and separate things when they speak of constitutions and of governments, is evident; or why are those terms distinctly and separately used? A constitution is not the act of a government, but of a people constituting a government; and government without a constitution, is power without a right.
That people refer to different and separate concepts when they talk about constitutions and governments is clear; otherwise, why would those terms be used distinctly? A constitution is not created by a government, but by the people forming a government; and a government without a constitution is simply power without legitimacy.
All power exercised over a nation, must have some beginning. It must either be delegated or assumed. There are no other sources. All delegated power is trust, and all assumed power is usurpation. Time does not alter the nature and quality of either.
All power over a nation has to start somewhere. It must either be given or taken. There are no other options. All delegated power is a trust, and all assumed power is an usurpation. Time doesn’t change the nature and quality of either.
In viewing this subject, the case and circumstances of America present themselves as in the beginning of a world; and our enquiry into the origin of government is shortened, by referring to the facts that have arisen in our own day. We have no occasion to roam for information into the obscure field of antiquity, nor hazard ourselves upon conjecture. We are brought at once to the point of seeing government begin, as if we had lived in the beginning of time. The real volume, not of history, but of facts, is directly before us, unmutilated by contrivance, or the errors of tradition.
When looking at this topic, the situation and circumstances in America seem like the beginning of a new world; and our inquiry into the origin of government is simplified by considering the facts that have emerged in our own time. We don’t need to search for information in the obscure past or take risks with speculation. We are immediately able to witness the start of government, as if we had lived at the dawn of time. The actual record, not of history, but of facts, is right in front of us, unaltered by manipulation or the mistakes of tradition.
I will here concisely state the commencement of the American constitutions; by which the difference between constitutions and governments will sufficiently appear.
I will briefly explain the beginning of the American constitutions, which will clearly illustrate the difference between constitutions and governments.
It may not appear improper to remind the reader that the United States of America consist of thirteen separate states, each of which established a government for itself, after the declaration of independence, done the 4th of July, 1776. Each state acted independently of the rest, in forming its governments; but the same general principle pervades the whole. When the several state governments were formed, they proceeded to form the federal government, that acts over the whole in all matters which concern the interest of the whole, or which relate to the intercourse of the several states with each other, or with foreign nations. I will begin with giving an instance from one of the state governments (that of Pennsylvania) and then proceed to the federal government.
It may not seem out of place to remind the reader that the United States of America consists of thirteen individual states, each of which established its own government after the Declaration of Independence on July 4, 1776. Each state acted independently when forming its government; however, the same general principle underlies them all. After the various state governments were created, they came together to form the federal government, which oversees all matters related to the common interests or the interactions between the states and with foreign nations. I will start by giving an example from one of the state governments (specifically Pennsylvania) and then move on to the federal government.
The state of Pennsylvania, though nearly of the same extent of territory as England, was then divided into only twelve counties. Each of those counties had elected a committee at the commencement of the dispute with the English government; and as the city of Philadelphia, which also had its committee, was the most central for intelligence, it became the center of communication to the several country committees. When it became necessary to proceed to the formation of a government, the committee of Philadelphia proposed a conference of all the committees, to be held in that city, and which met the latter end of July, 1776.
The state of Pennsylvania, which was almost the same size as England, was divided into just twelve counties at that time. Each of these counties had elected a committee at the start of the conflict with the English government. Since the city of Philadelphia, which also had its own committee, was the most central for information, it became the hub of communication for the various country committees. When it was time to create a government, the Philadelphia committee suggested a meeting of all the committees to take place in that city, and it happened in late July 1776.
Though these committees had been duly elected by the people, they were not elected expressly for the purpose, nor invested with the authority of forming a constitution; and as they could not, consistently with the American idea of rights, assume such a power, they could only confer upon the matter, and put it into a train of operation. The conferees, therefore, did no more than state the case, and recommend to the several counties to elect six representatives for each county, to meet in convention at Philadelphia, with powers to form a constitution, and propose it for public consideration.
Though these committees had been elected by the people, they weren't specifically chosen for that purpose, nor did they have the authority to create a constitution. Since they couldn't, in line with the American idea of rights, take on such power, they could only discuss the issue and set things in motion. The conferees, therefore, simply outlined the situation and suggested that each county elect six representatives to gather in convention in Philadelphia, with the power to draft a constitution and present it for public consideration.
This convention, of which Benjamin Franklin was president, having met and deliberated, and agreed upon a constitution, they next ordered it to be published, not as a thing established, but for the consideration of the whole people, their approbation or rejection, and then adjourned to a stated time. When the time of adjournment was expired, the convention re-assembled; and as the general opinion of the people in approbation of it was then known, the constitution was signed, sealed, and proclaimed on the authority of the people and the original instrument deposited as a public record. The convention then appointed a day for the general election of the representatives who were to compose the government, and the time it should commence; and having done this they dissolved, and returned to their several homes and occupations.
This convention, led by Benjamin Franklin, met, discussed, and agreed on a constitution. They then decided to publish it, not as something finalized, but for the entire public to consider, approve, or reject. After that, they adjourned to a later date. When that date arrived, the convention reconvened, and since it was clear that the general public supported the constitution, it was signed, sealed, and announced with the authority of the people, with the original document stored as a public record. The convention then set a date for the general election of representatives who would form the government, along with the start time for the elections, and with that, they dissolved and returned to their respective homes and jobs.
In this constitution were laid down, first, a declaration of rights; then followed the form which the government should have, and the powers it should possess—the authority of the courts of judicature, and of juries—the manner in which elections should be conducted, and the proportion of representatives to the number of electors—the time which each succeeding assembly should continue, which was one year—the mode of levying, and of accounting for the expenditure, of public money—of appointing public officers, etc., etc., etc.
In this constitution, there was first a declaration of rights. Then it outlined the structure of the government and the powers it should have—the authority of the courts and juries—the way elections should be held, and the ratio of representatives to voters—the duration of each legislative session, which was one year—the process for collecting and accounting for public funds—and the appointment of public officials, among other things.
No article of this constitution could be altered or infringed at the discretion of the government that was to ensue. It was to that government a law. But as it would have been unwise to preclude the benefit of experience, and in order also to prevent the accumulation of errors, if any should be found, and to preserve an unison of government with the circumstances of the state at all times, the constitution provided that, at the expiration of every seven years, a convention should be elected, for the express purpose of revising the constitution, and making alterations, additions, or abolitions therein, if any such should be found necessary.
No part of this constitution could be changed or violated at the discretion of the future government. It was a law for that government. However, since it would be unwise to ignore the value of experience and to avoid the buildup of errors, if any were found, and to ensure that the government remained in sync with the state's circumstances at all times, the constitution stipulated that every seven years, a convention should be elected specifically to revise the constitution and make any necessary changes, additions, or eliminations.
Here we see a regular process—a government issuing out of a constitution, formed by the people in their original character; and that constitution serving, not only as an authority, but as a law of control to the government. It was the political bible of the state. Scarcely a family was without it. Every member of the government had a copy; and nothing was more common, when any debate arose on the principle of a bill, or on the extent of any species of authority, than for the members to take the printed constitution out of their pocket, and read the chapter with which such matter in debate was connected.
Here we have a standard process—a government emerging from a constitution created by the people in their true form; and that constitution acting not just as a source of authority, but as a controlling law for the government. It was the political guidebook of the state. Almost every family had one. Every government member had a copy, and it was quite common during any debate over a bill's principle or the scope of any type of authority for members to pull out the printed constitution from their pockets and read the relevant chapter related to the topic being discussed.
Having thus given an instance from one of the states, I will show the proceedings by which the federal constitution of the United States arose and was formed.
Having given an example from one of the states, I will now explain the process through which the federal constitution of the United States was created and formed.
Congress, at its two first meetings, in September 1774, and May 1775, was nothing more than a deputation from the legislatures of the several provinces, afterwards states; and had no other authority than what arose from common consent, and the necessity of its acting as a public body. In everything which related to the internal affairs of America, congress went no further than to issue recommendations to the several provincial assemblies, who at discretion adopted them or not. Nothing on the part of congress was compulsive; yet, in this situation, it was more faithfully and affectionately obeyed than was any government in Europe. This instance, like that of the national assembly in France, sufficiently shows, that the strength of government does not consist in any thing itself, but in the attachment of a nation, and the interest which a people feel in supporting it. When this is lost, government is but a child in power; and though, like the old government in France, it may harass individuals for a while, it but facilitates its own fall.
Congress, in its first two meetings in September 1774 and May 1775, was just a group representing the legislatures of the various provinces, which later became states. It had no authority beyond what came from general agreement and the need for it to act as a public entity. In matters related to America’s internal affairs, Congress only issued recommendations to the provincial assemblies, which could choose to adopt them or not. Congress had no power to enforce its decisions; still, in this situation, it was more faithfully and lovingly followed than any government in Europe. This example, similar to the national assembly in France, clearly shows that the strength of government lies not in its structure, but in the people's loyalty and their interest in supporting it. When that attachment fades, government is like a child in power; and although it may pressure individuals for a time, it ultimately hastens its own downfall.
After the declaration of independence, it became consistent with the principle on which representative government is founded, that the authority of congress should be defined and established. Whether that authority should be more or less than congress then discretionarily exercised was not the question. It was merely the rectitude of the measure.
After declaring independence, it became important to define and establish the authority of Congress, in line with the principle of representative government. The question wasn't whether Congress's authority should be more or less than what was previously exercised at their discretion. It was simply about the correctness of the measure.
For this purpose, the act, called the act of confederation (which was a sort of imperfect federal constitution), was proposed, and, after long deliberation, was concluded in the year 1781. It was not the act of congress, because it is repugnant to the principles of representative government that a body should give power to itself. Congress first informed the several states, of the powers which it conceived were necessary to be invested in the union, to enable it to perform the duties and services required from it; and the states severally agreed with each other, and concentrated in congress those powers.
For this purpose, the act known as the act of confederation (which was a kind of incomplete federal constitution) was proposed, and after a long period of discussion, it was finalized in 1781. It wasn't the act of congress, because it's incompatible with the principles of representative government for a body to give power to itself. Congress first informed the individual states about the powers it believed were necessary for the union to carry out the duties and services expected of it; and the states each agreed with one another and granted those powers to congress.
It may not be improper to observe that in both those instances (the one of Pennsylvania, and the other of the United States), there is no such thing as the idea of a compact between the people on one side, and the government on the other. The compact was that of the people with each other, to produce and constitute a government. To suppose that any government can be a party in a compact with the whole people, is to suppose it to have existence before it can have a right to exist. The only instance in which a compact can take place between the people and those who exercise the government, is, that the people shall pay them, while they choose to employ them.
It might not be wrong to point out that in both cases (the one in Pennsylvania and the other in the United States), there's no real idea of a deal between the people on one side and the government on the other. The agreement was among the people to come together and form a government. To think that any government can be part of an agreement with all the people is to believe it exists before it has the right to exist. The only situation where an agreement can happen between the people and those in charge of the government is when the people agree to pay them as long as they choose to keep them on.
Government is not a trade which any man, or any body of men, has a right to set up and exercise for his own emolument, but is altogether a trust, in right of those by whom that trust is delegated, and by whom it is always resumeable. It has of itself no rights; they are altogether duties.
Government isn't a job that any individual or group has the right to establish and run for their own benefit; instead, it's entirely a responsibility held on behalf of those who delegate that authority, and they can revoke it at any time. Government has no inherent rights; it only has obligations.
Having thus given two instances of the original formation of a constitution, I will show the manner in which both have been changed since their first establishment.
Having given two examples of how a constitution was originally formed, I will explain how both have changed since they were first established.
The powers vested in the governments of the several states, by the state constitutions, were found, upon experience, to be too great; and those vested in the federal government, by the act of confederation, too little. The defect was not in the principle, but in the distribution of power.
The powers given to the governments of the various states, by the state constitutions, were found, through experience, to be too extensive; and those given to the federal government, by the act of confederation, were too limited. The issue wasn't with the principle itself, but with how power was distributed.
Numerous publications, in pamphlets and in the newspapers, appeared, on the propriety and necessity of new modelling the federal government. After some time of public discussion, carried on through the channel of the press, and in conversations, the state of Virginia, experiencing some inconvenience with respect to commerce, proposed holding a continental conference; in consequence of which, a deputation from five or six state assemblies met at Annapolis, in Maryland, in 1786. This meeting, not conceiving itself sufficiently authorised to go into the business of a reform, did no more than state their general opinions of the propriety of the measure, and recommend that a convention of all the states should be held the year following.
Numerous publications, in pamphlets and newspapers, were released about the appropriateness and necessity of redesigning the federal government. After a period of public discussion through the press and in conversations, the state of Virginia, facing some issues regarding commerce, suggested holding a continental conference. As a result, a delegation from five or six state assemblies met in Annapolis, Maryland, in 1786. This meeting, feeling it didn't have enough authority to address the need for reform, only shared their general opinions on the importance of the idea and recommended that a convention of all the states take place the following year.
The convention met at Philadelphia in May, 1787, of which General Washington was elected president. He was not at that time connected with any of the state governments, or with congress. He delivered up his commission when the war ended, and since then had lived a private citizen.
The convention gathered in Philadelphia in May 1787, and General Washington was chosen as president. At that time, he was not associated with any state governments or Congress. He gave up his commission when the war ended and had since lived as a private citizen.
The convention went deeply into all the subjects; and having, after a variety of debate and investigation, agreed among themselves upon the several parts of a federal constitution, the next question was, the manner of giving it authority and practice.
The convention thoroughly examined all the topics, and after extensive discussion and research, they reached an agreement on the different aspects of a federal constitution. The next issue was how to establish its authority and implementation.
For this purpose they did not, like a cabal of courtiers, send for a Dutch Stadtholder, or a German Elector; but they referred the whole matter to the sense and interest of the country.
For this purpose, they didn’t, like a group of royal advisors, call for a Dutch Stadtholder or a German Elector; instead, they left the entire issue to the judgment and interests of the country.
They first directed that the proposed constitution should be published. Secondly, that each state should elect a convention, expressly for the purpose of taking it into consideration, and of ratifying or rejecting it; and that as soon as the approbation and ratification of any nine states should be given, that those states shall proceed to the election of their proportion of members to the new federal government; and that the operation of it should then begin, and the former federal government cease.
They first proposed that the new constitution should be published. Secondly, each state was to choose a convention specifically to review it and decide whether to approve or reject it. Once any nine states approved and ratified it, those states would start electing their share of members for the new federal government, allowing it to begin operations while the previous federal government ended.
The several states proceeded accordingly to elect their conventions. Some of those conventions ratified the constitution by very large majorities, and two or three unanimously. In others there were much debate and division of opinion. In the Massachusetts convention, which met at Boston, the majority was not above nineteen or twenty, in about three hundred members; but such is the nature of representative government, that it quietly decides all matters by majority. After the debate in the Massachusetts convention was closed, and the vote taken, the objecting members rose and declared, "That though they had argued and voted against it, because certain parts appeared to them in a different light to what they appeared to other members; yet, as the vote had decided in favour of the constitution as proposed, they should give it the same practical support as if they had for it."
The various states moved forward to elect their conventions. Some of these conventions ratified the constitution with very large majorities, and a couple even did so unanimously. In others, there was a lot of debate and differing opinions. In the Massachusetts convention, which met in Boston, the majority was only about nineteen or twenty out of roughly three hundred members; but that’s the nature of representative government, which settles all matters by majority rule. After the debate in the Massachusetts convention ended and the vote was taken, the members who opposed it stood up and said, "Although we argued and voted against it because certain parts seemed different to us than they did to other members, since the vote has decided in favor of the proposed constitution, we will support it just as if we had voted for it."
As soon as nine states had concurred (and the rest followed in the order their conventions were elected), the old fabric of the federal government was taken down, and the new one erected, of which General Washington is president.—In this place I cannot help remarking, that the character and services of this gentleman are sufficient to put all those men called kings to shame. While they are receiving from the sweat and labours of mankind, a prodigality of pay, to which neither their abilities nor their services can entitle them, he is rendering every service in his power, and refusing every pecuniary reward. He accepted no pay as commander-in-chief; he accepts none as president of the United States.
As soon as nine states agreed (and the others followed in the order their conventions were elected), the old structure of the federal government was dismantled, and the new one was established, with General Washington as president. Here, I can't help but point out that this man's character and contributions are enough to shame all those referred to as kings. While they are taking vast sums from the hard work of people that neither their skills nor their contributions deserve, he is providing every service he can and turning down all monetary rewards. He took no salary as commander-in-chief; he takes none as president of the United States.
After the new federal constitution was established, the state of Pennsylvania, conceiving that some parts of its own constitution required to be altered, elected a convention for that purpose. The proposed alterations were published, and the people concurring therein, they were established.
After the new federal constitution was set up, the state of Pennsylvania, thinking that some parts of its own constitution needed to be changed, elected a convention for that purpose. The proposed changes were published, and with the people's agreement, they were established.
In forming those constitutions, or in altering them, little or no inconvenience took place. The ordinary course of things was not interrupted, and the advantages have been much. It is always the interest of a far greater number of people in a nation to have things right, than to let them remain wrong; and when public matters are open to debate, and the public judgment free, it will not decide wrong, unless it decides too hastily.
In creating or changing those constitutions, there was hardly any disruption. The usual flow of life continued, and the benefits were significant. It's always in the best interest of a much larger number of people in a nation to make things right rather than leave them wrong; and when public issues are up for discussion and public opinion is unrestricted, it typically won't make the wrong choice, unless it acts too quickly.
In the two instances of changing the constitutions, the governments then in being were not actors either way. Government has no right to make itself a party in any debate respecting the principles or modes of forming, or of changing, constitutions. It is not for the benefit of those who exercise the powers of government that constitutions, and the governments issuing from them, are established. In all those matters the right of judging and acting are in those who pay, and not in those who receive.
In the two cases of changing the constitutions, the existing governments were not involved in either situation. The government has no right to participate in any discussions about the principles or methods of creating or changing constitutions. Constitutions, and the governments that come from them, are not meant to benefit those who hold government power. In these matters, the authority to judge and act belongs to those who are paying, not to those who are receiving.
A constitution is the property of a nation, and not of those who exercise the government. All the constitutions of America are declared to be established on the authority of the people. In France, the word nation is used instead of the people; but in both cases, a constitution is a thing antecedent to the government, and always distinct there from.
A constitution belongs to a nation, not to those who run the government. All the constitutions of America are established based on the authority of the people. In France, the term "nation" is used in place of "the people"; however, in both situations, a constitution exists before the government and is always separate from it.
In England it is not difficult to perceive that everything has a constitution, except the nation. Every society and association that is established, first agreed upon a number of original articles, digested into form, which are its constitution. It then appointed its officers, whose powers and authorities are described in that constitution, and the government of that society then commenced. Those officers, by whatever name they are called, have no authority to add to, alter, or abridge the original articles. It is only to the constituting power that this right belongs.
In England, it's clear that everything has a constitution except for the nation itself. Every society and group that is formed first agrees on a set of foundational rules, organized into a formal document, which acts as its constitution. They then appoint their leaders, whose roles and responsibilities are outlined in that constitution, and that's when the governance of that group begins. Those leaders, no matter what title they hold, have no authority to change, modify, or shorten the original rules. Only the governing body has that right.
From the want of understanding the difference between a constitution and a government, Dr. Johnson, and all writers of his description, have always bewildered themselves. They could not but perceive, that there must necessarily be a controlling power existing somewhere, and they placed this power in the discretion of the persons exercising the government, instead of placing it in a constitution formed by the nation. When it is in a constitution, it has the nation for its support, and the natural and the political controlling powers are together. The laws which are enacted by governments, control men only as individuals, but the nation, through its constitution, controls the whole government, and has a natural ability to do so. The final controlling power, therefore, and the original constituting power, are one and the same power.
Due to a lack of understanding about the difference between a constitution and a government, Dr. Johnson and similar writers have consistently confused the two. They recognized that there must be some kind of controlling authority, but they placed that authority in the hands of those in charge of the government, rather than in a constitution created by the nation. When authority is found in a constitution, it has the support of the nation, integrating both natural and political powers. The laws made by governments govern individuals only, while the nation, through its constitution, holds authority over the entire government and has the inherent ability to do so. Thus, the ultimate controlling power and the original constitutive power are essentially the same.
Dr. Johnson could not have advanced such a position in any country where there was a constitution; and he is himself an evidence that no such thing as a constitution exists in England. But it may be put as a question, not improper to be investigated, that if a constitution does not exist, how came the idea of its existence so generally established?
Dr. Johnson couldn't have put forward such a position in any country that had a constitution; and he himself shows that no constitution exists in England. However, it raises a question worth investigating: if a constitution doesn't exist, how did the idea of its existence become so widely accepted?
In order to decide this question, it is necessary to consider a constitution in both its cases:—First, as creating a government and giving it powers. Secondly, as regulating and restraining the powers so given.
To answer this question, we need to look at a constitution in two ways: First, as a framework for creating a government and granting it authority. Second, as a means of overseeing and limiting that authority.
If we begin with William of Normandy, we find that the government of England was originally a tyranny, founded on an invasion and conquest of the country. This being admitted, it will then appear, that the exertion of the nation, at different periods, to abate that tyranny, and render it less intolerable, has been credited for a constitution.
If we start with William of Normandy, we see that the government of England was originally a tyranny, established through an invasion and conquest of the country. Once we accept this, it becomes clear that the efforts of the nation, at various times, to lessen that tyranny and make it more bearable have been recognized as a constitution.
Magna Charta, as it was called (it is now like an almanack of the same date), was no more than compelling the government to renounce a part of its assumptions. It did not create and give powers to government in a manner a constitution does; but was, as far as it went, of the nature of a re-conquest, and not a constitution; for could the nation have totally expelled the usurpation, as France has done its despotism, it would then have had a constitution to form.
The Magna Carta, as it was known (it's now similar to an old almanac), was simply a way to force the government to give up some of its power. It didn't actually create and give authority to the government like a constitution does; instead, it was more of a reclaiming of rights rather than a new constitution. If the nation could have completely removed the usurpation like France got rid of its tyranny, it would have had the opportunity to create a constitution.
The history of the Edwards and the Henries, and up to the commencement of the Stuarts, exhibits as many instances of tyranny as could be acted within the limits to which the nation had restricted it. The Stuarts endeavoured to pass those limits, and their fate is well known. In all those instances we see nothing of a constitution, but only of restrictions on assumed power.
The history of the Edwards and the Henries, leading up to the start of the Stuarts, shows just as many examples of tyranny as could happen within the boundaries set by the nation. The Stuarts tried to go beyond those boundaries, and their outcome is well known. In all these cases, we see no sign of a constitution, only limitations on supposed power.
After this, another William, descended from the same stock, and claiming from the same origin, gained possession; and of the two evils, James and William, the nation preferred what it thought the least; since, from circumstances, it must take one. The act, called the Bill of Rights, comes here into view. What is it, but a bargain, which the parts of the government made with each other to divide powers, profits, and privileges? You shall have so much, and I will have the rest; and with respect to the nation, it said, for your share, You shall have the right of petitioning. This being the case, the bill of rights is more properly a bill of wrongs, and of insult. As to what is called the convention parliament, it was a thing that made itself, and then made the authority by which it acted. A few persons got together, and called themselves by that name. Several of them had never been elected, and none of them for the purpose.
After this, another William, from the same lineage and claiming the same roots, took control; and of the two options, James and William, the nation chose what it thought was the lesser evil, since it had to choose one. This is where the act known as the Bill of Rights comes into play. What is it, if not an agreement between different branches of government to share powers, profits, and privileges? You get this much, and I’ll take the rest; and as for the nation, it said, for your part, You will have the right to petition. Given this, the bill of rights is better described as a bill of wrongs and insults. As for what is referred to as the convention parliament, it was a self-created entity that established the authority it operated under. A few individuals came together and called themselves that. Many of them had never been elected, and none of them for that purpose.
From the time of William a species of government arose, issuing out of this coalition bill of rights; and more so, since the corruption introduced at the Hanover succession by the agency of Walpole; that can be described by no other name than a despotic legislation. Though the parts may embarrass each other, the whole has no bounds; and the only right it acknowledges out of itself, is the right of petitioning. Where then is the constitution either that gives or restrains power?
From the time of William, a type of government emerged from this coalition bill of rights; and even more so, since the corruption introduced with the Hanover succession by Walpole's influence, which can only be called a despotic legislation. Although the individual components may conflict with one another, the overall system has no limits; and the only right it recognizes outside of itself is the right to petition. So where is the constitution that either grants or limits power?
It is not because a part of the government is elective, that makes it less a despotism, if the persons so elected possess afterwards, as a parliament, unlimited powers. Election, in this case, becomes separated from representation, and the candidates are candidates for despotism.
It’s not the fact that some parts of the government are elected that makes it any less of a dictatorship if those elected, like a parliament, have unlimited power afterward. In this situation, elections become disconnected from true representation, and the candidates are simply vying for dictatorship.
I cannot believe that any nation, reasoning on its own rights, would have thought of calling these things a constitution, if the cry of constitution had not been set up by the government. It has got into circulation like the words bore and quoz [quiz], by being chalked up in the speeches of parliament, as those words were on window shutters and doorposts; but whatever the constitution may be in other respects, it has undoubtedly been the most productive machine of taxation that was ever invented. The taxes in France, under the new constitution, are not quite thirteen shillings per head,*18 and the taxes in England, under what is called its present constitution, are forty-eight shillings and sixpence per head—men, women, and children—amounting to nearly seventeen millions sterling, besides the expense of collecting, which is upwards of a million more.
I can't believe that any country, thinking about its own rights, would ever have considered these things a constitution if the government hadn't promoted the idea. It's spread around just like the words bore and quoz [quiz], being mentioned in parliamentary speeches as those words were scribbled on window shutters and doorposts. But no matter what the constitution might mean in other ways, it has definitely been the most effective tax-generating system ever created. The taxes in France, under the new constitution, are just under thirteen shillings per person,*18 while the taxes in England, under what is called its current constitution, are forty-eight shillings and sixpence per person—men, women, and children—totaling nearly seventeen million pounds, not including the cost of collection, which is over a million more.
In a country like England, where the whole of the civil Government is executed by the people of every town and county, by means of parish officers, magistrates, quarterly sessions, juries, and assize; without any trouble to what is called the government or any other expense to the revenue than the salary of the judges, it is astonishing how such a mass of taxes can be employed. Not even the internal defence of the country is paid out of the revenue. On all occasions, whether real or contrived, recourse is continually had to new loans and new taxes. No wonder, then, that a machine of government so advantageous to the advocates of a court, should be so triumphantly extolled! No wonder, that St. James's or St. Stephen's should echo with the continual cry of constitution; no wonder, that the French revolution should be reprobated, and the res-publica treated with reproach! The red book of England, like the red book of France, will explain the reason.*19
In a country like England, where the entire civil government is run by the people from every town and county through parish officers, magistrates, quarterly sessions, juries, and assizes, without burdening what is called the government or adding any expense to the revenue aside from judges' salaries, it's surprising how such a large amount of taxes can be utilized. Even the country's internal defense isn’t funded by the revenue. Whenever there’s a need, whether real or made up, there’s always a push for new loans and new taxes. It’s no surprise that a government system that works well for court supporters is praised so highly! It’s no surprise that places like St. James’s or St. Stephen’s resonate with the constant shout of "constitution"; it’s no surprise that the French Revolution is condemned and the republic is criticized! The red book of England, just like the red book of France, will shed light on the reason.*19
I will now, by way of relaxation, turn a thought or two to Mr. Burke. I ask his pardon for neglecting him so long.
I will now, as a way to unwind, share a thought or two about Mr. Burke. I apologize for ignoring him for so long.
"America," says he (in his speech on the Canada Constitution bill), "never dreamed of such absurd doctrine as the Rights of Man."
"America," he says (in his speech on the Canada Constitution bill), "never imagined such a ridiculous idea as the Rights of Man."
Mr. Burke is such a bold presumer, and advances his assertions and his premises with such a deficiency of judgment, that, without troubling ourselves about principles of philosophy or politics, the mere logical conclusions they produce, are ridiculous. For instance,
Mr. Burke is such a bold thinker, and presents his claims and ideas with such a lack of judgment, that, without getting into the principles of philosophy or politics, the logical conclusions they lead to are laughable. For example,
If governments, as Mr. Burke asserts, are not founded on the Rights of Man, and are founded on any rights at all, they consequently must be founded on the right of something that is not man. What then is that something?
If governments, as Mr. Burke claims, aren't based on the Rights of Man and are based on some rights, then they must be based on the rights of something that isn't man. So what is that something?
Generally speaking, we know of no other creatures that inhabit the earth than man and beast; and in all cases, where only two things offer themselves, and one must be admitted, a negation proved on any one, amounts to an affirmative on the other; and therefore, Mr. Burke, by proving against the Rights of Man, proves in behalf of the beast; and consequently, proves that government is a beast; and as difficult things sometimes explain each other, we now see the origin of keeping wild beasts in the Tower; for they certainly can be of no other use than to show the origin of the government. They are in the place of a constitution. O John Bull, what honours thou hast lost by not being a wild beast. Thou mightest, on Mr. Burke's system, have been in the Tower for life.
Generally speaking, we know of no other creatures on earth besides humans and animals; and in cases where only two options exist, admitting one means denying the other. So, Mr. Burke, by arguing against the Rights of Man, is actually supporting the idea of the beast; and therefore, he implies that government is like a beast. Sometimes, difficult concepts clarify each other, and that's how we understand why wild animals are kept in the Tower; they seem to serve no purpose other than to illustrate the origins of government. They represent a sort of constitution. Oh John Bull, how much you’ve lost by not being a wild animal. According to Mr. Burke’s logic, you could have been in the Tower for life.
If Mr. Burke's arguments have not weight enough to keep one serious, the fault is less mine than his; and as I am willing to make an apology to the reader for the liberty I have taken, I hope Mr. Burke will also make his for giving the cause.
If Mr. Burke's arguments aren't compelling enough to keep someone serious, that's more his fault than mine; and while I'm ready to apologize to the reader for the freedom I've taken, I hope Mr. Burke will also apologize for presenting the cause.
Having thus paid Mr. Burke the compliment of remembering him, I return to the subject.
Having given Mr. Burke the courtesy of remembering him, I’ll get back to the topic.
From the want of a constitution in England to restrain and regulate the wild impulse of power, many of the laws are irrational and tyrannical, and the administration of them vague and problematical.
From the lack of a constitution in England to control and manage the unchecked urge for power, many of the laws are unreasonable and oppressive, and their enforcement is unclear and uncertain.
The attention of the government of England (for I rather choose to call it by this name than the English government) appears, since its political connection with Germany, to have been so completely engrossed and absorbed by foreign affairs, and the means of raising taxes, that it seems to exist for no other purposes. Domestic concerns are neglected; and with respect to regular law, there is scarcely such a thing.
The attention of the government of England (since I prefer to call it by this name rather than the English government) seems, after its political ties with Germany, to have become so completely focused on foreign affairs and tax raising that it appears to exist for no other purposes. Domestic issues are ignored; and when it comes to regular law, there’s hardly anything left.
Almost every case must now be determined by some precedent, be that precedent good or bad, or whether it properly applies or not; and the practice is become so general as to suggest a suspicion, that it proceeds from a deeper policy than at first sight appears.
Almost every case now has to be decided based on some precedent, whether that precedent is good or bad, or whether it actually applies or not; and the practice has become so common that it raises suspicion that it comes from a deeper agenda than it seems at first glance.
Since the revolution of America, and more so since that of France, this preaching up the doctrines of precedents, drawn from times and circumstances antecedent to those events, has been the studied practice of the English government. The generality of those precedents are founded on principles and opinions, the reverse of what they ought; and the greater distance of time they are drawn from, the more they are to be suspected. But by associating those precedents with a superstitious reverence for ancient things, as monks show relics and call them holy, the generality of mankind are deceived into the design. Governments now act as if they were afraid to awaken a single reflection in man. They are softly leading him to the sepulchre of precedents, to deaden his faculties and call attention from the scene of revolutions. They feel that he is arriving at knowledge faster than they wish, and their policy of precedents is the barometer of their fears. This political popery, like the ecclesiastical popery of old, has had its day, and is hastening to its exit. The ragged relic and the antiquated precedent, the monk and the monarch, will moulder together.
Since the American Revolution, and even more since the French Revolution, promoting the doctrines of past precedents, taken from times and situations before those events, has been the deliberate practice of the English government. Most of these precedents are based on principles and opinions that are the opposite of what they should be; the further back in time they’re drawn from, the more suspicious they become. By linking these precedents with a superstitious respect for ancient things, much like monks display relics and call them sacred, the majority of people are misled into accepting the idea. Governments now act as if they’re afraid to provoke any thinking in individuals. They are gently guiding people to the tomb of precedents, numbing their abilities and diverting attention from the reality of revolutions. They sense that people are gaining knowledge faster than they desire, and their reliance on precedents is a reflection of their fears. This political dogma, much like the ecclesiastical dogma of the past, has had its time and is quickly fading away. The tattered relic and the outdated precedent, the monk and the monarch, will decay together.
Government by precedent, without any regard to the principle of the precedent, is one of the vilest systems that can be set up. In numerous instances, the precedent ought to operate as a warning, and not as an example, and requires to be shunned instead of imitated; but instead of this, precedents are taken in the lump, and put at once for constitution and for law.
Government based on precedent, without considering the principles behind it, is one of the worst systems that can exist. In many cases, the precedent should serve as a warning rather than a model and should be avoided instead of followed; however, instead of this, precedents are accepted wholesale and used as if they are both constitutional and legal.
Either the doctrine of precedents is policy to keep a man in a state of ignorance, or it is a practical confession that wisdom degenerates in governments as governments increase in age, and can only hobble along by the stilts and crutches of precedents. How is it that the same persons who would proudly be thought wiser than their predecessors, appear at the same time only as the ghosts of departed wisdom? How strangely is antiquity treated! To some purposes it is spoken of as the times of darkness and ignorance, and to answer others, it is put for the light of the world.
Either the idea of legal precedents is a way to keep someone in the dark, or it's an admission that wisdom fades in governments as they age, relying instead on the supports of past decisions. How can the same people who would like to be seen as wiser than those before them also seem like mere shadows of lost knowledge? How oddly do we view the past! For some reasons, it’s described as a period of darkness and ignorance, while for others, it’s considered the light of civilization.
If the doctrine of precedents is to be followed, the expenses of government need not continue the same. Why pay men extravagantly, who have but little to do? If everything that can happen is already in precedent, legislation is at an end, and precedent, like a dictionary, determines every case. Either, therefore, government has arrived at its dotage, and requires to be renovated, or all the occasions for exercising its wisdom have occurred.
If we’re going to stick to the doctrine of precedents, the costs of government don’t have to stay the same. Why pay people a lot of money when they have very little to do? If everything that could happen is already covered by precedent, then legislation stops being necessary, and precedent, like a dictionary, defines every situation. So either the government has become outdated and needs to be refreshed, or all the chances for using its wisdom have already happened.
We now see all over Europe, and particularly in England, the curious phenomenon of a nation looking one way, and the government the other—the one forward and the other backward. If governments are to go on by precedent, while nations go on by improvement, they must at last come to a final separation; and the sooner, and the more civilly they determine this point, the better.*20
We now see all over Europe, especially in England, the strange situation of a nation moving in one direction while the government moves in the opposite direction—one looking ahead and the other looking back. If governments continue to rely on past practices while nations focus on progress, they will eventually reach a breaking point; and the sooner and more respectfully they address this issue, the better. *20
Having thus spoken of constitutions generally, as things distinct from actual governments, let us proceed to consider the parts of which a constitution is composed.
Having discussed constitutions in general, as separate from actual governments, let's move on to examine the components that make up a constitution.
Opinions differ more on this subject than with respect to the whole. That a nation ought to have a constitution, as a rule for the conduct of its government, is a simple question in which all men, not directly courtiers, will agree. It is only on the component parts that questions and opinions multiply.
Opinions vary more on this topic than they do on the overall issue. Whether a nation should have a constitution as a guideline for running its government is a straightforward question that most people, not just those in power, will agree on. It's only when it comes to the specific elements that disagreements and differing opinions arise.
But this difficulty, like every other, will diminish when put into a train of being rightly understood.
But this difficulty, like every other, will lessen when it’s understood correctly.
The first thing is, that a nation has a right to establish a constitution.
The first thing is that a nation has the right to create a constitution.
Whether it exercises this right in the most judicious manner at first is quite another case. It exercises it agreeably to the judgment it possesses; and by continuing to do so, all errors will at last be exploded.
Whether it uses this right wisely at first is a different matter. It uses it based on the judgment it has; and by continuing to do so, all mistakes will eventually be eliminated.
When this right is established in a nation, there is no fear that it will be employed to its own injury. A nation can have no interest in being wrong.
When this right is recognized in a country, there's no worry that it will be used against its own interests. A country has no reason to be mistaken.
Though all the constitutions of America are on one general principle, yet no two of them are exactly alike in their component parts, or in the distribution of the powers which they give to the actual governments. Some are more, and others less complex.
Though all the constitutions of America share a common principle, no two are exactly the same in their components or in how they distribute powers to the actual governments. Some are more complex, while others are simpler.
In forming a constitution, it is first necessary to consider what are the ends for which government is necessary? Secondly, what are the best means, and the least expensive, for accomplishing those ends?
In creating a constitution, it is essential to first consider the purposes for which government is needed. Secondly, what are the best and most cost-effective ways to achieve those purposes?
Government is nothing more than a national association; and the object of this association is the good of all, as well individually as collectively. Every man wishes to pursue his occupation, and to enjoy the fruits of his labours and the produce of his property in peace and safety, and with the least possible expense. When these things are accomplished, all the objects for which government ought to be established are answered.
Government is simply a national group, and the purpose of this group is to benefit everyone, both as individuals and as a community. Every person wants to work at their job and enjoy the results of their efforts and their property in peace and safety, while spending as little as possible. When these goals are achieved, all the reasons for creating a government are fulfilled.
It has been customary to consider government under three distinct general heads. The legislative, the executive, and the judicial.
It’s common to think of government in three main categories: the legislative, the executive, and the judicial.
But if we permit our judgment to act unincumbered by the habit of multiplied terms, we can perceive no more than two divisions of power, of which civil government is composed, namely, that of legislating or enacting laws, and that of executing or administering them. Everything, therefore, appertaining to civil government, classes itself under one or other of these two divisions.
But if we allow our judgment to function without being weighed down by the habit of complicated terminology, we can see that there are only two divisions of power that make up civil government: one is making or enacting laws, and the other is executing or administering them. Everything related to civil government falls into one of these two categories.
So far as regards the execution of the laws, that which is called the judicial power, is strictly and properly the executive power of every country. It is that power to which every individual has appeal, and which causes the laws to be executed; neither have we any other clear idea with respect to the official execution of the laws. In England, and also in America and France, this power begins with the magistrate, and proceeds up through all the courts of judicature.
As far as the enforcement of laws goes, what we refer to as the judicial power is essentially the executive power in every country. This is the authority to which every person can turn for justice, and it ensures that laws are upheld; we don't have any other clear understanding of how laws are enforced by officials. In England, as well as in America and France, this power starts with the magistrate and extends through all levels of the court system.
I leave to courtiers to explain what is meant by calling monarchy the executive power. It is merely a name in which acts of government are done; and any other, or none at all, would answer the same purpose. Laws have neither more nor less authority on this account. It must be from the justness of their principles, and the interest which a nation feels therein, that they derive support; if they require any other than this, it is a sign that something in the system of government is imperfect. Laws difficult to be executed cannot be generally good.
I’ll leave it to the courtiers to explain what’s meant by calling monarchy the executive power. It’s just a label under which government actions take place; any other title, or no title at all, would serve the same function. Laws don’t have any more or less authority because of this. Their strength comes from the fairness of their principles and the interest a nation has in them; if they need anything beyond that, it indicates that there’s something flawed in the government system. Laws that are hard to enforce can’t be generally good.
With respect to the organization of the legislative power, different modes have been adopted in different countries. In America it is generally composed of two houses. In France it consists but of one, but in both countries, it is wholly by representation.
With regard to how legislative power is organized, different approaches have been taken in different countries. In America, it usually has two houses. In France, there is only one, but in both countries, it relies entirely on representation.
The case is, that mankind (from the long tyranny of assumed power) have had so few opportunities of making the necessary trials on modes and principles of government, in order to discover the best, that government is but now beginning to be known, and experience is yet wanting to determine many particulars.
The truth is, that humanity (after a long history of assumed power) has had very few chances to test different ways and principles of government to find the best one, so we are only just starting to understand government, and we still lack experience to figure out many details.
The objections against two houses are, first, that there is an inconsistency in any part of a whole legislature, coming to a final determination by vote on any matter, whilst that matter, with respect to that whole, is yet only in a train of deliberation, and consequently open to new illustrations.
The objections to having two houses are, first, that it’s inconsistent for a part of the whole legislature to make a final decision by vote on an issue while that issue is still under discussion and open to new insights.
Secondly, That by taking the vote on each, as a separate body, it always admits of the possibility, and is often the case in practice, that the minority governs the majority, and that, in some instances, to a degree of great inconsistency.
Secondly, by voting on each one separately, it always allows for the possibility, and often happens in practice, that the minority controls the majority, sometimes in a way that's quite inconsistent.
Thirdly, That two houses arbitrarily checking or controlling each other is inconsistent; because it cannot be proved on the principles of just representation, that either should be wiser or better than the other. They may check in the wrong as well as in the right therefore to give the power where we cannot give the wisdom to use it, nor be assured of its being rightly used, renders the hazard at least equal to the precaution.*21
Thirdly, having two houses randomly overseeing or controlling each other doesn't make sense; it's impossible to prove, based on the principles of fair representation, that either one is wiser or better than the other. They can make mistakes as easily as they can make good decisions, so giving the power to one without ensuring it has the wisdom to use it, and without being sure it will be used correctly, makes the risk at least equal to the precaution.*21
The objection against a single house is, that it is always in a condition of committing itself too soon.—But it should at the same time be remembered, that when there is a constitution which defines the power, and establishes the principles within which a legislature shall act, there is already a more effectual check provided, and more powerfully operating, than any other check can be. For example,
The criticism of having a single house is that it often commits to decisions too quickly. However, it's important to keep in mind that when there's a constitution that outlines the powers and sets the principles guiding a legislature’s actions, there’s already a more effective check in place, one that operates more strongly than any other kind of check could. For example,
Were a Bill to be brought into any of the American legislatures similar to that which was passed into an act by the English parliament, at the commencement of George the First, to extend the duration of the assemblies to a longer period than they now sit, the check is in the constitution, which in effect says, Thus far shalt thou go and no further.
Were a bill to be introduced in any of the American legislatures similar to the one passed by the English Parliament at the beginning of George the First's reign, to extend the duration of the assemblies to a longer period than they currently meet, the limitation is in the constitution, which effectively states, You may go this far and no further.
But in order to remove the objection against a single house (that of acting with too quick an impulse), and at the same time to avoid the inconsistencies, in some cases absurdities, arising from two houses, the following method has been proposed as an improvement upon both.
But to address the concern about having a single house (acting too impulsively) and to steer clear of the inconsistencies, and in some cases absurdities, that come from having two houses, the following method has been suggested as a better approach to both.
First, To have but one representation.
First, to have just one representation.
Secondly, To divide that representation, by lot, into two or three parts.
Secondly, to split that representation randomly into two or three parts.
Thirdly, That every proposed bill shall be first debated in those parts by succession, that they may become the hearers of each other, but without taking any vote. After which the whole representation to assemble for a general debate and determination by vote.
Thirdly, every proposed bill must first be discussed in those areas one after another, so they can listen to each other, but without taking any vote. After that, the entire representation will come together for a general debate and vote on the matter.
To this proposed improvement has been added another, for the purpose of keeping the representation in the state of constant renovation; which is, that one-third of the representation of each county, shall go out at the expiration of one year, and the number be replaced by new elections. Another third at the expiration of the second year replaced in like manner, and every third year to be a general election.*22
To this suggested improvement, another has been added to ensure the representation is constantly renewed. Specifically, one-third of the representatives from each county will be replaced every year through new elections. Another third will be replaced in the second year, and from then on, every third year will hold a general election.*22
But in whatever manner the separate parts of a constitution may be arranged, there is one general principle that distinguishes freedom from slavery, which is, that all hereditary government over a people is to them a species of slavery, and representative government is freedom.
But no matter how the different parts of a constitution are organized, there is one key principle that sets freedom apart from slavery: any form of hereditary government over a people is a form of slavery, while representative government is freedom.
Considering government in the only light in which it should be considered, that of a National Association, it ought to be so constructed as not to be disordered by any accident happening among the parts; and, therefore, no extraordinary power, capable of producing such an effect, should be lodged in the hands of any individual. The death, sickness, absence or defection, of any one individual in a government, ought to be a matter of no more consequence, with respect to the nation, than if the same circumstance had taken place in a member of the English Parliament, or the French National Assembly.
Considering government only in the way it should be considered, as a National Association, it should be designed in such a way that it's not thrown into chaos by any issues arising within its parts; therefore, no extraordinary power that could cause such disruption should be entrusted to any single person. The death, illness, absence, or failure of any individual within a government should matter no more to the nation than if the same situation happened to a member of the English Parliament or the French National Assembly.
Scarcely anything presents a more degrading character of national greatness, than its being thrown into confusion, by anything happening to or acted by any individual; and the ridiculousness of the scene is often increased by the natural insignificance of the person by whom it is occasioned. Were a government so constructed, that it could not go on unless a goose or a gander were present in the senate, the difficulties would be just as great and as real, on the flight or sickness of the goose, or the gander, as if it were called a King. We laugh at individuals for the silly difficulties they make to themselves, without perceiving that the greatest of all ridiculous things are acted in governments.*23
Hardly anything shows a more embarrassing aspect of national greatness than when it's thrown into chaos by something an individual does or experiences. The absurdity of the situation is often heightened by the triviality of the person who causes it. If a government were set up in such a way that it couldn’t function without a goose or a gander being present in the senate, the challenges would be just as significant and real during the absence or illness of the goose or gander as if it were called a King. We laugh at people for the silly problems they create for themselves, not realizing that the most ridiculous events are often played out in governments.*23
All the constitutions of America are on a plan that excludes the childish embarrassments which occur in monarchical countries. No suspension of government can there take place for a moment, from any circumstances whatever. The system of representation provides for everything, and is the only system in which nations and governments can always appear in their proper character.
All the constitutions of America are designed to avoid the childish embarrassments that happen in monarchies. There can never be a moment when the government is suspended for any reason. The system of representation covers everything and is the only system where nations and governments can always show their true character.
As extraordinary power ought not to be lodged in the hands of any individual, so ought there to be no appropriations of public money to any person, beyond what his services in a state may be worth. It signifies not whether a man be called a president, a king, an emperor, a senator, or by any other name which propriety or folly may devise or arrogance assume; it is only a certain service he can perform in the state; and the service of any such individual in the routine of office, whether such office be called monarchical, presidential, senatorial, or by any other name or title, can never exceed the value of ten thousand pounds a year. All the great services that are done in the world are performed by volunteer characters, who accept nothing for them; but the routine of office is always regulated to such a general standard of abilities as to be within the compass of numbers in every country to perform, and therefore cannot merit very extraordinary recompense. Government, says Swift, is a Plain thing, and fitted to the capacity of many heads.
Extraordinary power shouldn't be in the hands of any one person, just as public money shouldn't be given to anyone beyond what their contributions to society are worth. It doesn't matter whether someone is called a president, king, emperor, senator, or any other title that might be devised or claimed out of arrogance; what matters is the specific service they can provide to the state. The work done by anyone in an official position—whether it’s labeled monarchical, presidential, senatorial, or anything else—should never exceed the value of ten thousand pounds a year. Most significant contributions in the world come from volunteers who seek no compensation; but the regular duties of official positions are set to a general standard of abilities that many people in every country can meet, so they shouldn't receive excessive pay. As Swift said, government is a straightforward matter that can be managed by many.
It is inhuman to talk of a million sterling a year, paid out of the public taxes of any country, for the support of any individual, whilst thousands who are forced to contribute thereto, are pining with want, and struggling with misery. Government does not consist in a contrast between prisons and palaces, between poverty and pomp; it is not instituted to rob the needy of his mite, and increase the wretchedness of the wretched.—But on this part of the subject I shall speak hereafter, and confine myself at present to political observations.
It’s inhumane to mention a million pounds a year, funded by the public taxes of any country, to support any individual, while thousands who are forced to contribute are suffering in poverty and dealing with hardship. Government shouldn't be about the stark divide between prisons and mansions, between poverty and extravagance; it’s not meant to take what little the needy have and worsen the plight of the unfortunate. — But I’ll address that aspect later and for now, I'll stick to political remarks.
When extraordinary power and extraordinary pay are allotted to any individual in a government, he becomes the center, round which every kind of corruption generates and forms. Give to any man a million a year, and add thereto the power of creating and disposing of places, at the expense of a country, and the liberties of that country are no longer secure. What is called the splendour of a throne is no other than the corruption of the state. It is made up of a band of parasites, living in luxurious indolence, out of the public taxes.
When someone in government is given incredible power and a massive paycheck, they become the focal point where all sorts of corruption starts and grows. Give any person a million dollars a year, along with the authority to create and assign jobs at the nation's expense, and the freedoms of that nation are no longer safe. What’s often referred to as the glory of a throne is really just the corruption of the state. It consists of a group of freeloaders, living in luxury and laziness off the public’s taxes.
When once such a vicious system is established it becomes the guard and protection of all inferior abuses. The man who is in the receipt of a million a year is the last person to promote a spirit of reform, lest, in the event, it should reach to himself. It is always his interest to defend inferior abuses, as so many outworks to protect the citadel; and on this species of political fortification, all the parts have such a common dependence that it is never to be expected they will attack each other.*24
Once a corrupt system is set up, it quickly becomes a shield for all the smaller abuses. The person making a million a year is the last one to support any kind of reform, for fear it might eventually affect him. It's always in his interest to defend these smaller abuses, as they serve as defenses for the main stronghold; and in this kind of political structure, all parts are so interconnected that they won't likely turn against one another.*24
Monarchy would not have continued so many ages in the world, had it not been for the abuses it protects. It is the master-fraud, which shelters all others. By admitting a participation of the spoil, it makes itself friends; and when it ceases to do this it will cease to be the idol of courtiers.
Monarchy wouldn't have lasted so long in the world if it didn't protect the abuses it creates. It's the ultimate deception that hides all other deceptions. By allowing a share of the loot, it gains allies; and when it stops doing this, it will stop being the favorite of courtiers.
As the principle on which constitutions are now formed rejects all hereditary pretensions to government, it also rejects all that catalogue of assumptions known by the name of prerogatives.
As the principle that forms today’s constitutions rejects any claims to government based on inheritance, it also dismisses the entire list of assumptions referred to as prerogatives.
If there is any government where prerogatives might with apparent safety be entrusted to any individual, it is in the federal government of America. The president of the United States of America is elected only for four years. He is not only responsible in the general sense of the word, but a particular mode is laid down in the constitution for trying him. He cannot be elected under thirty-five years of age; and he must be a native of the country.
If there’s any government where powers can safely be given to an individual, it’s the federal government of the United States. The president is elected for just four years. Not only is he responsible in a broad sense, but there’s a specific process outlined in the constitution for holding him accountable. He must be at least thirty-five years old and a natural-born citizen.
In a comparison of these cases with the Government of England, the difference when applied to the latter amounts to an absurdity. In England the person who exercises prerogative is often a foreigner; always half a foreigner, and always married to a foreigner. He is never in full natural or political connection with the country, is not responsible for anything, and becomes of age at eighteen years; yet such a person is permitted to form foreign alliances, without even the knowledge of the nation, and to make war and peace without its consent.
In comparing these cases to the Government of England, the difference for the latter is outright absurd. In England, the person wielding prerogative is often a foreigner; always partially foreign, and usually married to someone from abroad. They never have a complete natural or political connection to the country, aren’t held accountable for anything, and come of age at eighteen. Yet, this individual is allowed to establish foreign alliances without the nation’s awareness and to declare war or make peace without its approval.
But this is not all. Though such a person cannot dispose of the government in the manner of a testator, he dictates the marriage connections, which, in effect, accomplish a great part of the same end. He cannot directly bequeath half the government to Prussia, but he can form a marriage partnership that will produce almost the same thing. Under such circumstances, it is happy for England that she is not situated on the Continent, or she might, like Holland, fall under the dictatorship of Prussia. Holland, by marriage, is as effectually governed by Prussia, as if the old tyranny of bequeathing the government had been the means.
But that's not all. Even though a person can't pass on the government like a will, they can influence marriage ties that achieve a similar outcome. They might not be able to directly hand over half the government to Prussia, but they can arrange a marriage alliance that will lead to nearly the same result. Given these circumstances, it's lucky for England that it's not located on the Continent, or it could end up like Holland, under Prussia's control. Holland is effectively governed by Prussia through marriage, just as if the old way of handing down power were still in play.
The presidency in America (or, as it is sometimes called, the executive) is the only office from which a foreigner is excluded, and in England it is the only one to which he is admitted. A foreigner cannot be a member of Parliament, but he may be what is called a king. If there is any reason for excluding foreigners, it ought to be from those offices where mischief can most be acted, and where, by uniting every bias of interest and attachment, the trust is best secured. But as nations proceed in the great business of forming constitutions, they will examine with more precision into the nature and business of that department which is called the executive. What the legislative and judicial departments are every one can see; but with respect to what, in Europe, is called the executive, as distinct from those two, it is either a political superfluity or a chaos of unknown things.
The presidency in America (or, as it’s sometimes referred to, the executive) is the only office from which foreigners are excluded, and in England, it’s the only one they can hold. A foreigner can’t be a member of Parliament, but they can be a king. If there’s any reason to keep foreigners out, it should be from positions where they could cause the most harm, and where combining all interests and attachments best secures the trust. However, as countries work on creating constitutions, they’ll look more closely at what the executive branch really entails. Everyone understands what the legislative and judicial branches are, but the executive branch in Europe, separate from the other two, is often seen as either unnecessary or a confusing mix of unknown elements.
Some kind of official department, to which reports shall be made from the different parts of a nation, or from abroad, to be laid before the national representatives, is all that is necessary; but there is no consistency in calling this the executive; neither can it be considered in any other light than as inferior to the legislative. The sovereign authority in any country is the power of making laws, and everything else is an official department.
Some kind of official department, where reports can be submitted from different parts of the country or from overseas to present to the national representatives, is all that's needed; however, it doesn't really make sense to call this the executive. It also can't be seen as anything other than subordinate to the legislative. The ultimate authority in any country lies with the power to make laws, while everything else functions as an official department.
Next to the arrangement of the principles and the organization of the several parts of a constitution, is the provision to be made for the support of the persons to whom the nation shall confide the administration of the constitutional powers.
Next to how the principles are laid out and how the various parts of a constitution are organized, there is the need to ensure support for the individuals to whom the nation will entrust the administration of constitutional powers.
A nation can have no right to the time and services of any person at his own expense, whom it may choose to employ or entrust in any department whatever; neither can any reason be given for making provision for the support of any one part of a government and not for the other.
A nation has no right to expect the time and services of anyone at their own expense when it chooses to employ or assign them in any role; nor can there be any justification for supporting one part of the government while neglecting another.
But admitting that the honour of being entrusted with any part of a government is to be considered a sufficient reward, it ought to be so to every person alike. If the members of the legislature of any country are to serve at their own expense that which is called the executive, whether monarchical or by any other name, ought to serve in like manner. It is inconsistent to pay the one, and accept the service of the other gratis.
But if we agree that being given a role in government is considered a worthwhile reward, it should apply to everyone equally. If the legislature members of any country serve at their own expense, then the executive branch, whether it’s a monarchy or something else, should do the same. It's unfair to pay one group while expecting the other to serve for free.
In America, every department in the government is decently provided for; but no one is extravagantly paid. Every member of Congress, and of the Assemblies, is allowed a sufficiency for his expenses. Whereas in England, a most prodigal provision is made for the support of one part of the Government, and none for the other, the consequence of which is that the one is furnished with the means of corruption and the other is put into the condition of being corrupted. Less than a fourth part of such expense, applied as it is in America, would remedy a great part of the corruption.
In America, every government department is reasonably funded; however, no one receives an extravagant salary. Every member of Congress and the Assemblies is given enough to cover their expenses. In contrast, England allocates a lavish amount for one part of the government while neglecting the other, resulting in one being equipped for corruption while the other can easily fall victim to it. Even less than a quarter of that spending, if used in the same way as in America, could significantly reduce the corruption.
Another reform in the American constitution is the exploding all oaths of personality. The oath of allegiance in America is to the nation only. The putting any individual as a figure for a nation is improper. The happiness of a nation is the superior object, and therefore the intention of an oath of allegiance ought not to be obscured by being figuratively taken, to, or in the name of, any person. The oath, called the civic oath, in France, viz., "the nation, the law, and the king," is improper. If taken at all, it ought to be as in America, to the nation only. The law may or may not be good; but, in this place, it can have no other meaning, than as being conducive to the happiness of a nation, and therefore is included in it. The remainder of the oath is improper, on the ground, that all personal oaths ought to be abolished. They are the remains of tyranny on one part and slavery on the other; and the name of the Creator ought not to be introduced to witness the degradation of his creation; or if taken, as is already mentioned, as figurative of the nation, it is in this place redundant. But whatever apology may be made for oaths at the first establishment of a government, they ought not to be permitted afterwards. If a government requires the support of oaths, it is a sign that it is not worth supporting, and ought not to be supported. Make government what it ought to be, and it will support itself.
Another reform in the American constitution is getting rid of all personal oaths. The oath of allegiance in America is solely to the nation. It’s inappropriate to hold any individual up as a representative of the nation. The happiness of the nation is the most important goal, so the purpose of an oath of allegiance shouldn't be muddied by being taken in reference to any person. The oath in France, which includes "the nation, the law, and the king," is not suitable. If it is to be taken, it should only be to the nation, as in America. The law may or may not be good; here, it only signifies its role in promoting the happiness of the nation, which is included in that oath. The rest of the oath is inappropriate because all personal oaths should be eliminated. They are remnants of tyranny on one side and slavery on the other; and invoking the Creator to witness the degradation of His creation is unacceptable. Even if taken as representing the nation, as previously mentioned, it becomes unnecessary. Regardless of any justification for oaths at the inception of a government, they should not be allowed afterward. If a government needs oaths for support, it's a sign that it isn’t worth supporting and shouldn’t be. Make government what it should be, and it will sustain itself.
To conclude this part of the subject:—One of the greatest improvements that have been made for the perpetual security and progress of constitutional liberty, is the provision which the new constitutions make for occasionally revising, altering, and amending them.
To wrap up this section of the topic:—One of the biggest advancements made for the ongoing security and growth of constitutional liberty is the provision in the new constitutions for occasionally reviewing, changing, and updating them.
The principle upon which Mr. Burke formed his political creed, that of "binding and controlling posterity to the end of time, and of renouncing and abdicating the rights of all posterity, for ever," is now become too detestable to be made a subject of debate; and therefore, I pass it over with no other notice than exposing it.
The principle that Mr. Burke used to shape his political beliefs, which is about "binding and controlling future generations forever while giving up the rights of all future generations," has now become too repulsive to even discuss; so I'll just mention it briefly to highlight it.
Government is but now beginning to be known. Hitherto it has been the mere exercise of power, which forbade all effectual enquiry into rights, and grounded itself wholly on possession. While the enemy of liberty was its judge, the progress of its principles must have been small indeed.
Government is just starting to be understood. Until now, it has mainly been about exercising power, which prevented any real investigation into rights and relied entirely on possession. With the enemy of freedom as its judge, the growth of its principles must have been very limited.
The constitutions of America, and also that of France, have either affixed a period for their revision, or laid down the mode by which improvement shall be made. It is perhaps impossible to establish anything that combines principles with opinions and practice, which the progress of circumstances, through a length of years, will not in some measure derange, or render inconsistent; and, therefore, to prevent inconveniences accumulating, till they discourage reformations or provoke revolutions, it is best to provide the means of regulating them as they occur. The Rights of Man are the rights of all generations of men, and cannot be monopolised by any. That which is worth following, will be followed for the sake of its worth, and it is in this that its security lies, and not in any conditions with which it may be encumbered. When a man leaves property to his heirs, he does not connect it with an obligation that they shall accept it. Why, then, should we do otherwise with respect to constitutions? The best constitution that could now be devised, consistent with the condition of the present moment, may be far short of that excellence which a few years may afford. There is a morning of reason rising upon man on the subject of government, that has not appeared before. As the barbarism of the present old governments expires, the moral conditions of nations with respect to each other will be changed. Man will not be brought up with the savage idea of considering his species as his enemy, because the accident of birth gave the individuals existence in countries distinguished by different names; and as constitutions have always some relation to external as well as to domestic circumstances, the means of benefitting by every change, foreign or domestic, should be a part of every constitution. We already see an alteration in the national disposition of England and France towards each other, which, when we look back to only a few years, is itself a Revolution. Who could have foreseen, or who could have believed, that a French National Assembly would ever have been a popular toast in England, or that a friendly alliance of the two nations should become the wish of either? It shows that man, were he not corrupted by governments, is naturally the friend of man, and that human nature is not of itself vicious. That spirit of jealousy and ferocity, which the governments of the two countries inspired, and which they rendered subservient to the purpose of taxation, is now yielding to the dictates of reason, interest, and humanity. The trade of courts is beginning to be understood, and the affectation of mystery, with all the artificial sorcery by which they imposed upon mankind, is on the decline. It has received its death-wound; and though it may linger, it will expire. Government ought to be as much open to improvement as anything which appertains to man, instead of which it has been monopolised from age to age, by the most ignorant and vicious of the human race. Need we any other proof of their wretched management, than the excess of debts and taxes with which every nation groans, and the quarrels into which they have precipitated the world? Just emerging from such a barbarous condition, it is too soon to determine to what extent of improvement government may yet be carried. For what we can foresee, all Europe may form but one great Republic, and man be free of the whole.
The constitutions of America and France have either set a timeline for revisions or outlined how improvements should be made. It might be impossible to create a system that perfectly balances principles with opinions and practices, especially as circumstances change over the years, which can disrupt or contradict any established order. Therefore, to prevent problems from piling up and discouraging reforms or sparking revolutions, it's best to have a way to adjust them as needed. The Rights of Man belong to all generations and can’t be owned by anyone. What's worth pursuing will naturally be pursued for its value, and that's where its security lies—not in any burdens placed upon it. When someone leaves property to their heirs, they don’t impose a requirement that they must accept it. So why should we treat constitutions any differently? The best constitution we could create today, considering current circumstances, may not be as impressive as what a few years could provide. A new understanding of government is beginning to emerge among people that hasn't existed before. As the outdated barbarism of current governments fades away, the relationships between nations will change for the better. People won’t grow up seeing their fellow humans as enemies just because they were born in different countries with different names. Since constitutions relate to both external and internal conditions, they should include ways to adapt to any changes, whether foreign or domestic. We've already noticed a shift in how England and France view each other, which, looking back just a few years, is revolutionary itself. Who would have predicted that the French National Assembly would be a popular toast in England, or that a friendly alliance between the two nations would be desired by either? It shows that, if not corrupted by governments, people are naturally friendly towards one another, and that human nature is not inherently evil. The jealousy and hostility stoked by the governments of both countries, which they used to serve their tax purposes, are now giving way to reason, self-interest, and humanity. People are starting to see through the typical practices of governments, and the aura of mystery created by their manipulations is waning. This deceptive system has been severely wounded; while it may linger, it cannot survive much longer. Government should be as open to improvement as anything that pertains to humanity, but instead, it has been controlled for ages by the most ignorant and corrupt among us. What more proof do we need of their disastrous leadership than the overwhelming debts and taxes that burden every nation, and the conflicts they’ve instigated worldwide? Emerging from such a brutal state, it’s too early to predict how far government can improve. For all we know, Europe could become one vast Republic, and humanity could be free together.
CHAPTER V. WAYS AND MEANS OF IMPROVING THE CONDITION OF EUROPE
INTERSPERSED WITH MISCELLANEOUS OBSERVATIONS
In contemplating a subject that embraces with equatorial magnitude the whole region of humanity it is impossible to confine the pursuit in one single direction. It takes ground on every character and condition that appertains to man, and blends the individual, the nation, and the world. From a small spark, kindled in America, a flame has arisen not to be extinguished. Without consuming, like the Ultima Ratio Regum, it winds its progress from nation to nation, and conquers by a silent operation. Man finds himself changed, he scarcely perceives how. He acquires a knowledge of his rights by attending justly to his interest, and discovers in the event that the strength and powers of despotism consist wholly in the fear of resisting it, and that, in order "to be free, it is sufficient that he wills it."
When considering a topic that covers the entire spectrum of humanity, it's impossible to limit the exploration to just one area. It touches on every aspect and condition related to people, blending the individual, the nation, and the world. From a small spark ignited in America, a flame has emerged that cannot be extinguished. Without destroying everything in its path, like the Ultima Ratio Regum, it spreads from nation to nation and conquers through quiet influence. People find themselves transformed, often without realizing it. They gain an understanding of their rights by paying attention to their interests and come to see that the power of tyranny lies entirely in the fear of opposing it. Ultimately, to be free, one just needs to desire it.
Having in all the preceding parts of this work endeavoured to establish a system of principles as a basis on which governments ought to be erected, I shall proceed in this, to the ways and means of rendering them into practice. But in order to introduce this part of the subject with more propriety, and stronger effect, some preliminary observations, deducible from, or connected with, those principles, are necessary.
Having tried in all the earlier parts of this work to lay out a system of principles as a foundation for how governments should be built, I will now discuss how to put them into practice. However, to introduce this section of the topic more appropriately and effectively, some preliminary remarks that are derived from or related to those principles are needed.
Whatever the form or constitution of government may be, it ought to have no other object than the general happiness. When, instead of this, it operates to create and increase wretchedness in any of the parts of society, it is on a wrong system, and reformation is necessary. Customary language has classed the condition of man under the two descriptions of civilised and uncivilised life. To the one it has ascribed felicity and affluence; to the other hardship and want. But, however our imagination may be impressed by painting and comparison, it is nevertheless true, that a great portion of mankind, in what are called civilised countries, are in a state of poverty and wretchedness, far below the condition of an Indian. I speak not of one country, but of all. It is so in England, it is so all over Europe. Let us enquire into the cause.
No matter what the structure of government is, its only goal should be the overall happiness of the people. When it instead causes suffering and misery in any part of society, it is functioning incorrectly, and change is needed. Common language has divided human conditions into two categories: civilized and uncivilized life. The first is associated with happiness and wealth; the second with struggle and need. However, despite how our imaginations may be influenced by imagery and comparisons, it is still true that a large number of people in so-called civilized countries live in poverty and misery, far worse than the situation of an Indian. I'm not talking about just one country, but about all of them. This is true in England and across Europe. Let us investigate the cause.
It lies not in any natural defect in the principles of civilisation, but in preventing those principles having a universal operation; the consequence of which is, a perpetual system of war and expense, that drains the country, and defeats the general felicity of which civilisation is capable. All the European governments (France now excepted) are constructed not on the principle of universal civilisation, but on the reverse of it. So far as those governments relate to each other, they are in the same condition as we conceive of savage uncivilised life; they put themselves beyond the law as well of God as of man, and are, with respect to principle and reciprocal conduct, like so many individuals in a state of nature. The inhabitants of every country, under the civilisation of laws, easily civilise together, but governments being yet in an uncivilised state, and almost continually at war, they pervert the abundance which civilised life produces to carry on the uncivilised part to a greater extent. By thus engrafting the barbarism of government upon the internal civilisation of a country, it draws from the latter, and more especially from the poor, a great portion of those earnings, which should be applied to their own subsistence and comfort. Apart from all reflections of morality and philosophy, it is a melancholy fact that more than one-fourth of the labour of mankind is annually consumed by this barbarous system. What has served to continue this evil, is the pecuniary advantage which all the governments of Europe have found in keeping up this state of uncivilisation. It affords to them pretences for power, and revenue, for which there would be neither occasion nor apology, if the circle of civilisation were rendered complete. Civil government alone, or the government of laws, is not productive of pretences for many taxes; it operates at home, directly under the eye of the country, and precludes the possibility of much imposition. But when the scene is laid in the uncivilised contention of governments, the field of pretences is enlarged, and the country, being no longer a judge, is open to every imposition, which governments please to act. Not a thirtieth, scarcely a fortieth, part of the taxes which are raised in England are either occasioned by, or applied to, the purpose of civil government. It is not difficult to see, that the whole which the actual government does in this respect, is to enact laws, and that the country administers and executes them, at its own expense, by means of magistrates, juries, sessions, and assize, over and above the taxes which it pays. In this view of the case, we have two distinct characters of government; the one the civil government, or the government of laws, which operates at home, the other the court or cabinet government, which operates abroad, on the rude plan of uncivilised life; the one attended with little charge, the other with boundless extravagance; and so distinct are the two, that if the latter were to sink, as it were, by a sudden opening of the earth, and totally disappear, the former would not be deranged. It would still proceed, because it is the common interest of the nation that it should, and all the means are in practice. Revolutions, then, have for their object a change in the moral condition of governments, and with this change the burthen of public taxes will lessen, and civilisation will be left to the enjoyment of that abundance, of which it is now deprived. In contemplating the whole of this subject, I extend my views into the department of commerce. In all my publications, where the matter would admit, I have been an advocate for commerce, because I am a friend to its effects. It is a pacific system, operating to cordialise mankind, by rendering nations, as well as individuals, useful to each other. As to the mere theoretical reformation, I have never preached it up. The most effectual process is that of improving the condition of man by means of his interest; and it is on this ground that I take my stand. If commerce were permitted to act to the universal extent it is capable, it would extirpate the system of war, and produce a revolution in the uncivilised state of governments. The invention of commerce has arisen since those governments began, and is the greatest approach towards universal civilisation that has yet been made by any means not immediately flowing from moral principles. Whatever has a tendency to promote the civil intercourse of nations by an exchange of benefits, is a subject as worthy of philosophy as of politics. Commerce is no other than the traffic of two individuals, multiplied on a scale of numbers; and by the same rule that nature intended for the intercourse of two, she intended that of all. For this purpose she has distributed the materials of manufactures and commerce, in various and distant parts of a nation and of the world; and as they cannot be procured by war so cheaply or so commodiously as by commerce, she has rendered the latter the means of extirpating the former. As the two are nearly the opposite of each other, consequently, the uncivilised state of the European governments is injurious to commerce. Every kind of destruction or embarrassment serves to lessen the quantity, and it matters but little in what part of the commercial world the reduction begins. Like blood, it cannot be taken from any of the parts, without being taken from the whole mass in circulation, and all partake of the loss. When the ability in any nation to buy is destroyed, it equally involves the seller. Could the government of England destroy the commerce of all other nations, she would most effectually ruin her own. It is possible that a nation may be the carrier for the world, but she cannot be the merchant. She cannot be the seller and buyer of her own merchandise. The ability to buy must reside out of herself; and, therefore, the prosperity of any commercial nation is regulated by the prosperity of the rest. If they are poor she cannot be rich, and her condition, be what it may, is an index of the height of the commercial tide in other nations. That the principles of commerce, and its universal operation may be understood, without understanding the practice, is a position that reason will not deny; and it is on this ground only that I argue the subject. It is one thing in the counting-house, in the world it is another. With respect to its operation it must necessarily be contemplated as a reciprocal thing; that only one-half its powers resides within the nation, and that the whole is as effectually destroyed by the destroying the half that resides without, as if the destruction had been committed on that which is within; for neither can act without the other. When in the last, as well as in former wars, the commerce of England sunk, it was because the quantity was lessened everywhere; and it now rises, because commerce is in a rising state in every nation. If England, at this day, imports and exports more than at any former period, the nations with which she trades must necessarily do the same; her imports are their exports, and vice versa. There can be no such thing as a nation flourishing alone in commerce: she can only participate; and the destruction of it in any part must necessarily affect all. When, therefore, governments are at war, the attack is made upon a common stock of commerce, and the consequence is the same as if each had attacked his own. The present increase of commerce is not to be attributed to ministers, or to any political contrivances, but to its own natural operation in consequence of peace. The regular markets had been destroyed, the channels of trade broken up, the high road of the seas infested with robbers of every nation, and the attention of the world called to other objects. Those interruptions have ceased, and peace has restored the deranged condition of things to their proper order.*25 It is worth remarking that every nation reckons the balance of trade in its own favour; and therefore something must be irregular in the common ideas upon this subject. The fact, however, is true, according to what is called a balance; and it is from this cause that commerce is universally supported. Every nation feels the advantage, or it would abandon the practice: but the deception lies in the mode of making up the accounts, and in attributing what are called profits to a wrong cause. Mr. Pitt has sometimes amused himself, by showing what he called a balance of trade from the custom-house books. This mode of calculating not only affords no rule that is true, but one that is false. In the first place, Every cargo that departs from the custom-house appears on the books as an export; and, according to the custom-house balance, the losses at sea, and by foreign failures, are all reckoned on the side of profit because they appear as exports.
It’s not due to any inherent flaw in the principles of civilization, but rather in the failure to apply those principles universally. This results in a constant cycle of war and expense that drains the country and undermines the collective happiness that civilization can offer. All European governments (except for France) are founded not on the idea of universal civilization but on the opposite. In terms of their relations with each other, they mirror what we think of as savage, uncivilized life; they operate outside the law of both God and man and behave, in terms of principles and interactions, like individuals in a state of nature. The people in every country, governed by laws, can easily coexist civilly, but governments remain uncivilized and almost always at war, diverting the wealth produced by civilized life to further their uncivilized pursuits. By integrating the barbarism of government with the internal civility of a country, it extracts a significant portion of the earnings from the latter, especially from the poor, which should be used for their own sustenance and comfort. Beyond any moral or philosophical reflections, it’s a sad fact that more than a quarter of humanity’s labor is wasted annually due to this brutal system. What perpetuates this issue is the financial gain that all European governments have found in sustaining this state of uncivilization. It gives them excuses for power and revenue that wouldn’t be necessary if the circle of civilization were fully complete. Civil governance or the rule of law doesn’t create justifications for many taxes; it operates at home, directly visible to the populace, and thus limits the potential for imposition. However, when the context is the uncivilized conflicts between governments, the opportunities for pretense expand, and since the country is no longer an arbiter, it becomes susceptible to any kinds of impositions that governments choose to enforce. Not even one-thirtieth, perhaps not even one-fortieth, of the taxes collected in England are actually created by or used for civil governance. It’s clear that all the current government does in this regard is enact laws, while the country itself administers and enforces them, at its own expense through magistrates, juries, sessions, and assizes, in addition to the taxes it pays. From this perspective, we can distinguish two types of government: civil government, which operates domestically, and cabinet government, which functions abroad with the primitive approach of uncivilized life; the former incurs minimal costs, while the latter is marked by boundless extravagance. So distinct are these two that if the latter were to suddenly vanish, it wouldn't disrupt the former. Civil governance would still function because it’s in the nation’s common interest to do so, and all the means for it are already in practice. Revolutions are aimed at changing the moral state of governments, and with that change, the burden of public taxes will decrease, allowing civilization to enjoy the abundance it’s currently lacking. In considering this whole issue, I extend my thoughts to commerce. In all my writings where appropriate, I have supported commerce because I believe in its positive effects. It is a peaceful system that helps people connect by making nations and individuals mutually beneficial. I have never promoted mere theoretical reforms. The most effective way to improve people’s conditions is through their interests, and this is where I stand. If commerce were allowed to function to its full potential, it would eliminate the system of war and transform the uncivilized nature of governments. The advent of commerce has come about since these governments began and represents the greatest step towards universal civilization made through any means not directly rooted in moral principles. Anything that promotes civil interaction between nations through the exchange of benefits deserves equal attention from philosophy and politics. Commerce is simply the trade between two individuals, scaled up, and by the same logic that nature intended for the interaction of two, she intended it for all. To facilitate this, she has spread the resources for manufacturing and commerce across different and distant parts of a nation and the world. Since these resources cannot be acquired through war as cheaply or conveniently as through commerce, she has made the latter the means to eliminate the former. Given that they are nearly opposites, the uncivilized state of European governments harms commerce. Any form of destruction or disruption reduces quantity, and it hardly matters where in the commercial world this reduction starts. Like blood, it cannot be drawn from one part without affecting the whole. If any nation loses its ability to buy, it equally affects the seller. If the government of England were to destroy the commerce of all other nations, it would effectively ruin itself. A nation may serve as a carrier for the world, but it cannot be its own merchant. It cannot be both the seller and buyer of its own goods. The ability to buy must come from outside itself; therefore, the prosperity of any commercial nation is tied to the prosperity of others. If others are poor, it cannot be rich, and its status, regardless of circumstances, reflects the height of commercial activity in other nations. The principles of commerce and its universal application can be grasped without knowing the practice, a claim that reason cannot dispute. It’s important to note that in a counting-house, things may look different than in the real world. In terms of its functioning, commerce must be seen as mutually interdependent; only half of its power resides with the nation, and the whole is just as effectively destroyed by harming the half outside as it is by harming the half within; neither can function without the other. When in the last war, as in previous ones, England's commerce declined, it was due to a reduction everywhere; it rises now because commerce is flourishing in every nation. If England is currently importing and exporting more than at any previous time, the nations with which she trades must be doing the same; her imports are their exports and vice versa. There is no such thing as a nation thriving in commerce alone; it can only participate, and any destruction of it in one area impacts all. Thus, when governments are at war, they’re attacking a shared commercial resource, and the result is akin to attacking their own. The current growth of commerce cannot be credited to ministers or any political schemes, but to its own natural operation due to peace. Regular markets were destroyed, trade routes disrupted, the seas plagued by robbers from every nation, and attention diverted to other matters. Those interruptions have ended, and peace has restored the disordered situation to its rightful state. *25 It’s noteworthy that every nation reports a favorable balance of trade; therefore, something must be off in the common understanding of this matter. However, the reality stands, according to what’s termed a balance, and this is why commerce is universally upheld. Every nation recognizes the benefits, or it would cease to engage in practice; the illusion lies in how accounts are tallied and how profits are attributed to the wrong causes. Mr. Pitt has occasionally entertained himself by showcasing what he called a balance of trade from the customs records. This method of calculation not only fails to provide a true measure but instead presents a false one. For one thing, every shipment that leaves the customs house shows up in the records as an export, and according to the customs balance, losses at sea and due to foreign defaults are all counted as profits because they are recorded as exports.
Secondly, Because the importation by the smuggling trade does not appear on the custom-house books, to arrange against the exports.
Secondly, since the imports from the smuggling trade don't show up in the customs records, they can't be counted against the exports.
No balance, therefore, as applying to superior advantages, can be drawn from these documents; and if we examine the natural operation of commerce, the idea is fallacious; and if true, would soon be injurious. The great support of commerce consists in the balance being a level of benefits among all nations.
No balance, therefore, when it comes to superior advantages, can be drawn from these documents; and if we look at the natural workings of commerce, the idea is misleading; and if it were true, it would quickly become harmful. The main support of commerce lies in the balance being a level of benefits among all nations.
Two merchants of different nations trading together, will both become rich, and each makes the balance in his own favour; consequently, they do not get rich of each other; and it is the same with respect to the nations in which they reside. The case must be, that each nation must get rich out of its own means, and increases that riches by something which it procures from another in exchange.
Two merchants from different countries trading together will both become wealthy, and each comes out ahead; therefore, they don't make each other poor. The same goes for the countries they live in. Each nation must grow its wealth through its own resources and increases that wealth by obtaining something from another in exchange.
If a merchant in England sends an article of English manufacture abroad which costs him a shilling at home, and imports something which sells for two, he makes a balance of one shilling in his favour; but this is not gained out of the foreign nation or the foreign merchant, for he also does the same by the articles he receives, and neither has the advantage upon the other. The original value of the two articles in their proper countries was but two shillings; but by changing their places, they acquire a new idea of value, equal to double what they had first, and that increased value is equally divided.
If a merchant in England sends an item made in England abroad that costs him a shilling at home, and brings back something that sells for two, he ends up with a gain of one shilling. However, this isn't taken from the foreign country or the foreign merchant, since they also benefit from the items they receive, and neither side has the upper hand over the other. The original value of both items in their respective countries was just two shillings; but by changing locations, they take on a new value, which is double what they were initially, and that increased value is shared equally.
There is no otherwise a balance on foreign than on domestic commerce. The merchants of London and Newcastle trade on the same principles, as if they resided in different nations, and make their balances in the same manner: yet London does not get rich out of Newcastle, any more than Newcastle out of London: but coals, the merchandize of Newcastle, have an additional value at London, and London merchandize has the same at Newcastle.
There is no balance in foreign trade compared to domestic commerce. The merchants in London and Newcastle operate under the same principles, as if they lived in different countries, and settle their accounts in the same way. However, London doesn’t get richer from Newcastle any more than Newcastle does from London; instead, coal, which is Newcastle's primary product, has extra value in London, just as London products do in Newcastle.
Though the principle of all commerce is the same, the domestic, in a national view, is the part the most beneficial; because the whole of the advantages, an both sides, rests within the nation; whereas, in foreign commerce, it is only a participation of one-half.
Though the principle of all trade is the same, domestic trade, from a national perspective, is the most beneficial; because all the advantages on both sides stay within the nation, while in foreign trade, it’s only a share of one-half.
The most unprofitable of all commerce is that connected with foreign dominion. To a few individuals it may be beneficial, merely because it is commerce; but to the nation it is a loss. The expense of maintaining dominion more than absorbs the profits of any trade. It does not increase the general quantity in the world, but operates to lessen it; and as a greater mass would be afloat by relinquishing dominion, the participation without the expense would be more valuable than a greater quantity with it.
The most unprofitable type of trade is the one tied to foreign control. It might benefit a few individuals simply because it's trade, but for the nation, it's a loss. The costs of maintaining control outweigh any profits from the trade. It doesn't increase the overall amount of goods in the world; instead, it actually decreases it. A larger supply could exist if control was given up, making the benefits of participating without the costs more valuable than having a larger quantity with it.
But it is impossible to engross commerce by dominion; and therefore it is still more fallacious. It cannot exist in confined channels, and necessarily breaks out by regular or irregular means, that defeat the attempt: and to succeed would be still worse. France, since the Revolution, has been more indifferent as to foreign possessions, and other nations will become the same when they investigate the subject with respect to commerce.
But it's impossible to control commerce through domination; and that's why it's even more misleading. Commerce can't thrive in limited spaces and will inevitably find ways to break free, whether through regular or irregular means, undermining those efforts. Succeeding in that would be even worse. Since the Revolution, France has cared less about foreign possessions, and other nations will likely feel the same once they take a closer look at commerce.
To the expense of dominion is to be added that of navies, and when the amounts of the two are subtracted from the profits of commerce, it will appear, that what is called the balance of trade, even admitting it to exist, is not enjoyed by the nation, but absorbed by the Government.
To the cost of control, we also need to include the expense of navies, and when we subtract these two amounts from the profits of trade, it becomes clear that what’s known as the balance of trade, even if it does exist, is not benefiting the nation but is instead taken by the Government.
The idea of having navies for the protection of commerce is delusive. It is putting means of destruction for the means of protection. Commerce needs no other protection than the reciprocal interest which every nation feels in supporting it—it is common stock—it exists by a balance of advantages to all; and the only interruption it meets, is from the present uncivilised state of governments, and which it is its common interest to reform.*26
The concept of having navies to protect trade is misleading. It's using tools of destruction instead of tools of protection. Trade doesn’t need anything more than the mutual interest each nation has in supporting it—it's a shared resource—it thrives on benefits to everyone; and the only disruptions it faces come from the current uncivilized state of governments, which it’s in everyone’s interest to change.*26
Quitting this subject, I now proceed to other matters.—As it is necessary to include England in the prospect of a general reformation, it is proper to inquire into the defects of its government. It is only by each nation reforming its own, that the whole can be improved, and the full benefit of reformation enjoyed. Only partial advantages can flow from partial reforms.
Quitting this topic, I will now move on to other issues. Since it's essential to consider England in the context of a broader reformation, it's important to look into the shortcomings of its government. Only by each nation reforming itself can we see improvements overall and fully enjoy the benefits of reformation. We can only gain limited advantages from partial reforms.
France and England are the only two countries in Europe where a reformation in government could have successfully begun. The one secure by the ocean, and the other by the immensity of its internal strength, could defy the malignancy of foreign despotism. But it is with revolutions as with commerce, the advantages increase by their becoming general, and double to either what each would receive alone.
France and England are the only two countries in Europe where a change in government could have successfully started. One is protected by the ocean, and the other by its immense internal strength, allowing them to resist the threats of foreign tyranny. But revolutions, like commerce, benefit from becoming widespread; the advantages grow when shared, doubling what each would gain on its own.
As a new system is now opening to the view of the world, the European courts are plotting to counteract it. Alliances, contrary to all former systems, are agitating, and a common interest of courts is forming against the common interest of man. This combination draws a line that runs throughout Europe, and presents a cause so entirely new as to exclude all calculations from former circumstances. While despotism warred with despotism, man had no interest in the contest; but in a cause that unites the soldier with the citizen, and nation with nation, the despotism of courts, though it feels the danger and meditates revenge, is afraid to strike.
As a new system is now being revealed to the world, European courts are scheming to counter it. Unlike previous systems, new alliances are forming, and a shared interest among courts is emerging against the shared interest of humanity. This combination creates a divide across Europe, presenting a situation so completely unique that it renders past calculations irrelevant. While authoritarian regimes battled each other, ordinary people had no stake in the outcome; however, in a situation that brings together soldiers and citizens, and nations with nations, the authoritarian nature of the courts, although aware of the threat and contemplating retaliation, is hesitant to take action.
No question has arisen within the records of history that pressed with the importance of the present. It is not whether this or that party shall be in or not, or Whig or Tory, high or low shall prevail; but whether man shall inherit his rights, and universal civilisation take place? Whether the fruits of his labours shall be enjoyed by himself or consumed by the profligacy of governments? Whether robbery shall be banished from courts, and wretchedness from countries?
No issue in history has been as critical as the one we face now. It's not about which party will be in power, whether Whig or Tory, high or low; it's about whether people will claim their rights and if universal civilization will emerge. Will individuals enjoy the benefits of their hard work or will those be wasted by corrupt governments? Will we eliminate theft from our justice system and suffering from our nations?
When, in countries that are called civilised, we see age going to the workhouse and youth to the gallows, something must be wrong in the system of government. It would seem, by the exterior appearance of such countries, that all was happiness; but there lies hidden from the eye of common observation, a mass of wretchedness, that has scarcely any other chance, than to expire in poverty or infamy. Its entrance into life is marked with the presage of its fate; and until this is remedied, it is in vain to punish.
When we see elderly people going to the workhouse and young people facing execution in so-called civilized countries, there's definitely something wrong with the system of government. On the surface, these countries seem happy, but beneath that appearance lies a hidden mass of suffering, which has little hope other than to end in poverty or disgrace. The beginning of their lives already hints at their destiny; and until this changes, punishing them is pointless.
Civil government does not exist in executions; but in making such provision for the instruction of youth and the support of age, as to exclude, as much as possible, profligacy from the one and despair from the other. Instead of this, the resources of a country are lavished upon kings, upon courts, upon hirelings, impostors and prostitutes; and even the poor themselves, with all their wants upon them, are compelled to support the fraud that oppresses them.
Civil government isn’t about punishments; it’s about ensuring that young people are educated and that older individuals are cared for, aiming to minimize vice in the young and despair in the elderly. Instead, a nation’s wealth is wasted on kings, courts, mercenaries, frauds, and exploiters; even the poor, despite their struggles, are forced to sustain the corruption that oppresses them.
Why is it that scarcely any are executed but the poor? The fact is a proof, among other things, of a wretchedness in their condition. Bred up without morals, and cast upon the world without a prospect, they are the exposed sacrifice of vice and legal barbarity. The millions that are superfluously wasted upon governments are more than sufficient to reform those evils, and to benefit the condition of every man in a nation, not included within the purlieus of a court. This I hope to make appear in the progress of this work.
Why is it that hardly anyone gets executed except the poor? This is a clear sign of the misery they face. Raised without morals and thrown into the world with no prospects, they become the vulnerable victims of wrongdoing and harsh laws. The millions that are wasted on governments are more than enough to fix these issues and improve the lives of everyone in a nation who isn’t connected to the courts. I hope to demonstrate this as I continue with this work.
It is the nature of compassion to associate with misfortune. In taking up this subject I seek no recompense—I fear no consequence. Fortified with that proud integrity, that disdains to triumph or to yield, I will advocate the Rights of Man.
It’s in the nature of compassion to connect with misfortune. In approaching this topic, I seek no reward—I fear no outcome. With that proud integrity, which refuses to celebrate victory or give in, I will support the Rights of Man.
It is to my advantage that I have served an apprenticeship to life. I know the value of moral instruction, and I have seen the danger of the contrary.
It’s to my benefit that I've experienced an apprenticeship to life. I understand the importance of moral guidance, and I've witnessed the risks of the opposite.
At an early period—little more than sixteen years of age, raw and adventurous, and heated with the false heroism of a master*27 who had served in a man-of-war—I began the carver of my own fortune, and entered on board the Terrible Privateer, Captain Death. From this adventure I was happily prevented by the affectionate and moral remonstrance of a good father, who, from his own habits of life, being of the Quaker profession, must begin to look upon me as lost. But the impression, much as it effected at the time, began to wear away, and I entered afterwards in the King of Prussia Privateer, Captain Mendez, and went with her to sea. Yet, from such a beginning, and with all the inconvenience of early life against me, I am proud to say, that with a perseverance undismayed by difficulties, a disinterestedness that compelled respect, I have not only contributed to raise a new empire in the world, founded on a new system of government, but I have arrived at an eminence in political literature, the most difficult of all lines to succeed and excel in, which aristocracy with all its aids has not been able to reach or to rival.*28
At a young age—just a bit over sixteen, inexperienced and adventurous, fueled by the misguided bravado of a master who had served on a warship—I started carving out my own future and signed on to the Terrible Privateer under Captain Death. Luckily, my caring and principled father intervened, convinced that my upbringing as a Quaker meant I was heading for trouble. However, that impression faded over time, and I eventually joined the King of Prussia Privateer, Captain Mendez, and went to sea with her. Despite such a start and the challenges of youth working against me, I’m proud to say that through my relentless perseverance and selflessness that earned respect, I have not only helped build a new empire based on a new system of government but have also achieved a significant status in political literature, the most challenging field to succeed in, which aristocracy, despite all its advantages, has failed to reach or rival.
Knowing my own heart and feeling myself as I now do, superior to all the skirmish of party, the inveteracy of interested or mistaken opponents, I answer not to falsehood or abuse, but proceed to the defects of the English Government.
Knowing my own heart and feeling as I do now, above all the chaos of party, the stubbornness of self-serving or confused opponents, I do not respond to lies or insults, but instead address the shortcomings of the English Government.
I begin with charters and corporations.
I start with charters and corporations.
It is a perversion of terms to say that a charter gives rights. It operates by a contrary effect—that of taking rights away. Rights are inherently in all the inhabitants; but charters, by annulling those rights, in the majority, leave the right, by exclusion, in the hands of a few. If charters were constructed so as to express in direct terms, "that every inhabitant, who is not a member of a corporation, shall not exercise the right of voting," such charters would, in the face, be charters not of rights, but of exclusion. The effect is the same under the form they now stand; and the only persons on whom they operate are the persons whom they exclude. Those whose rights are guaranteed, by not being taken away, exercise no other rights than as members of the community they are entitled to without a charter; and, therefore, all charters have no other than an indirect negative operation. They do not give rights to A, but they make a difference in favour of A by taking away the right of B, and consequently are instruments of injustice.
It's a misuse of terms to say that a charter grants rights. Instead, it does the opposite by taking rights away. Rights naturally belong to all individuals; however, charters often strip those rights from the majority, leaving them with a select few. If charters were worded to clearly state, "any resident who is not part of a corporation shall not have the right to vote," those charters would clearly be documents of exclusion, not rights. The result is the same under their current phrasing; the only people they affect are those they exclude. Those whose rights are guaranteed, simply by not being taken away, have no additional rights except what they already possess as members of the community—even without a charter. Therefore, all charters only have an indirect, negative effect. They don’t grant rights to A, but rather they create an advantage for A by removing B's rights, making them tools of injustice.
But charters and corporations have a more extensive evil effect than what relates merely to elections. They are sources of endless contentions in the places where they exist, and they lessen the common rights of national society. A native of England, under the operation of these charters and corporations, cannot be said to be an Englishman in the full sense of the word. He is not free of the nation, in the same manner that a Frenchman is free of France, and an American of America. His rights are circumscribed to the town, and, in some cases, to the parish of his birth; and all other parts, though in his native land, are to him as a foreign country. To acquire a residence in these, he must undergo a local naturalisation by purchase, or he is forbidden or expelled the place. This species of feudality is kept up to aggrandise the corporations at the ruin of towns; and the effect is visible.
But charters and corporations have a larger damaging impact than just their influence on elections. They create constant disputes in the areas where they exist, and they diminish the shared rights of the national community. A native of England, under these charters and corporations, can’t truly be considered an Englishman in the fullest sense. He isn't free like a Frenchman is free in France, or an American in America. His rights are limited to his town, and sometimes even just to the parish where he was born; all other places, even within his own country, feel like foreign lands to him. To gain a residence in those areas, he must go through a local naturalization process, often involving payment, or else he is denied access or forced out. This type of feudalism exists to benefit the corporations at the expense of towns, and the consequences are obvious.
The generality of corporation towns are in a state of solitary decay, and prevented from further ruin only by some circumstance in their situation, such as a navigable river, or a plentiful surrounding country. As population is one of the chief sources of wealth (for without it land itself has no value), everything which operates to prevent it must lessen the value of property; and as corporations have not only this tendency, but directly this effect, they cannot but be injurious. If any policy were to be followed, instead of that of general freedom, to every person to settle where he chose (as in France or America) it would be more consistent to give encouragement to new comers than to preclude their admission by exacting premiums from them.*29
Most corporation towns are in a state of decline, only held back from total ruin by certain circumstances like a navigable river or a rich surrounding area. Since population is a major source of wealth (because land itself has no value without people), anything that prevents population growth reduces property values. Corporations not only tend to do this but also have a direct harmful effect. If any policy were to be adopted instead of allowing everyone the freedom to settle where they want (like in France or America), it would make more sense to encourage newcomers rather than block their entry by demanding fees from them.*29
The persons most immediately interested in the abolition of corporations are the inhabitants of the towns where corporations are established. The instances of Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield show, by contrast, the injuries which those Gothic institutions are to property and commerce. A few examples may be found, such as that of London, whose natural and commercial advantage, owing to its situation on the Thames, is capable of bearing up against the political evils of a corporation; but in almost all other cases the fatality is too visible to be doubted or denied.
The people most affected by the elimination of corporations are the residents of the towns where these corporations exist. Examples like Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield highlight the damage these outdated institutions cause to property and businesses. There are a few exceptions, like London, which, due to its prime location on the Thames, can withstand the negative impacts of a corporation; however, in nearly all other instances, the harm is too obvious to ignore or dispute.
Though the whole nation is not so directly affected by the depression of property in corporation towns as the inhabitants themselves, it partakes of the consequence. By lessening the value of property, the quantity of national commerce is curtailed. Every man is a customer in proportion to his ability; and as all parts of a nation trade with each other, whatever affects any of the parts must necessarily communicate to the whole.
Although the entire country isn't directly impacted by the decline in property values in corporate towns as much as the residents are, it still feels the effects. By decreasing property values, the overall volume of national commerce is reduced. Every individual is a consumer based on their means, and since all regions of a nation engage in trade with one another, anything that affects one part will inevitably impact the whole.
As one of the Houses of the English Parliament is, in a great measure, made up of elections from these corporations; and as it is unnatural that a pure stream should flow from a foul fountain, its vices are but a continuation of the vices of its origin. A man of moral honour and good political principles cannot submit to the mean drudgery and disgraceful arts, by which such elections are carried. To be a successful candidate, he must be destitute of the qualities that constitute a just legislator; and being thus disciplined to corruption by the mode of entering into Parliament, it is not to be expected that the representative should be better than the man.
As one of the Houses of the English Parliament is largely made up of elections from these corporations, and since it’s unnatural for a pure stream to come from a polluted source, its flaws are simply a reflection of its origins. A person of moral integrity and sound political beliefs cannot accept the petty labor and unethical tactics that are used in these elections. To be a successful candidate, he must lack the qualities that define a fair legislator; and having been trained in corruption by the method of entering Parliament, it's unreasonable to expect that the representative will be any better than the individual.
Mr. Burke, in speaking of the English representation, has advanced as bold a challenge as ever was given in the days of chivalry. "Our representation," says he, "has been found perfectly adequate to all the purposes for which a representation of the people can be desired or devised." "I defy," continues he, "the enemies of our constitution to show the contrary."—This declaration from a man who has been in constant opposition to all the measures of parliament the whole of his political life, a year or two excepted, is most extraordinary; and, comparing him with himself, admits of no other alternative, than that he acted against his judgment as a member, or has declared contrary to it as an author.
Mr. Burke, when discussing English representation, has put forth as bold a challenge as ever posed in the days of knighthood. "Our representation," he says, "has proven completely adequate for all the purposes for which a representation of the people can be desired or created." "I challenge," he continues, "the opponents of our constitution to prove otherwise."—This statement from someone who has consistently opposed all parliamentary measures for most of his political life, with a couple of exceptions, is quite remarkable; and, when comparing his words to his past actions, it leaves no other option but to conclude that he either acted against his own judgment as a member or has contradicted it as a writer.
But it is not in the representation only that the defects lie, and therefore I proceed in the next place to the aristocracy.
But the issues aren't just in the representation, so next I’ll address the aristocracy.
What is called the House of Peers, is constituted on a ground very similar to that, against which there is no law in other cases. It amounts to a combination of persons in one common interest. No better reason can be given, why a house of legislation should be composed entirely of men whose occupation consists in letting landed property, than why it should be composed of those who hire, or of brewers, or bakers, or any other separate class of men. Mr. Burke calls this house "the great ground and pillar of security to the landed interest." Let us examine this idea.
What’s called the House of Peers is formed on a basis very similar to one where there is no law in other situations. It’s essentially a group of people united by a common interest. There’s no good reason for a legislative body to be made up solely of men whose job it is to lease land, just as there’s no reason it can't include those who rent, or brewers, or bakers, or any other specific group of people. Mr. Burke refers to this house as "the great ground and pillar of security to the landed interest." Let's take a closer look at this concept.
What pillar of security does the landed interest require more than any other interest in the state, or what right has it to a distinct and separate representation from the general interest of a nation? The only use to be made of this power (and which it always has made), is to ward off taxes from itself, and throw the burthen upon those articles of consumption by which itself would be least affected.
What aspect of security does the landed interest need more than any other interest in the government, or what justification does it have for having its own unique representation separate from the general interest of the nation? The only purpose of this power (which it has always used) is to protect itself from taxes and shift the burden onto consumer goods that won't impact it as much.
That this has been the consequence (and will always be the consequence) of constructing governments on combinations, is evident with respect to England, from the history of its taxes.
That this has been the result (and will always be the result) of building governments based on coalitions is clear when looking at England's history of taxation.
Notwithstanding taxes have increased and multiplied upon every article of common consumption, the land-tax, which more particularly affects this "pillar," has diminished. In 1778 the amount of the land-tax was L1,950,000, which is half-a-million less than it produced almost a hundred years ago,*30 notwithstanding the rentals are in many instances doubled since that period.
Even though taxes have gone up and increased on every common item, the land tax, which specifically impacts this "pillar," has gone down. In 1778, the land tax amount was £1,950,000, which is half a million less than it generated nearly a hundred years ago,*30 even though rents have in many cases doubled since then.
Before the coming of the Hanoverians, the taxes were divided in nearly equal proportions between the land and articles of consumption, the land bearing rather the largest share: but since that era nearly thirteen millions annually of new taxes have been thrown upon consumption. The consequence of which has been a constant increase in the number and wretchedness of the poor, and in the amount of the poor-rates. Yet here again the burthen does not fall in equal proportions on the aristocracy with the rest of the community. Their residences, whether in town or country, are not mixed with the habitations of the poor. They live apart from distress, and the expense of relieving it. It is in manufacturing towns and labouring villages that those burthens press the heaviest; in many of which it is one class of poor supporting another.
Before the Hanoverians came to power, taxes were mostly shared equally between land and consumer goods, with land carrying a slightly larger burden. Since then, nearly thirteen million in new taxes have been added to consumption each year. As a result, there has been a steady increase in both the number of poor people and their suffering, along with the amount of money allocated to assist them. However, the burden doesn’t fall equally on the aristocracy as it does on the rest of society. Their homes, whether in the city or the countryside, aren’t mixed with those of the poor. They are separated from the hardship and the costs of addressing it. It is in manufacturing towns and laboring villages where these burdens are felt the most; in many cases, one group of poor people ends up supporting another.
Several of the most heavy and productive taxes are so contrived, as to give an exemption to this pillar, thus standing in its own defence. The tax upon beer brewed for sale does not affect the aristocracy, who brew their own beer free from this duty. It falls only on those who have not conveniency or ability to brew, and who must purchase it in small quantities. But what will mankind think of the justice of taxation, when they know that this tax alone, from which the aristocracy are from circumstances exempt, is nearly equal to the whole of the land-tax, being in the year 1788, and it is not less now, L1,666,152, and with its proportion of the taxes on malt and hops, it exceeds it.—That a single article, thus partially consumed, and that chiefly by the working part, should be subject to a tax, equal to that on the whole rental of a nation, is, perhaps, a fact not to be paralleled in the histories of revenues.
Many of the heaviest and most productive taxes are designed in a way that exempts the wealthy, protecting their interests. The tax on beer sold does not impact the aristocracy, as they brew their own beer without this tax. It only burdens those who lack the convenience or means to brew their own and must buy it in smaller amounts. However, what will people think of the fairness of taxation when they realize that this specific tax, from which the wealthy are exempted due to their circumstances, is nearly equal to the total land tax? In 1788, this tax amounted to £1,666,152, and it hasn’t decreased much since, and when combined with the taxes on malt and hops, it surpasses it. The fact that a single item, consumed mainly by the working class, is subject to a tax equal to the entire rental income of a nation is perhaps an unparalleled situation in the history of taxation.
This is one of the circumstances resulting from a house of legislation, composed on the ground of a combination of common interest; for whatever their separate politics as to parties may be, in this they are united. Whether a combination acts to raise the price of any article for sale, or rate of wages; or whether it acts to throw taxes from itself upon another class of the community, the principle and the effect are the same; and if the one be illegal, it will be difficult to show that the other ought to exist.
This is one of the situations that arise from a legislative body formed out of a shared interest; because no matter what their individual party politics may be, they are unified in this. Whether a group works to increase the price of a product for sale or the wage rates, or whether it tries to shift taxes off itself onto another part of the community, the principle and the outcome are the same; and if one is illegal, it will be hard to argue that the other should be allowed.
It is no use to say that taxes are first proposed in the House of Commons; for as the other house has always a negative, it can always defend itself; and it would be ridiculous to suppose that its acquiescence in the measures to be proposed were not understood before hand. Besides which, it has obtained so much influence by borough-traffic, and so many of its relations and connections are distributed on both sides the commons, as to give it, besides an absolute negative in one house, a preponderancy in the other, in all matters of common concern.
There's no point in saying that taxes are first introduced in the House of Commons because the other house always has the power to reject them, allowing it to protect itself. It would be absurd to think that its agreement on the proposed measures wasn't arranged beforehand. Additionally, the other house has gained significant influence through borough dealings, and many of its relationships and connections are spread across both sides of the Commons, giving it not only the ability to block decisions in one house but also a dominant role in the other on all important issues.
It is difficult to discover what is meant by the landed interest, if it does not mean a combination of aristocratical landholders, opposing their own pecuniary interest to that of the farmer, and every branch of trade, commerce, and manufacture. In all other respects it is the only interest that needs no partial protection. It enjoys the general protection of the world. Every individual, high or low, is interested in the fruits of the earth; men, women, and children, of all ages and degrees, will turn out to assist the farmer, rather than a harvest should not be got in; and they will not act thus by any other property. It is the only one for which the common prayer of mankind is put up, and the only one that can never fail from the want of means. It is the interest, not of the policy, but of the existence of man, and when it ceases, he must cease to be.
It’s hard to figure out what is meant by the landed interest unless it refers to a group of aristocratic landowners working against the financial interests of farmers and all aspects of trade, commerce, and manufacturing. In every other way, it’s the only interest that doesn’t need special protection. It has the general support of society. Everyone, regardless of status, cares about the produce of the land; people of all ages and backgrounds will step in to help farmers so that the harvest isn’t lost, and they won’t do the same for any other type of property. It's the only interest that receives the collective prayers of humanity and the only one that can never fail due to lack of resources. It’s vital for human survival, and if it disappears, so will humanity.
No other interest in a nation stands on the same united support. Commerce, manufactures, arts, sciences, and everything else, compared with this, are supported but in parts. Their prosperity or their decay has not the same universal influence. When the valleys laugh and sing, it is not the farmer only, but all creation that rejoice. It is a prosperity that excludes all envy; and this cannot be said of anything else.
No other interest in a nation has the same level of united support. Trade, manufacturing, the arts, sciences, and everything else, compared to this, only have partial backing. Their prosperity or decline doesn’t have the same universal impact. When the valleys are joyful and singing, it’s not just the farmers who celebrate, but all of creation. This prosperity is free from envy, and that can’t be said about anything else.
Why then, does Mr. Burke talk of his house of peers as the pillar of the landed interest? Were that pillar to sink into the earth, the same landed property would continue, and the same ploughing, sowing, and reaping would go on. The aristocracy are not the farmers who work the land, and raise the produce, but are the mere consumers of the rent; and when compared with the active world are the drones, a seraglio of males, who neither collect the honey nor form the hive, but exist only for lazy enjoyment.
Why does Mr. Burke refer to his House of Lords as the foundation of the landed interest? If that foundation were to collapse, the same land would still exist, and the same planting, cultivating, and harvesting would continue. The aristocracy aren't the farmers who work the land and produce the crops; they simply consume the rent. Compared to the active world, they are the idle ones, a group of men who neither gather the honey nor build the hive, but live solely for leisure.
Mr. Burke, in his first essay, called aristocracy "the Corinthian capital of polished society." Towards completing the figure, he has now added the pillar; but still the base is wanting; and whenever a nation choose to act a Samson, not blind, but bold, down will go the temple of Dagon, the Lords and the Philistines.
Mr. Burke, in his first essay, referred to aristocracy as "the Corinthian capital of polished society." To complete the figure, he has now added the pillar; however, the base is still missing. Whenever a nation decides to act like a strong and brave Samson, the temple of Dagon will come crashing down, along with the Lords and the Philistines.
If a house of legislation is to be composed of men of one class, for the purpose of protecting a distinct interest, all the other interests should have the same. The inequality, as well as the burthen of taxation, arises from admitting it in one case, and not in all. Had there been a house of farmers, there had been no game laws; or a house of merchants and manufacturers, the taxes had neither been so unequal nor so excessive. It is from the power of taxation being in the hands of those who can throw so great a part of it from their own shoulders, that it has raged without a check.
If a legislative body consists of members from one group to protect a specific interest, all other interests should have the same representation. The inequality and burden of taxation come from allowing it in one case and not in others. If there had been a house of farmers, there wouldn’t have been game laws; or if there was a house of merchants and manufacturers, the taxes wouldn’t be so unequal or so high. The unchecked power of taxation lies with those who can shift much of that burden away from themselves.
Men of small or moderate estates are more injured by the taxes being thrown on articles of consumption, than they are eased by warding it from landed property, for the following reasons:
Men with small or moderate estates are more negatively impacted by taxes placed on consumer goods than they benefit from these taxes being kept off of real estate, for the following reasons:
First, They consume more of the productive taxable articles, in proportion to their property, than those of large estates.
First, they use more of the taxable products in relation to their property than those who own larger estates.
Secondly, Their residence is chiefly in towns, and their property in houses; and the increase of the poor-rates, occasioned by taxes on consumption, is in much greater proportion than the land-tax has been favoured. In Birmingham, the poor-rates are not less than seven shillings in the pound. From this, as is already observed, the aristocracy are in a great measure exempt.
Secondly, they mainly live in towns and own houses; the rise in poor rates due to consumption taxes is much higher than the more favorable treatment of land tax. In Birmingham, the poor rates are at least seven shillings per pound. As noted earlier, the aristocracy is largely exempt from this.
These are but a part of the mischiefs flowing from the wretched scheme of an house of peers.
These are just some of the troubles coming from the terrible idea of a house of peers.
As a combination, it can always throw a considerable portion of taxes from itself; and as an hereditary house, accountable to nobody, it resembles a rotten borough, whose consent is to be courted by interest. There are but few of its members, who are not in some mode or other participators, or disposers of the public money. One turns a candle-holder, or a lord in waiting; another a lord of the bed-chamber, a groom of the stole, or any insignificant nominal office to which a salary is annexed, paid out of the public taxes, and which avoids the direct appearance of corruption. Such situations are derogatory to the character of man; and where they can be submitted to, honour cannot reside.
As a group, it can always evade a significant amount of taxes; and as a hereditary institution, answerable to no one, it’s like a corrupt borough, where approval is sought through favors. Few of its members are not involved in some way as beneficiaries or managers of public funds. One might be a candle holder, another a lord in waiting; yet another a lord of the bedchamber, a groom of the stole, or any inconsequential position that comes with a salary funded by public taxes, all while avoiding the obvious appearance of corruption. Such roles diminish the dignity of a person; and where they can be tolerated, true honor cannot exist.
To all these are to be added the numerous dependants, the long list of younger branches and distant relations, who are to be provided for at the public expense: in short, were an estimation to be made of the charge of aristocracy to a nation, it will be found nearly equal to that of supporting the poor. The Duke of Richmond alone (and there are cases similar to his) takes away as much for himself as would maintain two thousand poor and aged persons. Is it, then, any wonder, that under such a system of government, taxes and rates have multiplied to their present extent?
To all this, we should add the many dependents, the long list of younger relatives and distant connections, who need to be supported at public expense. In short, if we were to estimate the cost of aristocracy to a nation, it would be found to be almost equal to the cost of supporting the poor. The Duke of Richmond alone (and there are similar cases) takes as much for himself as would support two thousand poor and elderly people. So, is it any wonder that under such a system of government, taxes and fees have increased to their current levels?
In stating these matters, I speak an open and disinterested language, dictated by no passion but that of humanity. To me, who have not only refused offers, because I thought them improper, but have declined rewards I might with reputation have accepted, it is no wonder that meanness and imposition appear disgustful. Independence is my happiness, and I view things as they are, without regard to place or person; my country is the world, and my religion is to do good.
In discussing these issues, I speak honestly and without bias, driven only by a sense of humanity. For someone like me, who has turned down offers I deemed inappropriate and rejected rewards I could have accepted with a good reputation, it’s no surprise that I find dishonesty and manipulation repugnant. My happiness comes from my independence, and I see things as they are, without consideration for location or individuals; my country is the whole world, and my belief is to do good.
Mr. Burke, in speaking of the aristocratical law of primogeniture, says, "it is the standing law of our landed inheritance; and which, without question, has a tendency, and I think," continues he, "a happy tendency, to preserve a character of weight and consequence."
Mr. Burke, while discussing the aristocratic law of primogeniture, states, "it is the established law of our land inheritance; and it undoubtedly tends, and I believe," he adds, "to have a positive effect in maintaining a sense of importance and significance."
Mr. Burke may call this law what he pleases, but humanity and impartial reflection will denounce it as a law of brutal injustice. Were we not accustomed to the daily practice, and did we only hear of it as the law of some distant part of the world, we should conclude that the legislators of such countries had not arrived at a state of civilisation.
Mr. Burke can label this law however he wants, but compassion and fair thinking will condemn it as a law of harsh injustice. If we weren’t used to seeing it every day, and if we only heard about it as the law from some far-off place, we would think that the lawmakers in those countries hadn’t reached a civilized state.
As to its preserving a character of weight and consequence, the case appears to me directly the reverse. It is an attaint upon character; a sort of privateering on family property. It may have weight among dependent tenants, but it gives none on a scale of national, and much less of universal character. Speaking for myself, my parents were not able to give me a shilling, beyond what they gave me in education; and to do this they distressed themselves: yet, I possess more of what is called consequence, in the world, than any one in Mr. Burke's catalogue of aristocrats.
Regarding its ability to maintain a sense of weight and importance, I believe the situation is quite the opposite. It's a stain on one's character; a kind of piracy on family assets. It might hold some significance among dependent tenants, but it offers no real standing on a national level, and even less on a universal one. Personally, my parents couldn't provide me with a single penny beyond my education, which they strained themselves to afford; yet, I have more so-called importance in the world than anyone on Mr. Burke's list of aristocrats.
Having thus glanced at some of the defects of the two houses of parliament, I proceed to what is called the crown, upon which I shall be very concise.
Having briefly looked at some of the flaws in the two houses of parliament, I’ll move on to what is known as the crown, and I'll be very brief about it.
It signifies a nominal office of a million sterling a year, the business of which consists in receiving the money. Whether the person be wise or foolish, sane or insane, a native or a foreigner, matters not. Every ministry acts upon the same idea that Mr. Burke writes, namely, that the people must be hood-winked, and held in superstitious ignorance by some bugbear or other; and what is called the crown answers this purpose, and therefore it answers all the purposes to be expected from it. This is more than can be said of the other two branches.
It represents a nominal position with a salary of a million pounds a year, and the job primarily involves collecting the money. It doesn't matter if the person is smart or foolish, sane or insane, a local or a foreigner. Every government operates under the same principle that Mr. Burke writes about, which is that people must be deceived and kept in ignorant superstition by some sort of fear; what is referred to as the crown serves this purpose, and thus fulfills all the expectations associated with it. This is more than can be said for the other two branches.
The hazard to which this office is exposed in all countries, is not from anything that can happen to the man, but from what may happen to the nation—the danger of its coming to its senses.
The risk that this office faces in all countries isn’t from anything that can happen to the individual, but from what might happen to the nation—the threat of it waking up to reality.
It has been customary to call the crown the executive power, and the custom is continued, though the reason has ceased.
It has been common to refer to the crown as the executive power, and this practice still continues, even though the reason for it has disappeared.
It was called the executive, because the person whom it signified used, formerly, to act in the character of a judge, in administering or executing the laws. The tribunals were then a part of the court. The power, therefore, which is now called the judicial, is what was called the executive and, consequently, one or other of the terms is redundant, and one of the offices useless. When we speak of the crown now, it means nothing; it signifies neither a judge nor a general: besides which it is the laws that govern, and not the man. The old terms are kept up, to give an appearance of consequence to empty forms; and the only effect they have is that of increasing expenses.
It was called the executive because the person it referred to used to act like a judge, enforcing the laws. Back then, the courts were part of the judicial system. So, the authority we now call judicial was once known as executive, making one of those terms unnecessary and rendering one of the roles pointless. When we talk about the crown today, it means nothing; it represents neither a judge nor a general. Moreover, it's the laws that govern, not the person. The old terms are kept to create the illusion of importance around meaningless rituals, and the only result is rising costs.
Before I proceed to the means of rendering governments more conducive to the general happiness of mankind, than they are at present, it will not be improper to take a review of the progress of taxation in England.
Before I move on to how we can make governments more supportive of the overall happiness of people than they are now, it would be helpful to take a look at the history of taxation in England.
It is a general idea, that when taxes are once laid on, they are never taken off. However true this may have been of late, it was not always so. Either, therefore, the people of former times were more watchful over government than those of the present, or government was administered with less extravagance.
It’s a common belief that once taxes are imposed, they’re never removed. While this may hold true lately, it wasn’t always the case. Either the people in the past were more vigilant about government actions than we are today, or the government operated with less wastefulness.
It is now seven hundred years since the Norman conquest, and the establishment of what is called the crown. Taking this portion of time in seven separate periods of one hundred years each, the amount of the annual taxes, at each period, will be as follows:
It has been seven hundred years since the Norman conquest and the formation of what’s known as the crown. If we break down this time into seven separate periods of one hundred years each, the amount of annual taxes for each period will be as follows:
Annual taxes levied by William the Conqueror, beginning in the year 1066 L400,000 Annual taxes at 100 years from the conquest (1166) 200,000 Annual taxes at 200 years from the conquest (1266) 150,000 Annual taxes at 300 years from the conquest (1366) 130,000 Annual taxes at 400 years from the conquest (1466) 100,000
Annual taxes imposed by William the Conqueror, starting in 1066 £400,000 Annual taxes 100 years after the conquest (1166) £200,000 Annual taxes 200 years after the conquest (1266) £150,000 Annual taxes 300 years after the conquest (1366) £130,000 Annual taxes 400 years after the conquest (1466) £100,000
These statements and those which follow, are taken from Sir John Sinclair's History of the Revenue; by which it appears, that taxes continued decreasing for four hundred years, at the expiration of which time they were reduced three-fourths, viz., from four hundred thousand pounds to one hundred thousand. The people of England of the present day, have a traditionary and historical idea of the bravery of their ancestors; but whatever their virtues or their vices might have been, they certainly were a people who would not be imposed upon, and who kept governments in awe as to taxation, if not as to principle. Though they were not able to expel the monarchical usurpation, they restricted it to a republican economy of taxes.
These statements and the ones that follow are taken from Sir John Sinclair's History of the Revenue; it shows that taxes kept decreasing for four hundred years, during which time they were reduced by three-fourths, from four hundred thousand pounds to one hundred thousand. The people of England today have a traditional and historical belief in the bravery of their ancestors; however, no matter their virtues or vices, they were definitely a people who wouldn't be taken advantage of and who kept governments in check regarding taxation, if not regarding principles. Even though they couldn't fully remove the monarchy's control, they limited it to a republican approach to taxes.
Let us now review the remaining three hundred years:
Let’s now take a look at the next three hundred years:
Annual amount of taxes at:
Annual tax amount at:
500 years from the conquest (1566) 500,000 600 years from the conquest (1666) 1,800,000 the present time (1791) 17,000,000
500 years after the conquest (1566) 500,000 600 years after the conquest (1666) 1,800,000 the present time (1791) 17,000,000
The difference between the first four hundred years and the last three, is so astonishing, as to warrant an opinion, that the national character of the English has changed. It would have been impossible to have dragooned the former English, into the excess of taxation that now exists; and when it is considered that the pay of the army, the navy, and of all the revenue officers, is the same now as it was about a hundred years ago, when the taxes were not above a tenth part of what they are at present, it appears impossible to account for the enormous increase and expenditure on any other ground, than extravagance, corruption, and intrigue.*31
The difference between the first four hundred years and the last three is so surprising that it suggests the national character of the English has changed. It would have been unthinkable to force the earlier English into the level of taxation we have today; and considering that the pay for the army, navy, and all revenue officers is the same now as it was about a hundred years ago, when taxes were only about a tenth of what they are now, it seems impossible to explain the huge increase in spending on anything other than extravagance, corruption, and intrigue.*31
With the Revolution of 1688, and more so since the Hanover succession, came the destructive system of continental intrigues, and the rage for foreign wars and foreign dominion; systems of such secure mystery that the expenses admit of no accounts; a single line stands for millions. To what excess taxation might have extended had not the French revolution contributed to break up the system, and put an end to pretences, is impossible to say. Viewed, as that revolution ought to be, as the fortunate means of lessening the load of taxes of both countries, it is of as much importance to England as to France; and, if properly improved to all the advantages of which it is capable, and to which it leads, deserves as much celebration in one country as the other.
With the Revolution of 1688, and even more since the Hanover succession, came a destructive system of continental intrigue, along with a thirst for foreign wars and overseas control; these systems were so opaque that their costs couldn’t be properly accounted for; a single line represented millions. It's hard to say how high taxes could have gone if the French Revolution hadn’t helped dismantle that system and exposed the pretenses. If we view that revolution as a fortunate way to reduce the tax burden for both countries, it’s just as significant for England as it is for France; and if it’s effectively leveraged to maximize its benefits, it deserves equal recognition in both countries.
In pursuing this subject, I shall begin with the matter that first presents itself, that of lessening the burthen of taxes; and shall then add such matter and propositions, respecting the three countries of England, France, and America, as the present prospect of things appears to justify: I mean, an alliance of the three, for the purposes that will be mentioned in their proper place.
In discussing this topic, I will start with the issue that stands out the most, which is reducing the burden of taxes. Then, I will include additional information and suggestions regarding England, France, and America, based on what seems relevant at this time. Specifically, I’m referring to a potential alliance among the three countries for the purposes that will be detailed later.
What has happened may happen again. By the statement before shown of the progress of taxation, it is seen that taxes have been lessened to a fourth part of what they had formerly been. Though the present circumstances do not admit of the same reduction, yet they admit of such a beginning, as may accomplish that end in less time than in the former case.
What happened before could happen again. From the earlier statement about the progress of taxation, it’s clear that taxes have been reduced to a quarter of what they used to be. Although current conditions don’t allow for the same level of reduction, they do permit a start that could achieve that goal in less time than before.
The amount of taxes for the year ending at Michaelmas 1788, was as follows:
The tax amount for the year ending at Michaelmas 1788 was as follows:
Land-tax L 1,950,000 Customs 3,789,274 Excise (including old and new malt) 6,751,727 Stamps 1,278,214 Miscellaneous taxes and incidents 1,803,755 —————- L15,572,755
Land-tax £1,950,000 Customs £3,789,274 Excise (including old and new malt) £6,751,727 Stamps £1,278,214 Miscellaneous taxes and incidents £1,803,755 ————— £15,572,755
Since the year 1788, upwards of one million new taxes have been laid on, besides the produce of the lotteries; and as the taxes have in general been more productive since than before, the amount may be taken, in round numbers, at L17,000,000. (The expense of collection and the drawbacks, which together amount to nearly two millions, are paid out of the gross amount; and the above is the net sum paid into the exchequer). This sum of seventeen millions is applied to two different purposes; the one to pay the interest of the National Debt, the other to the current expenses of each year. About nine millions are appropriated to the former; and the remainder, being nearly eight millions, to the latter. As to the million, said to be applied to the reduction of the debt, it is so much like paying with one hand and taking out with the other, as not to merit much notice. It happened, fortunately for France, that she possessed national domains for paying off her debt, and thereby lessening her taxes; but as this is not the case with England, her reduction of taxes can only take place by reducing the current expenses, which may now be done to the amount of four or five millions annually, as will hereafter appear. When this is accomplished it will more than counter-balance the enormous charge of the American war; and the saving will be from the same source from whence the evil arose. As to the national debt, however heavy the interest may be in taxes, yet, as it serves to keep alive a capital useful to commerce, it balances by its effects a considerable part of its own weight; and as the quantity of gold and silver is, by some means or other, short of its proper proportion, being not more than twenty millions, whereas it should be sixty (foreign intrigue, foreign wars, foreign dominions, will in a great measure account for the deficiency), it would, besides the injustice, be bad policy to extinguish a capital that serves to supply that defect. But with respect to the current expense, whatever is saved therefrom is gain. The excess may serve to keep corruption alive, but it has no re-action on credit and commerce, like the interest of the debt.
Since 1788, over a million new taxes have been imposed, plus the revenue from lotteries. Since these taxes have generally raised more money than before, the total can be estimated at around £17,000,000. (The costs of collecting these taxes and the refunds, which together total nearly two million, are deducted from this gross amount; what’s listed above is the net amount paid into the treasury.) This sum of seventeen million is used for two different purposes: one part goes to paying the interest on the National Debt, and the other covers the current expenses for each year. About nine million is set aside for the former, while nearly eight million goes to the latter. Regarding the million that is said to go towards reducing the debt, it seems more like paying with one hand and taking back with the other, so it’s not really worth much attention. Fortunately for France, they had national lands to help pay off their debt and lower their taxes; however, this is not the case for England, where tax reductions can only happen by cutting current expenses, which could now be reduced by four or five million annually, as will be shown later. Once this is accomplished, it will more than offset the huge cost of the American war, and the savings will come from the same source that caused the problem. As for the national debt, no matter how heavy the interest burden may be in taxes, it helps sustain a capital that is beneficial for commerce, balancing out some of its own weight. Since the amount of gold and silver is, for various reasons, below the proper level—only around twenty million instead of the needed sixty (with foreign intrigue, wars, and territories contributing to this shortage)—it would be both unjust and poor policy to eliminate a capital that helps address this shortfall. However, any savings from current expenses are considered a gain. While the excess may help keep corruption alive, it doesn’t impact credit and commerce like the debt interest does.
It is now very probable that the English Government (I do not mean the nation) is unfriendly to the French Revolution. Whatever serves to expose the intrigue and lessen the influence of courts, by lessening taxation, will be unwelcome to those who feed upon the spoil. Whilst the clamour of French intrigue, arbitrary power, popery, and wooden shoes could be kept up, the nation was easily allured and alarmed into taxes. Those days are now past: deception, it is to be hoped, has reaped its last harvest, and better times are in prospect for both countries, and for the world.
It is now very likely that the English Government (I don't mean the nation) is against the French Revolution. Anything that exposes the schemes and reduces the influence of the courts by cutting taxes will be unwelcome to those who benefit from the plunder. While the noise about French schemes, authoritarian power, Catholicism, and wooden shoes could be kept up, the nation was easily lured and frightened into accepting taxes. Those days are now behind us: deception, hopefully, has harvested its last crop, and better times are ahead for both countries and for the world.
Taking it for granted that an alliance may be formed between England, France, and America for the purposes hereafter to be mentioned, the national expenses of France and England may consequently be lessened. The same fleets and armies will no longer be necessary to either, and the reduction can be made ship for ship on each side. But to accomplish these objects the governments must necessarily be fitted to a common and correspondent principle. Confidence can never take place while an hostile disposition remains in either, or where mystery and secrecy on one side is opposed to candour and openness on the other.
Assuming that an alliance can be formed between England, France, and America for the purposes mentioned later, the national expenses of France and England could be reduced. They won’t need the same fleets and armies as before, and each side can cut back ship for ship. However, to achieve these goals, the governments must align with a shared and compatible principle. Trust can't develop while either side has a hostile attitude or where one side is secretive and the other is open.
These matters admitted, the national expenses might be put back, for the sake of a precedent, to what they were at some period when France and England were not enemies. This, consequently, must be prior to the Hanover succession, and also to the Revolution of 1688.*32 The first instance that presents itself, antecedent to those dates, is in the very wasteful and profligate times of Charles the Second; at which time England and France acted as allies. If I have chosen a period of great extravagance, it will serve to show modern extravagance in a still worse light; especially as the pay of the navy, the army, and the revenue officers has not increased since that time.
With these points in mind, national expenses could be adjusted back to a time when France and England were not enemies. This adjustment would have to be before the Hanoverian succession and the Revolution of 1688.*32 The first example that comes to mind before those dates is during the extravagant and wasteful reign of Charles the Second, when England and France were allies. If I’ve picked a time of great excess, it only highlights today’s extravagance in an even worse light, especially since the pay for the navy, army, and revenue officers hasn’t increased since then.
The peace establishment was then as follows (see Sir John Sinclair's History of the Revenue):
The peace establishment was set up as follows (see Sir John Sinclair's History of the Revenue):
Navy L 300,000 Army 212,000 Ordnance 40,000 Civil List 462,115 ———- L1,014,115
Navy £300,000 Army £212,000 Ordnance £40,000 Civil List £462,115 ———- £1,014,115
The parliament, however, settled the whole annual peace establishment at $1,200,000.*33 If we go back to the time of Elizabeth the amount of all the taxes was but half a million, yet the nation sees nothing during that period that reproaches it with want of consequence.
The parliament, however, established the entire annual peace budget at $1,200,000.*33 If we look back to the time of Elizabeth, the total taxes were only half a million, yet the nation doesn’t see anything from that period that makes it feel insignificant.
All circumstances, then, taken together, arising from the French revolution, from the approaching harmony and reciprocal interest of the two nations, the abolition of the court intrigue on both sides, and the progress of knowledge in the science of government, the annual expenditure might be put back to one million and a half, viz.:
All the factors combined—stemming from the French revolution, the growing harmony and mutual interests of the two nations, the end of court intrigues on both sides, and the advancements in the understanding of government—could bring the annual spending back to one and a half million, namely:
Navy L 500,000 Army 500,000 Expenses of Government 500,000 ————— L1,500,000
Navy £500,000 Army £500,000 Government Expenses £500,000 ————— £1,500,000
Even this sum is six times greater than the expenses of government are in America, yet the civil internal government in England (I mean that administered by means of quarter sessions, juries and assize, and which, in fact, is nearly the whole, and performed by the nation), is less expense upon the revenue, than the same species and portion of government is in America.
Even this amount is six times higher than the government's expenses in America, yet the civil internal government in England (I mean the one handled through quarter sessions, juries, and assizes, which is essentially the majority and managed by the nation) costs less to the revenue than the same type and share of government does in America.
It is time that nations should be rational, and not be governed like animals, for the pleasure of their riders. To read the history of kings, a man would be almost inclined to suppose that government consisted in stag-hunting, and that every nation paid a million a-year to a huntsman. Man ought to have pride, or shame enough to blush at being thus imposed upon, and when he feels his proper character he will. Upon all subjects of this nature, there is often passing in the mind, a train of ideas he has not yet accustomed himself to encourage and communicate. Restrained by something that puts on the character of prudence, he acts the hypocrite upon himself as well as to others. It is, however, curious to observe how soon this spell can be dissolved. A single expression, boldly conceived and uttered, will sometimes put a whole company into their proper feelings: and whole nations are acted on in the same manner.
It’s time for nations to be rational and not be ruled like animals for the pleasure of their leaders. Reading the history of kings might make someone think that government is just about stag-hunting, and that every nation pays a million a year to a huntsman. People should have enough pride or shame to feel embarrassed about being treated this way, and when they recognize their true nature, they will. On topics like this, there’s often a stream of thoughts in one’s mind that they haven’t learned to embrace or share. Held back by something that seems like prudence, they act hypocritically toward themselves as well as others. However, it’s interesting to see how quickly this spell can be broken. Sometimes a single bold expression can shift an entire group into the right mindset, and entire nations can be influenced the same way.
As to the offices of which any civil government may be composed, it matters but little by what names they are described. In the routine of business, as before observed, whether a man be styled a president, a king, an emperor, a senator, or anything else, it is impossible that any service he can perform, can merit from a nation more than ten thousand pounds a year; and as no man should be paid beyond his services, so every man of a proper heart will not accept more. Public money ought to be touched with the most scrupulous consciousness of honour. It is not the produce of riches only, but of the hard earnings of labour and poverty. It is drawn even from the bitterness of want and misery. Not a beggar passes, or perishes in the streets, whose mite is not in that mass.
When it comes to the positions that any civil government may have, it doesn't really matter what they're called. In the day-to-day running of things, as mentioned before, whether someone is called a president, a king, an emperor, a senator, or anything else, it's impossible for any service they provide to be worth more than ten thousand pounds a year to a nation. Since no one should earn more than what they contribute, anyone with a good conscience wouldn't accept more. Public money should be handled with the utmost integrity. It's not just created from wealth, but from the hard work and poverty of many. It's taken even from the struggles of those in need. Not a beggar goes by or dies in the streets without their small contribution being part of that total.
Were it possible that the Congress of America could be so lost to their duty, and to the interest of their constituents, as to offer General Washington, as president of America, a million a year, he would not, and he could not, accept it. His sense of honour is of another kind. It has cost England almost seventy millions sterling, to maintain a family imported from abroad, of very inferior capacity to thousands in the nation; and scarcely a year has passed that has not produced some new mercenary application. Even the physicians' bills have been sent to the public to be paid. No wonder that jails are crowded, and taxes and poor-rates increased. Under such systems, nothing is to be looked for but what has already happened; and as to reformation, whenever it come, it must be from the nation, and not from the government.
If it were possible for the Congress of America to be so neglectful of their duty and their constituents' interests as to offer General Washington a million dollars a year as president, he wouldn’t and couldn’t accept it. His sense of honor is different. England has spent almost seventy million pounds to support a family brought over from abroad, who are far less capable than thousands of people in the nation; and hardly a year has gone by without some new appeal for money. Even physicians’ bills have been sent to the public for payment. It’s no surprise that jails are overcrowded, and taxes and welfare costs are rising. With such systems in place, we shouldn’t expect anything different from what has already happened; and any reform, whenever it arrives, must come from the people, not the government.
To show that the sum of five hundred thousand pounds is more than sufficient to defray all the expenses of the government, exclusive of navies and armies, the following estimate is added, for any country, of the same extent as England.
To demonstrate that the sum of five hundred thousand pounds is more than enough to cover all government expenses, excluding navies and armies, the following estimate is included for any country of the same size as England.
In the first place, three hundred representatives fairly elected, are sufficient for all the purposes to which legislation can apply, and preferable to a larger number. They may be divided into two or three houses, or meet in one, as in France, or in any manner a constitution shall direct.
In the first place, three hundred fairly elected representatives are enough for all the purposes of legislation and are better than having a larger number. They can be divided into two or three houses, or meet as one, like in France, or in whatever way a constitution specifies.
As representation is always considered, in free countries, as the most honourable of all stations, the allowance made to it is merely to defray the expense which the representatives incur by that service, and not to it as an office.
As representation is always viewed, in free countries, as the most honorable of all positions, the compensation provided is just to cover the costs that representatives incur from that service, not as a salary for the role.
If an allowance, at the rate of five hundred pounds per annum, be made to every representative, deducting for non-attendance, the expense, if the whole number attended for six months, each year, would be L 75,00 The official departments cannot reasonably exceed the following number, with the salaries annexed: Three offices at ten thousand pounds each L 30,000 Ten ditto, at five thousand pounds each 50,000 Twenty ditto, at two thousand pounds each 40,000 Forty ditto, at one thousand pounds each 40,000 Two hundred ditto, at five hundred pounds each 100,000 Three hundred ditto, at two hundred pounds each 60,000 Five hundred ditto, at one hundred pounds each 50,000 Seven hundred ditto, at seventy-five pounds each 52,500 ———— L497,500
If an annual allowance of five hundred pounds is given to each representative, with deductions for non-attendance, the total expense, assuming everyone attended for six months each year, would be £75,000. The official departments can't reasonably exceed the following numbers, along with the corresponding salaries: Three offices at ten thousand pounds each £30,000 Ten offices at five thousand pounds each £50,000 Twenty offices at two thousand pounds each £40,000 Forty offices at one thousand pounds each £40,000 Two hundred offices at five hundred pounds each £100,000 Three hundred offices at two hundred pounds each £60,000 Five hundred offices at one hundred pounds each £50,000 Seven hundred offices at seventy-five pounds each £52,500 ———— £497,500
If a nation choose, it can deduct four per cent. from all offices, and make one of twenty thousand per annum.
If a nation wants to, it can take four percent off all offices and set one at twenty thousand a year.
All revenue officers are paid out of the monies they collect, and therefore, are not in this estimation.
All revenue officers are paid from the funds they collect, so they are not included in this estimate.
The foregoing is not offered as an exact detail of offices, but to show the number of rate of salaries which five hundred thousand pounds will support; and it will, on experience, be found impracticable to find business sufficient to justify even this expense. As to the manner in which office business is now performed, the Chiefs, in several offices, such as the post-office, and certain offices in the exchequer, etc., do little more than sign their names three or four times a year; and the whole duty is performed by under-clerks.
The above is not meant to provide a detailed account of positions but to illustrate how many salaries can be supported by five hundred thousand pounds. In practice, it will be difficult to find enough work to justify even this expense. Regarding how office work is currently carried out, the leaders in several offices, like the post office and some departments in the treasury, mostly just sign their names a few times a year, while the entire workload is handled by junior clerks.
Taking, therefore, one million and a half as a sufficient peace establishment for all the honest purposes of government, which is three hundred thousand pounds more than the peace establishment in the profligate and prodigal times of Charles the Second (notwithstanding, as has been already observed, the pay and salaries of the army, navy, and revenue officers, continue the same as at that period), there will remain a surplus of upwards of six millions out of the present current expenses. The question then will be, how to dispose of this surplus.
Taking one and a half million as an adequate peace budget for all the legitimate needs of government, which is three hundred thousand pounds more than the peace budget during the extravagant times of Charles the Second (even though, as has been noted before, the pay and salaries of the army, navy, and revenue officers remain the same as back then), there will be a surplus of over six million from the current expenses. The question then will be how to use this surplus.
Whoever has observed the manner in which trade and taxes twist themselves together, must be sensible of the impossibility of separating them suddenly.
Whoever has noticed how trade and taxes are intertwined must realize that it's impossible to separate them abruptly.
First. Because the articles now on hand are already charged with the duty, and the reduction cannot take place on the present stock.
First. Because the items we have now are already assigned the duty, and we can't reduce it on the current stock.
Secondly. Because, on all those articles on which the duty is charged in the gross, such as per barrel, hogshead, hundred weight, or ton, the abolition of the duty does not admit of being divided down so as fully to relieve the consumer, who purchases by the pint, or the pound. The last duty laid on strong beer and ale was three shillings per barrel, which, if taken off, would lessen the purchase only half a farthing per pint, and consequently, would not reach to practical relief.
Secondly, since the duty is applied in bulk amounts—like per barrel, hogshead, hundredweight, or ton—removing the duty doesn’t allow for a breakdown that would really benefit consumers who buy by the pint or pound. The last duty on strong beer and ale was three shillings per barrel, and if that were removed, it would only lower the price by half a farthing per pint, which wouldn’t provide any real relief.
This being the condition of a great part of the taxes, it will be necessary to look for such others as are free from this embarrassment and where the relief will be direct and visible, and capable of immediate operation.
This being the situation with a large portion of the taxes, it will be necessary to seek out other options that are free from this complication and where the relief will be straightforward and noticeable, and able to take effect immediately.
In the first place, then, the poor-rates are a direct tax which every house-keeper feels, and who knows also, to a farthing, the sum which he pays. The national amount of the whole of the poor-rates is not positively known, but can be procured. Sir John Sinclair, in his History of the Revenue has stated it at L2,100,587. A considerable part of which is expended in litigations, in which the poor, instead of being relieved, are tormented. The expense, however, is the same to the parish from whatever cause it arises.
First of all, the poor rates are a direct tax that every homeowner feels, and they know exactly how much they pay down to the last penny. The total national amount of all the poor rates isn't definitively known, but it can be obtained. Sir John Sinclair, in his History of the Revenue, has stated it at £2,100,587. A significant portion of this is spent on legal disputes where the poor are not helped but instead suffer. However, the cost is the same for the parish no matter what the reason is.
In Birmingham, the amount of poor-rates is fourteen thousand pounds a year. This, though a large sum, is moderate, compared with the population. Birmingham is said to contain seventy thousand souls, and on a proportion of seventy thousand to fourteen thousand pounds poor-rates, the national amount of poor-rates, taking the population of England as seven millions, would be but one million four hundred thousand pounds. It is, therefore, most probable, that the population of Birmingham is over-rated. Fourteen thousand pounds is the proportion upon fifty thousand souls, taking two millions of poor-rates, as the national amount.
In Birmingham, the annual poor rate is fourteen thousand pounds. While this is a significant amount, it's relatively moderate considering the population size. Birmingham is estimated to have seventy thousand residents, and with that ratio of seventy thousand to fourteen thousand pounds in poor rates, the total national poor rates, based on England's population of seven million, would be around one million four hundred thousand pounds. Therefore, it's likely that Birmingham's population figure is inflated. The fourteen thousand pounds corresponds to a population of fifty thousand, assuming the national poor rates total two million pounds.
Be it, however, what it may, it is no other than the consequence of excessive burthen of taxes, for, at the time when the taxes were very low, the poor were able to maintain themselves; and there were no poor-rates.*34 In the present state of things a labouring man, with a wife or two or three children, does not pay less than between seven and eight pounds a year in taxes. He is not sensible of this, because it is disguised to him in the articles which he buys, and he thinks only of their dearness; but as the taxes take from him, at least, a fourth part of his yearly earnings, he is consequently disabled from providing for a family, especially, if himself, or any of them, are afflicted with sickness.
No matter what, it's just the result of excessive tax burdens because, when taxes were very low, the poor could support themselves, and there were no poor rates.*34 Nowadays, a working man with a wife and two or three kids pays at least seven to eight pounds a year in taxes. He isn’t aware of this because it’s hidden in the prices of the things he buys, and he only notices how expensive they are; but since taxes take away at least a quarter of his annual earnings, he struggles to provide for his family, especially if he or any of them are dealing with illness.
The first step, therefore, of practical relief, would be to abolish the poor-rates entirely, and in lieu thereof, to make a remission of taxes to the poor of double the amount of the present poor-rates, viz., four millions annually out of the surplus taxes. By this measure, the poor would be benefited two millions, and the house-keepers two millions. This alone would be equal to a reduction of one hundred and twenty millions of the National Debt, and consequently equal to the whole expense of the American War.
The first step towards meaningful relief would be to completely eliminate poor rates and instead provide tax breaks to the poor that are double the current amount of the poor rates, which is four million annually from surplus taxes. This change would benefit the poor by two million, and households would also gain two million. This alone would be comparable to reducing the National Debt by one hundred and twenty million, which is roughly the total cost of the American War.
It will then remain to be considered, which is the most effectual mode of distributing this remission of four millions.
It will then be necessary to consider the most effective way to distribute this relief of four million.
It is easily seen, that the poor are generally composed of large families of children, and old people past their labour. If these two classes are provided for, the remedy will so far reach to the full extent of the case, that what remains will be incidental, and, in a great measure, fall within the compass of benefit clubs, which, though of humble invention, merit to be ranked among the best of modern institutions.
It’s clear that the poor usually consist of large families with children and elderly people who can no longer work. If we provide for these two groups, the solution will largely address the issue, leaving only minor matters that can be handled by benefit clubs, which, although simple in concept, deserve to be recognized as some of the best modern institutions.
Admitting England to contain seven millions of souls; if one-fifth thereof are of that class of poor which need support, the number will be one million four hundred thousand. Of this number, one hundred and forty thousand will be aged poor, as will be hereafter shown, and for which a distinct provision will be proposed.
Admitting that England has seven million people, if one-fifth of them are from the class of poor who need support, that means there would be one million four hundred thousand. Of that number, one hundred and forty thousand will be elderly poor, as will be shown later, and a separate solution will be proposed for them.
There will then remain one million two hundred and sixty thousand which, at five souls to each family, amount to two hundred and fifty-two thousand families, rendered poor from the expense of children and the weight of taxes.
There will then be one million two hundred sixty thousand people, which, at five people per family, amounts to two hundred fifty-two thousand families, who have become poor because of the costs of raising children and the burden of taxes.
The number of children under fourteen years of age, in each of those families, will be found to be about five to every two families; some having two, and others three; some one, and others four: some none, and others five; but it rarely happens that more than five are under fourteen years of age, and after this age they are capable of service or of being apprenticed.
The number of children under fourteen in each of those families is typically about five for every two families; some have two, others three; some have one, and some have four: some have none, and others have five; but it’s uncommon for more than five to be under fourteen, and after that age, they can work or be apprenticed.
Allowing five children (under fourteen years) to every two families,
Allowing five children (under fourteen years old) for every two families,
The number of children will be 630,000
The number of children will be 630,000.
The number of parents, were they all living, would be 504,000
The total number of parents, if they were all alive, would be 504,000.
It is certain, that if the children are provided for, the parents are relieved of consequence, because it is from the expense of bringing up children that their poverty arises.
It’s clear that if the children are taken care of, the parents are off the hook because their poverty comes from the costs of raising kids.
Having thus ascertained the greatest number that can be supposed to need support on account of young families, I proceed to the mode of relief or distribution, which is,
Having figured out the largest number of people who are likely to need support because of young families, I will now discuss the way to provide help or distribute resources, which is,
To pay as a remission of taxes to every poor family, out of the surplus taxes, and in room of poor-rates, four pounds a year for every child under fourteen years of age; enjoining the parents of such children to send them to school, to learn reading, writing, and common arithmetic; the ministers of every parish, of every denomination to certify jointly to an office, for that purpose, that this duty is performed. The amount of this expense will be,
To pay as a tax remission to every low-income family, using the excess taxes instead of poor-rates, four pounds a year for each child under fourteen years old; requiring the parents of these children to send them to school to learn reading, writing, and basic math; the ministers from every parish, regardless of denomination, to jointly certify to an office established for this purpose that this requirement is met. The total cost of this will be,
For six hundred and thirty thousand children at four pounds per annum each L2,520,000
For 630,000 children at £4 a year each £2,520,000
By adopting this method, not only the poverty of the parents will be relieved, but ignorance will be banished from the rising generation, and the number of poor will hereafter become less, because their abilities, by the aid of education, will be greater. Many a youth, with good natural genius, who is apprenticed to a mechanical trade, such as a carpenter, joiner, millwright, shipwright, blacksmith, etc., is prevented getting forward the whole of his life from the want of a little common education when a boy.
By using this approach, not only will the parents' poverty be alleviated, but ignorance will also be eliminated from the next generation, and the number of poor will decrease in the future because education will enhance their abilities. Many young people with natural talent, who are apprenticed to a trade like carpentry, joinery, millwrighting, shipbuilding, blacksmithing, etc., are held back for their entire lives due to a lack of basic education in their youth.
I now proceed to the case of the aged.
I will now move on to the case of the elderly.
I divide age into two classes. First, the approach of age, beginning at fifty. Secondly, old age commencing at sixty.
I divide age into two categories. First, approaching old age starts at fifty. Secondly, old age begins at sixty.
At fifty, though the mental faculties of man are in full vigour, and his judgment better than at any preceding date, the bodily powers for laborious life are on the decline. He cannot bear the same quantity of fatigue as at an earlier period. He begins to earn less, and is less capable of enduring wind and weather; and in those more retired employments where much sight is required, he fails apace, and sees himself, like an old horse, beginning to be turned adrift.
At fifty, even though a person's mental abilities are strong and their judgment is better than ever, their physical strength for hard work is starting to fade. They can’t handle the same amount of fatigue as they could before. They start to earn less and find it harder to deal with harsh weather. In jobs that require good eyesight, they quickly start to struggle, and they feel like an old horse being set loose.
At sixty his labour ought to be over, at least from direct necessity. It is painful to see old age working itself to death, in what are called civilised countries, for daily bread.
At sixty, he should be done working, at least out of necessity. It’s sad to see the elderly struggling to survive in what are called civilized countries, working themselves to the bone just to put food on the table.
To form some judgment of the number of those above fifty years of age, I have several times counted the persons I met in the streets of London, men, women, and children, and have generally found that the average is about one in sixteen or seventeen. If it be said that aged persons do not come much into the streets, so neither do infants; and a great proportion of grown children are in schools and in work-shops as apprentices. Taking, then, sixteen for a divisor, the whole number of persons in England of fifty years and upwards, of both sexes, rich and poor, will be four hundred and twenty thousand.
To get an idea of how many people over fifty there are, I've counted the people I see on the streets of London—men, women, and children—and I've generally found that the average is about one in sixteen or seventeen. If someone argues that older people don't go out much, then neither do infants; and a large number of older children are in schools or working as apprentices. So, if we use sixteen as the divisor, the total number of people in England who are fifty and older, regardless of gender or wealth, would be four hundred and twenty thousand.
The persons to be provided for out of this gross number will be husbandmen, common labourers, journeymen of every trade and their wives, sailors, and disbanded soldiers, worn out servants of both sexes, and poor widows.
The people who will be supported from this total number will be farmers, manual laborers, workers in various trades and their spouses, sailors, retired soldiers, exhausted servants of both genders, and impoverished widows.
There will be also a considerable number of middling tradesmen, who having lived decently in the former part of life, begin, as age approaches, to lose their business, and at last fall to decay.
There will also be a fair number of average tradespeople who, after having lived reasonably well earlier in life, start to lose their business as they get older, ultimately leading to their decline.
Besides these there will be constantly thrown off from the revolutions of that wheel which no man can stop nor regulate, a number from every class of life connected with commerce and adventure.
Besides these, there will continually be cast off from the revolutions of that wheel, which no one can stop or control, a number of people from every class of life tied to commerce and adventure.
To provide for all those accidents, and whatever else may befall, I take the number of persons who, at one time or other of their lives, after fifty years of age, may feel it necessary or comfortable to be better supported, than they can support themselves, and that not as a matter of grace and favour, but of right, at one-third of the whole number, which is one hundred and forty thousand, as stated in a previous page, and for whom a distinct provision was proposed to be made. If there be more, society, notwithstanding the show and pomposity of government, is in a deplorable condition in England.
To account for all those accidents and anything else that might happen, I consider the number of people who, at some point in their lives after turning fifty, might find it necessary or comfortable to have better support than they can provide for themselves. This support should be seen as a right, not as a matter of kindness or favoritism, and I estimate this to be one-third of the total population, which is one hundred and forty thousand, as mentioned earlier. For these individuals, a separate provision was suggested. If the number is greater, then society, despite the appearance and pretentiousness of the government, is in a terrible state in England.
Of this one hundred and forty thousand, I take one half, seventy thousand, to be of the age of fifty and under sixty, and the other half to be sixty years and upwards. Having thus ascertained the probable proportion of the number of aged persons, I proceed to the mode of rendering their condition comfortable, which is:
Of the one hundred and forty thousand, I take half, seventy thousand, to be between the ages of fifty and sixty, and the other half to be sixty and older. Having determined the likely proportion of older individuals, I will now discuss how to make their situation more comfortable, which is:
To pay to every such person of the age of fifty years, and until he shall arrive at the age of sixty, the sum of six pounds per annum out of the surplus taxes, and ten pounds per annum during life after the age of sixty. The expense of which will be,
To pay each person who is fifty years old, and until they reach sixty, the amount of six pounds a year from the surplus taxes, and ten pounds a year for life after they turn sixty. The cost of this will be,
Seventy thousand persons, at L6 per annum L 420,000 Seventy thousand persons, at L10 per annum 700,000 ———- L1,120,000
Seventy thousand people, at £6 per year £420,000 Seventy thousand people, at £10 per year £700,000 ———- £1,120,000
This support, as already remarked, is not of the nature of a charity but of a right. Every person in England, male and female, pays on an average in taxes two pounds eight shillings and sixpence per annum from the day of his (or her) birth; and, if the expense of collection be added, he pays two pounds eleven shillings and sixpence; consequently, at the end of fifty years he has paid one hundred and twenty-eight pounds fifteen shillings; and at sixty one hundred and fifty-four pounds ten shillings. Converting, therefore, his (or her) individual tax in a tontine, the money he shall receive after fifty years is but little more than the legal interest of the net money he has paid; the rest is made up from those whose circumstances do not require them to draw such support, and the capital in both cases defrays the expenses of government. It is on this ground that I have extended the probable claims to one-third of the number of aged persons in the nation.—Is it, then, better that the lives of one hundred and forty thousand aged persons be rendered comfortable, or that a million a year of public money be expended on any one individual, and him often of the most worthless or insignificant character? Let reason and justice, let honour and humanity, let even hypocrisy, sycophancy and Mr. Burke, let George, let Louis, Leopold, Frederic, Catherine, Cornwallis, or Tippoo Saib, answer the question.*35
This support, as mentioned earlier, isn’t a charity but a right. Everyone in England, men and women, pays an average of two pounds eight shillings and sixpence in taxes each year from the day they’re born; and if you factor in the cost of collection, it comes to two pounds eleven shillings and sixpence. So, after fifty years, they will have paid one hundred and twenty-eight pounds fifteen shillings, and at sixty, one hundred and fifty-four pounds ten shillings. Thus, if we think of their individual taxes as a tontine, the money they receive after fifty years is just slightly more than the legal interest on what they've contributed; the rest comes from those who don’t need to rely on such support, and the principal in both situations covers government expenses. That's why I have estimated that one-third of the elderly population has probable claims—Is it better for the lives of one hundred and forty thousand older people to be made comfortable, or for a million a year of public funds to be spent on a single individual, often one of little worth or significance? Let reason and justice, let honor and humanity, let even hypocrisy, sycophancy, and Mr. Burke, let George, Louis, Leopold, Frederic, Catherine, Cornwallis, or Tippoo Saib answer this question.*35
The sum thus remitted to the poor will be,
The total sent to the poor will be,
To two hundred and fifty-two thousand poor families, containing six hundred and thirty thousand children L2,520,000 To one hundred and forty thousand aged persons 1,120,000 ————— L3,640,000
To 252,000 needy families, with 630,000 children L2,520,000 To 140,000 elderly individuals 1,120,000 ————— L3,640,000
There will then remain three hundred and sixty thousand pounds out of the four millions, part of which may be applied as follows:—
There will then be three hundred sixty thousand pounds left from the four million, and part of that may be used as follows:—
After all the above cases are provided for there will still be a number of families who, though not properly of the class of poor, yet find it difficult to give education to their children; and such children, under such a case, would be in a worse condition than if their parents were actually poor. A nation under a well-regulated government should permit none to remain uninstructed. It is monarchical and aristocratical government only that requires ignorance for its support.
After covering all these situations, there will still be a number of families who, although not truly poor, struggle to provide education for their children. These children, in this situation, would be worse off than if their parents were actually poor. A nation with a well-structured government should not allow anyone to go uneducated. It's only under monarchical and aristocratic governments that ignorance is necessary for support.
Suppose, then, four hundred thousand children to be in this condition, which is a greater number than ought to be supposed after the provisions already made, the method will be:
Suppose there are four hundred thousand children in this situation, which is a larger number than we should expect given the measures that have already been put in place; the approach will be:
To allow for each of those children ten shillings a year for the expense of schooling for six years each, which will give them six months schooling each year, and half a crown a year for paper and spelling books.
To provide each of those children ten shillings a year for schooling expenses over six years, which will amount to six months of schooling each year, along with half a crown a year for paper and spelling books.
There will then remain one hundred and ten thousand pounds.
There will then be one hundred and ten thousand pounds left.
Notwithstanding the great modes of relief which the best instituted and best principled government may devise, there will be a number of smaller cases, which it is good policy as well as beneficence in a nation to consider.
Notwithstanding the excellent ways of relief that a well-structured and well-intentioned government can create, there will still be a number of smaller situations that it's both smart and kind for a nation to address.
Were twenty shillings to be given immediately on the birth of a child, to every woman who should make the demand, and none will make it whose circumstances do not require it, it might relieve a great deal of instant distress.
If twenty shillings were given right when a child is born to every woman who asks for it, and only those who really need it would ask, it could ease a lot of immediate hardship.
There are about two hundred thousand births yearly in England; and if claimed by one fourth,
There are about two hundred thousand births each year in England, and if claimed by one fourth,
The amount would be L50,000
The amount would be £50,000
And twenty shillings to every new-married couple who should claim in like manner. This would not exceed the sum of L20,000.
And twenty shillings to every newly married couple who would claim it in the same way. This would not go over the total of £20,000.
Also twenty thousand pounds to be appropriated to defray the funeral expenses of persons, who, travelling for work, may die at a distance from their friends. By relieving parishes from this charge, the sick stranger will be better treated.
Also, twenty thousand pounds will be allocated to cover the funeral expenses of individuals who may pass away while traveling for work, away from their loved ones. By relieving local communities of this burden, sick travelers will receive better care.
I shall finish this part of the subject with a plan adapted to the particular condition of a metropolis, such as London.
I will wrap up this section of the topic with a plan tailored to the specific situation of a city like London.
Cases are continually occurring in a metropolis, different from those which occur in the country, and for which a different, or rather an additional, mode of relief is necessary. In the country, even in large towns, people have a knowledge of each other, and distress never rises to that extreme height it sometimes does in a metropolis. There is no such thing in the country as persons, in the literal sense of the word, starved to death, or dying with cold from the want of a lodging. Yet such cases, and others equally as miserable, happen in London.
Cases are constantly happening in a big city that are different from those in rural areas, and they require a different, or rather an additional, way to provide help. In the countryside, even in large towns, people know one another, and hardship doesn’t usually reach the extreme levels we sometimes see in a metropolis. There are no cases in the countryside of people literally starving to death or freezing to death due to lack of shelter. However, such situations, along with others just as tragic, occur in London.
Many a youth comes up to London full of expectations, and with little or no money, and unless he get immediate employment he is already half undone; and boys bred up in London without any means of a livelihood, and as it often happens of dissolute parents, are in a still worse condition; and servants long out of place are not much better off. In short, a world of little cases is continually arising, which busy or affluent life knows not of, to open the first door to distress. Hunger is not among the postponable wants, and a day, even a few hours, in such a condition is often the crisis of a life of ruin.
Many young people arrive in London filled with hopes and with little or no money, and unless they find a job right away, they're already at a disadvantage. Boys raised in London without any means to support themselves, often from troubled families, are even worse off. And those who have been out of work for a long time aren't in much better shape. In short, a host of small struggles constantly emerges, which busy or wealthy people are often unaware of, to open the door to hardship. Hunger isn't something you can put off, and a day—sometimes just a few hours—in that situation can often lead to a life of ruin.
These circumstances which are the general cause of the little thefts and pilferings that lead to greater, may be prevented. There yet remain twenty thousand pounds out of the four millions of surplus taxes, which with another fund hereafter to be mentioned, amounting to about twenty thousand pounds more, cannot be better applied than to this purpose. The plan will then be:
These situations, which are the common reason for small thefts and petty crimes that escalate to bigger issues, can be stopped. There are still twenty thousand pounds left from the four million surplus taxes, which along with another fund that will be discussed later, totaling about twenty thousand pounds more, can be put to this use better than any other. The plan will then be:
First, To erect two or more buildings, or take some already erected, capable of containing at least six thousand persons, and to have in each of these places as many kinds of employment as can be contrived, so that every person who shall come may find something which he or she can do.
First, to build two or more buildings, or use some that are already built, that can hold at least six thousand people, and to have as many types of activities in each of these places as possible, so that everyone who comes can find something they can do.
Secondly, To receive all who shall come, without enquiring who or what they are. The only condition to be, that for so much, or so many hours' work, each person shall receive so many meals of wholesome food, and a warm lodging, at least as good as a barrack. That a certain portion of what each person's work shall be worth shall be reserved, and given to him or her, on their going away; and that each person shall stay as long or as short a time, or come as often as he choose, on these conditions.
Secondly, we welcome everyone who comes, without asking who they are or what their story is. The only requirement is that for a certain amount of work, each person will get a set number of meals with healthy food and a comfortable place to stay, at least as good as a barracks. A portion of what each person's work is worth will be set aside and given to them when they leave, and each person can stay as long or as short a time as they want, or come back as often as they choose, under these conditions.
If each person stayed three months, it would assist by rotation twenty-four thousand persons annually, though the real number, at all times, would be but six thousand. By establishing an asylum of this kind, such persons to whom temporary distresses occur, would have an opportunity to recruit themselves, and be enabled to look out for better employment.
If each person stayed for three months, it would help rotate twenty-four thousand people each year, even though the actual number at any time would be just six thousand. By setting up this type of shelter, those who experience temporary hardships would have a chance to recover and be able to look for better job opportunities.
Allowing that their labour paid but one half the expense of supporting them, after reserving a portion of their earnings for themselves, the sum of forty thousand pounds additional would defray all other charges for even a greater number than six thousand.
Allowing that their work covered only half the cost of supporting them, and after setting aside part of their earnings for themselves, an extra sum of forty thousand pounds would cover all other expenses for even more than six thousand people.
The fund very properly convertible to this purpose, in addition to the twenty thousand pounds, remaining of the former fund, will be the produce of the tax upon coals, so iniquitously and wantonly applied to the support of the Duke of Richmond. It is horrid that any man, more especially at the price coals now are, should live on the distresses of a community; and any government permitting such an abuse, deserves to be dismissed. This fund is said to be about twenty thousand pounds per annum.
The fund that can rightfully be used for this purpose, along with the twenty thousand pounds left from the previous fund, will come from the tax on coal, which is so unfairly and recklessly used to support the Duke of Richmond. It's terrible for anyone, especially given how much coal costs now, to benefit from the suffering of a community; and any government that allows such an abuse should be removed. This fund is said to be around twenty thousand pounds a year.
I shall now conclude this plan with enumerating the several particulars, and then proceed to other matters.
I will now finish this plan by listing the various details, and then move on to other topics.
The enumeration is as follows:—
The list is as follows:—
First, Abolition of two millions poor-rates.
First, eliminate two million in poor relief payments.
Secondly, Provision for two hundred and fifty thousand poor families.
Secondly, provision for 250,000 low-income families.
Thirdly, Education for one million and thirty thousand children.
Education for 1,030,000 children.
Fourthly, Comfortable provision for one hundred and forty thousand aged persons.
Fourthly, Comfortable support for one hundred and forty thousand elderly people.
Fifthly, Donation of twenty shillings each for fifty thousand births.
Fifthly, a donation of twenty shillings each for fifty thousand births.
Sixthly, Donation of twenty shillings each for twenty thousand marriages.
Sixth, a donation of twenty shillings each for twenty thousand weddings.
Seventhly, Allowance of twenty thousand pounds for the funeral expenses of persons travelling for work, and dying at a distance from their friends.
Seventhly, an allowance of twenty thousand pounds for the funeral expenses of people traveling for work who die away from their loved ones.
Eighthly, Employment, at all times, for the casual poor in the cities of London and Westminster.
Eighthly, there should always be jobs available for the casual poor in the cities of London and Westminster.
By the operation of this plan, the poor laws, those instruments of civil torture, will be superseded, and the wasteful expense of litigation prevented. The hearts of the humane will not be shocked by ragged and hungry children, and persons of seventy and eighty years of age, begging for bread. The dying poor will not be dragged from place to place to breathe their last, as a reprisal of parish upon parish. Widows will have a maintenance for their children, and not be carted away, on the death of their husbands, like culprits and criminals; and children will no longer be considered as increasing the distresses of their parents. The haunts of the wretched will be known, because it will be to their advantage; and the number of petty crimes, the offspring of distress and poverty, will be lessened. The poor, as well as the rich, will then be interested in the support of government, and the cause and apprehension of riots and tumults will cease.—Ye who sit in ease, and solace yourselves in plenty, and such there are in Turkey and Russia, as well as in England, and who say to yourselves, "Are we not well off?" have ye thought of these things? When ye do, ye will cease to speak and feel for yourselves alone.
By implementing this plan, the outdated poor laws, which act as tools of oppression, will be replaced, and the costly legal battles will be avoided. Compassionate people won’t have to witness ragged, hungry children or seniors in their seventies and eighties begging for food. The dying poor won’t be shuffled from one place to another just to die as a punishment from one parish to another. Widows will receive support for their children instead of being treated like criminals after their husbands pass away, and kids won't be seen as a burden on their parents anymore. The places where the needy gather will be recognized, as it will benefit them, and the number of small crimes born from hardship and poverty will decrease. Both the poor and the rich will then have a stake in supporting the government, and fears of riots and unrest will diminish. —You who live comfortably, indulging in abundance—there are many such individuals in Turkey and Russia, as well as in England—who tell yourselves, "Aren't we doing well?" have you considered these issues? When you do, you’ll stop only thinking and caring about yourselves.
The plan is easy in practice. It does not embarrass trade by a sudden interruption in the order of taxes, but effects the relief by changing the application of them; and the money necessary for the purpose can be drawn from the excise collections, which are made eight times a year in every market town in England.
The plan is simple to implement. It doesn't disrupt trade with a sudden change in the tax order, but provides relief by altering how the taxes are applied; and the funds needed for this can be sourced from the excise collections, which occur eight times a year in every market town across England.
Having now arranged and concluded this subject, I proceed to the next.
Having now organized and wrapped up this topic, I will move on to the next one.
Taking the present current expenses at seven millions and an half, which is the least amount they are now at, there will remain (after the sum of one million and an half be taken for the new current expenses and four millions for the before-mentioned service) the sum of two millions; part of which to be applied as follows:
Taking the current expenses at seven and a half million, which is the lowest amount they are at now, there will be a remainder (after allocating one and a half million for the new current expenses and four million for the previously mentioned service) of two million; part of which will be allocated as follows:
Though fleets and armies, by an alliance with France, will, in a great measure, become useless, yet the persons who have devoted themselves to those services, and have thereby unfitted themselves for other lines of life, are not to be sufferers by the means that make others happy. They are a different description of men from those who form or hang about a court.
Though fleets and armies, through an alliance with France, will largely become ineffective, the individuals who have dedicated themselves to those services and have thus made themselves unsuitable for other paths in life should not suffer because of what brings happiness to others. They are a different kind of people compared to those who are involved with or linger around a court.
A part of the army will remain, at least for some years, and also of the navy, for which a provision is already made in the former part of this plan of one million, which is almost half a million more than the peace establishment of the army and navy in the prodigal times of Charles the Second.
A portion of the army will stay, at least for a few years, along with some of the navy, for which there's already a plan in place for one million, which is nearly half a million more than the peacetime ranks of the army and navy during the extravagant era of Charles the Second.
Suppose, then, fifteen thousand soldiers to be disbanded, and that an allowance be made to each of three shillings a week during life, clear of all deductions, to be paid in the same manner as the Chelsea College pensioners are paid, and for them to return to their trades and their friends; and also that an addition of fifteen thousand sixpences per week be made to the pay of the soldiers who shall remain; the annual expenses will be:
Suppose we disband fifteen thousand soldiers and give each of them an allowance of three shillings a week for life, free of all deductions, paid in the same way as Chelsea College pensioners. They would return to their trades and friends. Additionally, let’s add fifteen thousand sixpences per week to the pay of the soldiers who remain. The annual expenses will be:
To the pay of fifteen thousand disbanded soldiers at three shillings per week L117,000 Additional pay to the remaining soldiers 19,500 Suppose that the pay to the officers of the disbanded corps be the same amount as sum allowed to the men 117,000 ———— L253,500 To prevent bulky estimations, admit the same sum to the disbanded navy as to the army, and the same increase of pay 253,500 ———— Total L507,000
To the pay of fifteen thousand disbanded soldiers at three shillings a week L117,000 Additional pay to the remaining soldiers 19,500 Let's assume that the pay to the officers of the disbanded corps is the same amount as the sum allowed to the men 117,000 ———— L253,500 To avoid large estimates, include the same sum for the disbanded navy as for the army, along with the same pay increase 253,500 ———— Total L507,000
Every year some part of this sum of half a million (I omit the odd seven thousand pounds for the purpose of keeping the account unembarrassed) will fall in, and the whole of it in time, as it is on the ground of life annuities, except the increased pay of twenty-nine thousand pounds. As it falls in, part of the taxes may be taken off; and as, for instance, when thirty thousand pounds fall in, the duty on hops may be wholly taken off; and as other parts fall in, the duties on candles and soap may be lessened, till at last they will totally cease. There now remains at least one million and a half of surplus taxes.
Every year, a portion of this total sum of half a million (I'll skip the extra seven thousand pounds to keep things simple) will come in, and eventually the whole amount will too, since it's based on life annuities, except for the additional pay of twenty-nine thousand pounds. As this money comes in, some of the taxes could be reduced; for instance, when thirty thousand pounds comes in, the tax on hops could be completely eliminated; and as more money comes in, the taxes on candles and soap could be lowered, until eventually, they disappear entirely. There’s still at least one and a half million in surplus taxes left.
The tax on houses and windows is one of those direct taxes, which, like the poor-rates, is not confounded with trade; and, when taken off, the relief will be instantly felt. This tax falls heavy on the middle class of people. The amount of this tax, by the returns of 1788, was:
The tax on houses and windows is one of those direct taxes that, like the poor rates, isn't mixed up with business; and when it's removed, the relief will be felt immediately. This tax hits the middle class particularly hard. According to returns from 1788, the amount of this tax was:
Houses and windows: L s. d. By the act of 1766 385,459 11 7 By the act be 1779 130,739 14 5 1/2 ——————————— Total 516,199 6 0 1/2
Houses and windows: L s. d. By the act of 1766 385,459 11 7 By the act of 1779 130,739 14 5 1/2 ——————————— Total 516,199 6 0 1/2
If this tax be struck off, there will then remain about one million of surplus taxes; and as it is always proper to keep a sum in reserve, for incidental matters, it may be best not to extend reductions further in the first instance, but to consider what may be accomplished by other modes of reform.
If this tax is removed, there will be about one million in surplus taxes left; and since it's always wise to keep some funds in reserve for unexpected expenses, it might be better not to make further reductions right away, but to think about what can be achieved through other forms of reform.
Among the taxes most heavily felt is the commutation tax. I shall therefore offer a plan for its abolition, by substituting another in its place, which will effect three objects at once: 1, that of removing the burthen to where it can best be borne; 2, restoring justice among families by a distribution of property; 3, extirpating the overgrown influence arising from the unnatural law of primogeniture, which is one of the principal sources of corruption at elections. The amount of commutation tax by the returns of 1788, was L771,657.
One of the taxes that people feel the most is the commutation tax. So, I’m going to propose a plan to get rid of it by replacing it with something else that will achieve three goals at once: 1, shifting the burden to where it can be handled best; 2, restoring fairness among families through property distribution; 3, eliminating the excessive influence that comes from the unfair law of primogeniture, which is one of the main causes of corruption in elections. According to the returns from 1788, the total amount of the commutation tax was £771,657.
When taxes are proposed, the country is amused by the plausible language of taxing luxuries. One thing is called a luxury at one time, and something else at another; but the real luxury does not consist in the article, but in the means of procuring it, and this is always kept out of sight.
When taxes are suggested, the nation finds it entertaining to hear the believable talk about taxing luxuries. One thing is labeled a luxury at one moment, and another thing at a different time; however, true luxury doesn’t rely on the item itself, but on the ability to obtain it, and this is consistently hidden from view.
I know not why any plant or herb of the field should be a greater luxury in one country than another; but an overgrown estate in either is a luxury at all times, and, as such, is the proper object of taxation. It is, therefore, right to take those kind tax-making gentlemen up on their own word, and argue on the principle themselves have laid down, that of taxing luxuries. If they or their champion, Mr. Burke, who, I fear, is growing out of date, like the man in armour, can prove that an estate of twenty, thirty, or forty thousand pounds a year is not a luxury, I will give up the argument.
I don’t understand why any plant or herb in the field should be considered a greater luxury in one country than another; however, a large estate in either place is a luxury at all times and should be taxed accordingly. Therefore, it’s reasonable to hold those tax-making gentlemen to their own standards and argue based on the principle they’ve established, which is taxing luxuries. If they or their advocate, Mr. Burke, who I’m afraid is becoming outdated, like a knight in armor, can prove that an estate worth twenty, thirty, or forty thousand pounds a year isn’t a luxury, I’ll concede the argument.
Admitting that any annual sum, say, for instance, one thousand pounds, is necessary or sufficient for the support of a family, consequently the second thousand is of the nature of a luxury, the third still more so, and by proceeding on, we shall at last arrive at a sum that may not improperly be called a prohibitable luxury. It would be impolitic to set bounds to property acquired by industry, and therefore it is right to place the prohibition beyond the probable acquisition to which industry can extend; but there ought to be a limit to property or the accumulation of it by bequest. It should pass in some other line. The richest in every nation have poor relations, and those often very near in consanguinity.
Acknowledging that an annual amount, say one thousand pounds, is necessary or sufficient to support a family, it follows that the second thousand is a luxury, the third even more so, and as we continue this way, we eventually reach an amount that could be considered an excessive luxury. It would be unwise to put limits on wealth obtained through hard work, so it makes sense to set the prohibition beyond what someone can reasonably acquire through their labor; however, there should be a limit on the amount of property or wealth that can be accumulated through inheritance. It should be passed down in a different way. The wealthiest individuals in every country often have relatives who are poor, and those relatives can be quite close in family relation.
The following table of progressive taxation is constructed on the above principles, and as a substitute for the commutation tax. It will reach the point of prohibition by a regular operation, and thereby supersede the aristocratical law of primogeniture.
The table below shows progressive taxation based on the principles mentioned above and serves as a replacement for the commutation tax. It will eliminate the issue through a systematic process, thus replacing the aristocratic law of primogeniture.
TABLE I A tax on all estates of the clear yearly value of L50, after deducting the land tax, and up To L500 0s 3d per pound From L500 to L1,000 0 6 On the second thousand 0 9 On the third " 1 0 On the fourth " 1 6 On the fifth " 2 0 On the sixth " 3 0 On the seventh " 4 0 On the eighth " 5 0 On the ninth " 6s 0d per pound On the tenth " 7 0 On the eleventh " 8 0 On the twelfth " 9 0 On the thirteenth " 10 0 On the fourteenth " 11 0 On the fifteenth " 12 0 On the sixteenth " 13 0 On the seventeenth " 14 0 On the eighteenth " 15 0 On the nineteenth " 16 0 On the twentieth " 17 0 On the twenty-first " 18 0 On the twenty-second " 19 0 On the twenty-third " 20 0
TABLE I A tax on all estates with a clear yearly value of £50, after deducting the land tax, and up To £500 0s 3d per pound From £500 to £1,000 0 6 On the second thousand 0 9 On the third " 1 0 On the fourth " 1 6 On the fifth " 2 0 On the sixth " 3 0 On the seventh " 4 0 On the eighth " 5 0 On the ninth " 6s 0d per pound On the tenth " 7 0 On the eleventh " 8 0 On the twelfth " 9 0 On the thirteenth " 10 0 On the fourteenth " 11 0 On the fifteenth " 12 0 On the sixteenth " 13 0 On the seventeenth " 14 0 On the eighteenth " 15 0 On the nineteenth " 16 0 On the twentieth " 17 0 On the twenty-first " 18 0 On the twenty-second " 19 0 On the twenty-third " 20 0
The foregoing table shows the progression per pound on every progressive thousand. The following table shows the amount of the tax on every thousand separately, and in the last column the total amount of all the separate sums collected.
The table above shows the progression per pound on each thousand. The next table lists the tax amount for every thousand individually, and in the last column, it sums up the total amount collected from all the individual sums.
TABLE II An estate of: L 50 per annum at 3d per pound pays L0 12 6 100 " " " " 1 5 0 200 " " " " 2 10 0 300 " " " " 3 15 0 400 " " " " 5 0 0 500 " " " " 7 5 0
TABLE II An income of: £50 per year at 3d per pound pays £0 12 6 £100 " " " " £1 5 0 £200 " " " " £2 10 0 £300 " " " " £3 15 0 £400 " " " " £5 0 0 £500 " " " " £7 5 0
After L500, the tax of 6d. per pound takes place on the second L500; consequently an estate of L1,000 per annum pays L2l, 15s., and so on.
After £500, the tax of 6d. per pound applies to the second £500; consequently, an estate of £1,000 per year pays £2l, 15s., and so on.
Total amount For the 1st L500 at 0s 3d per pound L7 5s 2nd " 0 6 14 10 L21 15s 2nd 1000 at 0 9 37 11 59 5 3rd " 1 0 50 0 109 5 (Total amount) 4th 1000 at 1s 6d per pound L75 0s L184 5s 5th " 2 0 100 0 284 5 6th " 3 0 150 0 434 5 7th " 4 0 200 0 634 5 8th " 5 0 250 0 880 5 9th " 6 0 300 0 1100 5 10th " 7 0 350 0 1530 5 11th " 8 0 400 0 1930 5 12th " 9 0 450 0 2380 5 13th " 10 0 500 0 2880 5 14th " 11 0 550 0 3430 5 15th " 12 0 600 0 4030 5 16th " 13 0 650 0 4680 5 17th " 14 0 700 0 5380 5 18th " 15 0 750 0 6130 5 19th " 16 0 800 0 6930 5 20th " 17 0 850 0 7780 5 21st " 18 0 900 0 8680 5 (Total amount) 22nd 1000 at 19s 0d per pound L950 0s L9630 5s 23rd " 20 0 1000 0 10630 5
Total amount For the 1st £500 at 0s 3d per pound £7 5s 2nd " 0 6 £14 10 £21 15s 2nd 1000 at 0 9 £37 11 £59 5 3rd " 1 0 £50 0 £109 5 (Total amount) 4th 1000 at 1s 6d per pound £75 0s £184 5s 5th " 2 0 £100 0 £284 5 6th " 3 0 £150 0 £434 5 7th " 4 0 £200 0 £634 5 8th " 5 0 £250 0 £880 5 9th " 6 0 £300 0 £1100 5 10th " 7 0 £350 0 £1530 5 11th " 8 0 £400 0 £1930 5 12th " 9 0 £450 0 £2380 5 13th " 10 0 £500 0 £2880 5 14th " 11 0 £550 0 £3430 5 15th " 12 0 £600 0 £4030 5 16th " 13 0 £650 0 £4680 5 17th " 14 0 £700 0 £5380 5 18th " 15 0 £750 0 £6130 5 19th " 16 0 £800 0 £6930 5 20th " 17 0 £850 0 £7780 5 21st " 18 0 £900 0 £8680 5 (Total amount) 22nd 1000 at 19s 0d per pound £950 0s £9630 5s 23rd " 20 0 £1000 0 £10630 5
At the twenty-third thousand the tax becomes 20s. in the pound, and consequently every thousand beyond that sum can produce no profit but by dividing the estate. Yet formidable as this tax appears, it will not, I believe, produce so much as the commutation tax; should it produce more, it ought to be lowered to that amount upon estates under two or three thousand a year.
At the twenty-third thousand, the tax is 20 shillings per pound, so every thousand beyond that doesn’t generate any profit unless the estate is divided. However, as daunting as this tax seems, I believe it won't raise as much as the commutation tax; if it does raise more, then it should be reduced to that level for estates earning under two or three thousand a year.
On small and middling estates it is lighter (as it is intended to be) than the commutation tax. It is not till after seven or eight thousand a year that it begins to be heavy. The object is not so much the produce of the tax as the justice of the measure. The aristocracy has screened itself too much, and this serves to restore a part of the lost equilibrium.
On small and medium estates, it's lighter (as it's meant to be) than the commutation tax. It only starts to feel heavy after you hit around seven or eight thousand a year. The goal isn't just to raise tax revenue, but to achieve fairness with this measure. The aristocracy has hidden itself too much, and this helps to restore some of the lost balance.
As an instance of its screening itself, it is only necessary to look back to the first establishment of the excise laws, at what is called the Restoration, or the coming of Charles the Second. The aristocratical interest then in power, commuted the feudal services itself was under, by laying a tax on beer brewed for sale; that is, they compounded with Charles for an exemption from those services for themselves and their heirs, by a tax to be paid by other people. The aristocracy do not purchase beer brewed for sale, but brew their own beer free of the duty, and if any commutation at that time were necessary, it ought to have been at the expense of those for whom the exemptions from those services were intended;*37 instead of which, it was thrown on an entirely different class of men.
As an example of its own screening, we only need to look back at the establishment of the excise laws during the Restoration, or the arrival of Charles the Second. The aristocratic powers at that time exchanged the feudal obligations they were under by imposing a tax on beer sold commercially; in essence, they struck a deal with Charles to be freed from those obligations for themselves and their descendants, by having others pay a tax instead. The aristocracy doesn’t buy commercially brewed beer but brews their own without the tax, and if any arrangement was necessary at that time, it should have affected the individuals for whom the exemptions were meant,*37 rather than being imposed on a completely different group of people.
But the chief object of this progressive tax (besides the justice of rendering taxes more equal than they are) is, as already stated, to extirpate the overgrown influence arising from the unnatural law of primogeniture, and which is one of the principal sources of corruption at elections.
But the main goal of this progressive tax (besides making taxes fairer) is, as mentioned earlier, to eliminate the excessive influence that comes from the unfair law of primogeniture, which is one of the key sources of corruption in elections.
It would be attended with no good consequences to enquire how such vast estates as thirty, forty, or fifty thousand a year could commence, and that at a time when commerce and manufactures were not in a state to admit of such acquisitions. Let it be sufficient to remedy the evil by putting them in a condition of descending again to the community by the quiet means of apportioning them among all the heirs and heiresses of those families. This will be the more necessary, because hitherto the aristocracy have quartered their younger children and connections upon the public in useless posts, places and offices, which when abolished will leave them destitute, unless the law of primogeniture be also abolished or superseded.
It wouldn't lead to any good outcomes to question how such large estates of thirty, forty, or fifty thousand a year could have started, especially during a time when trade and industry weren't in a position to support such wealth. It's enough to fix the problem by allowing them to be shared among all the heirs and heiresses of those families. This is even more crucial because up until now, the aristocracy has offloaded their younger children and relatives onto the public in useless positions, which, if eliminated, will leave them in need unless the law of primogeniture is also changed or replaced.
A progressive tax will, in a great measure, effect this object, and that as a matter of interest to the parties most immediately concerned, as will be seen by the following table; which shows the net produce upon every estate, after subtracting the tax. By this it will appear that after an estate exceeds thirteen or fourteen thousand a year, the remainder produces but little profit to the holder, and consequently, Will pass either to the younger children, or to other kindred.
A progressive tax will largely achieve this goal, which is important for the parties most directly involved, as shown in the following table; it displays the net earnings from each estate after the tax is deducted. It will be evident that once an estate exceeds thirteen or fourteen thousand a year, the remaining income provides very little benefit to the owner and will, therefore, likely be passed on to younger children or other relatives.
TABLE III Showing the net produce of every estate from one thousand to twenty-three thousand pounds a year No of thousand Total tax per annum subtracted Net produce L1000 L21 L979 2000 59 1941 3000 109 2891 4000 184 3816 5000 284 4716 6000 434 5566 7000 634 6366 8000 880 7120 9000 1100 7900 10,000 1530 8470 11,000 1930 9070 12,000 2380 9620 13,000 2880 10,120 (No of thousand (Total tax per annum) subtracted) (Net produce) 14,000 3430 10,570 15,000 4030 10,970 16,000 4680 11,320 17,000 5380 11,620 18,000 6130 11,870 19,000 6930 12,170 20,000 7780 12,220 21,000 8680 12,320 22,000 9630 12,370 23,000 10,630 12,370
TABLE III Showing the net income of every estate from one thousand to twenty-three thousand pounds a year No of thousand Total tax per annum deducted Net income L1000 L21 L979 2000 59 1941 3000 109 2891 4000 184 3816 5000 284 4716 6000 434 5566 7000 634 6366 8000 880 7120 9000 1100 7900 10,000 1530 8470 11,000 1930 9070 12,000 2380 9620 13,000 2880 10,120 (No of thousand (Total tax per annum) deducted) (Net income) 14,000 3430 10,570 15,000 4030 10,970 16,000 4680 11,320 17,000 5380 11,620 18,000 6130 11,870 19,000 6930 12,170 20,000 7780 12,220 21,000 8680 12,320 22,000 9630 12,370 23,000 10,630 12,370
N.B. The odd shillings are dropped in this table.
N.B. The odd shillings are excluded from this table.
According to this table, an estate cannot produce more than L12,370 clear of the land tax and the progressive tax, and therefore the dividing such estates will follow as a matter of family interest. An estate of L23,000 a year, divided into five estates of four thousand each and one of three, will be charged only L1,129 which is but five per cent., but if held by one possessor, will be charged L10,630.
According to this table, an estate can’t generate more than £12,370 after land tax and the progressive tax. Therefore, dividing such estates will be based on family interests. An estate of £23,000 a year, split into five estates of £4,000 each and one of £3,000, will only incur a charge of £1,129, which is just five percent. However, if owned by one person, it will be charged £10,630.
Although an enquiry into the origin of those estates be unnecessary, the continuation of them in their present state is another subject. It is a matter of national concern. As hereditary estates, the law has created the evil, and it ought also to provide the remedy. Primogeniture ought to be abolished, not only because it is unnatural and unjust, but because the country suffers by its operation. By cutting off (as before observed) the younger children from their proper portion of inheritance, the public is loaded with the expense of maintaining them; and the freedom of elections violated by the overbearing influence which this unjust monopoly of family property produces. Nor is this all. It occasions a waste of national property. A considerable part of the land of the country is rendered unproductive, by the great extent of parks and chases which this law serves to keep up, and this at a time when the annual production of grain is not equal to the national consumption.*38—In short, the evils of the aristocratical system are so great and numerous, so inconsistent with every thing that is just, wise, natural, and beneficent, that when they are considered, there ought not to be a doubt that many, who are now classed under that description, will wish to see such a system abolished.
Although looking into the origin of those estates isn't necessary, keeping them in their current form is a different issue. It's a matter of national importance. As hereditary estates, the law has created a problem, and it should also provide a solution. Primogeniture should be abolished, not just because it's unnatural and unfair, but also because the country suffers from its effects. By excluding younger children from their fair share of inheritance, the public bears the cost of supporting them, and the integrity of elections is compromised by the excessive influence that this unfair concentration of family wealth creates. But that’s not all. It leads to a waste of national resources. A significant portion of the country's land is left unproductive due to the large areas of parks and preserves maintained by this law, especially now when the annual grain production doesn't meet the national demand.*38—In short, the problems associated with the aristocratic system are vast and numerous, completely at odds with everything that is fair, wise, natural, and beneficial, so when considered, there should be no doubt that many people classified under that system will want to see it ended.
What pleasure can they derive from contemplating the exposed condition, and almost certain beggary of their younger offspring? Every aristocratical family has an appendage of family beggars hanging round it, which in a few ages, or a few generations, are shook off, and console themselves with telling their tale in almshouses, workhouses, and prisons. This is the natural consequence of aristocracy. The peer and the beggar are often of the same family. One extreme produces the other: to make one rich many must be made poor; neither can the system be supported by other means.
What pleasure can they get from seeing the exposed situation and almost certain poverty of their younger family members? Every aristocratic family has a group of family beggars hanging around it, which over a few generations, are cast off and find solace in sharing their story in almshouses, workhouses, and prisons. This is the natural outcome of aristocracy. The noble and the beggar often come from the same family. One extreme leads to the other: to make one person rich, many must be made poor; and this system cannot be sustained by any other means.
There are two classes of people to whom the laws of England are particularly hostile, and those the most helpless; younger children, and the poor. Of the former I have just spoken; of the latter I shall mention one instance out of the many that might be produced, and with which I shall close this subject.
There are two groups of people that the laws of England are especially unfriendly to, and those are the most vulnerable: young children and the poor. I have just talked about the first group; now I will highlight one example from the many that could be given regarding the second group, which will conclude this topic.
Several laws are in existence for regulating and limiting work-men's wages. Why not leave them as free to make their own bargains, as the law-makers are to let their farms and houses? Personal labour is all the property they have. Why is that little, and the little freedom they enjoy, to be infringed? But the injustice will appear stronger, if we consider the operation and effect of such laws. When wages are fixed by what is called a law, the legal wages remain stationary, while every thing else is in progression; and as those who make that law still continue to lay on new taxes by other laws, they increase the expense of living by one law, and take away the means by another.
Several laws exist to regulate and limit workers' wages. Why not let them freely negotiate their own deals, just like lawmakers can rent out their farms and homes? Personal labor is all the property they have. Why should that little bit of freedom they enjoy be restricted? The injustice becomes clearer when we consider how these laws operate and their effects. When wages are set by what's called a law, the legal wages stay the same while everything else keeps rising. Meanwhile, those who create those laws continue to impose new taxes through other laws, increasing the cost of living with one law while taking away means with another.
But if these gentlemen law-makers and tax-makers thought it right to limit the poor pittance which personal labour can produce, and on which a whole family is to be supported, they certainly must feel themselves happily indulged in a limitation on their own part, of not less than twelve thousand a-year, and that of property they never acquired (nor probably any of their ancestors), and of which they have made never acquire so ill a use.
But if these lawmakers and tax officials think it's appropriate to limit the small amount of income that personal labor can generate, which is supposed to support an entire family, then they must certainly feel fortunate to have limited themselves to no less than twelve thousand a year, despite not having earned that property (nor likely any of their ancestors) and of which they have made such a poor use.
Having now finished this subject, I shall bring the several particulars into one view, and then proceed to other matters.
Having now completed this topic, I will summarize the various details and then move on to other matters.
The first eight articles, mentioned earlier, are;
The first eight articles mentioned earlier are:
1. Abolition of two millions poor-rates.
1. Elimination of two million in welfare taxes.
2. Provision for two hundred and fifty-two thousand poor families, at the rate of four pounds per head for each child under fourteen years of age; which, with the addition of two hundred and fifty thousand pounds, provides also education for one million and thirty thousand children.
2. Support for two hundred and fifty-two thousand low-income families, at the rate of four pounds for each child under fourteen years old; this, along with an additional two hundred and fifty thousand pounds, also funds education for one million and thirty thousand children.
3. Annuity of six pounds (per annum) each for all poor persons, decayed tradesmen, and others (supposed seventy thousand) of the age of fifty years, and until sixty.
3. A yearly payment of six pounds for all impoverished individuals, struggling tradespeople, and others (estimated at seventy thousand) aged fifty and up to sixty.
4. Annuity of ten pounds each for life for all poor persons, decayed tradesmen, and others (supposed seventy thousand) of the age of sixty years.
4. An annuity of ten pounds each for life for all poor individuals, retired tradespeople, and others (estimated to be seventy thousand) who are sixty years old.
5. Donation of twenty shillings each for fifty thousand births.
5. Donation of twenty shillings each for fifty thousand births.
6. Donation of twenty shillings each for twenty thousand marriages.
6. A donation of twenty shillings each for twenty thousand marriages.
7. Allowance of twenty thousand pounds for the funeral expenses of persons travelling for work, and dying at a distance from their friends.
7. A budget of twenty thousand pounds for the funeral expenses of individuals who are traveling for work and pass away far from their loved ones.
8. Employment at all times for the casual poor in the cities of London and Westminster.
8. Job opportunities available at all times for the occasional low-income individuals in the cities of London and Westminster.
Second Enumeration
Second Count
9. Abolition of the tax on houses and windows.
9. Elimination of the tax on homes and windows.
10. Allowance of three shillings per week for life to fifteen thousand disbanded soldiers, and a proportionate allowance to the officers of the disbanded corps.
10. A weekly allowance of three shillings for life to fifteen thousand retired soldiers, and a corresponding allowance for the officers of the retired units.
11. Increase of pay to the remaining soldiers of L19,500 annually.
11. Raise pay for the remaining soldiers to £19,500 per year.
12. The same allowance to the disbanded navy, and the same increase of pay, as to the army.
12. The same compensation for the disbanded navy, and the same pay increase, as for the army.
13. Abolition of the commutation tax.
13. Elimination of the commutation tax.
14. Plan of a progressive tax, operating to extirpate the unjust and unnatural law of primogeniture, and the vicious influence of the aristocratical system.*39
14. A plan for a progressive tax that aims to eliminate the unfair and outdated law of primogeniture, along with the negative effects of the aristocratic system.*39
There yet remains, as already stated, one million of surplus taxes. Some part of this will be required for circumstances that do not immediately present themselves, and such part as shall not be wanted, will admit of a further reduction of taxes equal to that amount.
There is still, as mentioned earlier, one million in surplus taxes. Some of this will be needed for unforeseen circumstances, and any portion that isn’t needed can be used to further reduce taxes by that same amount.
Among the claims that justice requires to be made, the condition of the inferior revenue-officers will merit attention. It is a reproach to any government to waste such an immensity of revenue in sinecures and nominal and unnecessary places and officers, and not allow even a decent livelihood to those on whom the labour falls. The salary of the inferior officers of the revenue has stood at the petty pittance of less than fifty pounds a year for upwards of one hundred years. It ought to be seventy. About one hundred and twenty thousand pounds applied to this purpose, will put all those salaries in a decent condition.
Among the claims that justice requires to be made, the situation of the lower revenue officers deserves attention. It’s shameful for any government to waste so much revenue on unnecessary positions and roles while not providing a decent living for the workers who carry the burden. For over a hundred years, the salary of these lower revenue officers has been a meager less than fifty pounds a year. It should be seventy. Allocating about one hundred twenty thousand pounds for this purpose would ensure all those salaries are in a reasonable condition.
This was proposed to be done almost twenty years ago, but the treasury-board then in being, startled at it, as it might lead to similar expectations from the army and navy; and the event was, that the King, or somebody for him, applied to parliament to have his own salary raised an hundred thousand pounds a year, which being done, every thing else was laid aside.
This was suggested almost twenty years ago, but the treasury board at the time was taken aback by it, fearing it might create similar demands from the army and navy. As a result, the King, or someone acting on his behalf, asked Parliament to increase his own salary by one hundred thousand pounds a year. Once that was approved, everything else was put on hold.
With respect to another class of men, the inferior clergy, I forbear to enlarge on their condition; but all partialities and prejudices for, or against, different modes and forms of religion aside, common justice will determine, whether there ought to be an income of twenty or thirty pounds a year to one man, and of ten thousand to another. I speak on this subject with the more freedom, because I am known not to be a Presbyterian; and therefore the cant cry of court sycophants, about church and meeting, kept up to amuse and bewilder the nation, cannot be raised against me.
Regarding another group of people, the lower clergy, I won’t elaborate on their situation; however, setting aside any biases for or against different types of religion, basic fairness will decide whether one person should earn twenty or thirty pounds a year while another earns ten thousand. I discuss this topic more openly because I'm not a Presbyterian, so the usual rhetoric from government flatterers about church and gatherings, which is used to distract and confuse the public, won't apply to me.
Ye simple men on both sides the question, do you not see through this courtly craft? If ye can be kept disputing and wrangling about church and meeting, ye just answer the purpose of every courtier, who lives the while on the spoils of the taxes, and laughs at your credulity. Every religion is good that teaches man to be good; and I know of none that instructs him to be bad.
You simple people on both sides of the issue, don’t you see through this tricky game? If you keep arguing and fighting over church and meetings, you’re just playing into the hands of every courtier who profits from the taxes and laughs at your gullibility. Every religion is good if it teaches people to be good, and I don’t know of any that tells them to be bad.
All the before-mentioned calculations suppose only sixteen millions and an half of taxes paid into the exchequer, after the expense of collection and drawbacks at the custom-house and excise-office are deducted; whereas the sum paid into the exchequer is very nearly, if not quite, seventeen millions. The taxes raised in Scotland and Ireland are expended in those countries, and therefore their savings will come out of their own taxes; but if any part be paid into the English exchequer, it might be remitted. This will not make one hundred thousand pounds a year difference.
All the calculations mentioned before assume that only sixteen and a half million in taxes are paid into the treasury, after deducting collection costs and refunds at the customs and excise offices; however, the actual amount paid into the treasury is very close to, if not exactly, seventeen million. The taxes collected in Scotland and Ireland are spent in those countries, so their savings will come from their own taxes; but if any portion is sent to the English treasury, it could be returned. This won't result in a difference of more than one hundred thousand pounds a year.
There now remains only the national debt to be considered. In the year 1789, the interest, exclusive of the tontine, was L9,150,138. How much the capital has been reduced since that time the minister best knows. But after paying the interest, abolishing the tax on houses and windows, the commutation tax, and the poor-rates; and making all the provisions for the poor, for the education of children, the support of the aged, the disbanded part of the army and navy, and increasing the pay of the remainder, there will be a surplus of one million.
There’s only the national debt left to discuss. In 1789, the interest, not including the tontine, was £9,150,138. The minister knows best how much the capital has been reduced since then. However, after paying the interest, eliminating the tax on homes and windows, the commutation tax, and the poor-rates; and making provisions for the poor, for children's education, for supporting the elderly, for the disbanded army and navy, and increasing the pay for the remaining troops, there will be a surplus of one million.
The present scheme of paying off the national debt appears to me, speaking as an indifferent person, to be an ill-concerted, if not a fallacious job. The burthen of the national debt consists not in its being so many millions, or so many hundred millions, but in the quantity of taxes collected every year to pay the interest. If this quantity continues the same, the burthen of the national debt is the same to all intents and purposes, be the capital more or less. The only knowledge which the public can have of the reduction of the debt, must be through the reduction of taxes for paying the interest. The debt, therefore, is not reduced one farthing to the public by all the millions that have been paid; and it would require more money now to purchase up the capital, than when the scheme began.
The current plan for paying off the national debt seems, to me as an impartial observer, poorly thought out, if not misleading. The burden of the national debt isn’t really about the total amount, whether it’s millions or hundreds of millions, but rather about the amount of taxes collected each year to cover the interest. If that amount stays the same, the burden of the national debt remains unchanged for all practical purposes, regardless of how much capital there is. The only way the public can see the debt being reduced is through lower taxes on interest payments. So, in reality, the public hasn’t seen a decrease in the debt at all from all the millions that have been paid; it would actually take more money now to buy back the capital than when the plan started.
Digressing for a moment at this point, to which I shall return again, I look back to the appointment of Mr. Pitt, as minister.
Digressing for a moment here, which I'll come back to, I reflect on the appointment of Mr. Pitt as minister.
I was then in America. The war was over; and though resentment had ceased, memory was still alive.
I was in America then. The war was over, and even though the anger had faded, the memories were still strong.
When the news of the coalition arrived, though it was a matter of no concern to I felt it as a man. It had something in it which shocked, by publicly sporting with decency, if not with principle. It was impudence in Lord North; it was a want of firmness in Mr. Fox.
When the news of the coalition came in, even though it didn’t really concern me, I felt it as a person. There was something about it that was shocking, as it openly played with decency, if not with principles. It showed Lord North's arrogance; it demonstrated a lack of resolve in Mr. Fox.
Mr. Pitt was, at that time, what may be called a maiden character in politics. So far from being hackneyed, he appeared not to be initiated into the first mysteries of court intrigue. Everything was in his favour. Resentment against the coalition served as friendship to him, and his ignorance of vice was credited for virtue. With the return of peace, commerce and prosperity would rise of itself; yet even this increase was thrown to his account.
Mr. Pitt was, at that time, what you might call a newcomer in politics. Far from being worn out, he seemed not to be in the know about the first secrets of court intrigue. Everything was working in his favor. Resentment against the coalition acted like friendship for him, and his lack of knowledge about wrongdoing was taken as a sign of goodness. With the return of peace, trade and prosperity would rise on their own; yet even this growth was credited to him.
When he came to the helm, the storm was over, and he had nothing to interrupt his course. It required even ingenuity to be wrong, and he succeeded. A little time showed him the same sort of man as his predecessors had been. Instead of profiting by those errors which had accumulated a burthen of taxes unparalleled in the world, he sought, I might almost say, he advertised for enemies, and provoked means to increase taxation. Aiming at something, he knew not what, he ransacked Europe and India for adventures, and abandoning the fair pretensions he began with, he became the knight-errant of modern times.
When he took charge, the storm had passed, and nothing was in his way. It even took some creativity to mess things up, yet he managed to do just that. Before long, it became clear he was just like his predecessors. Rather than learning from the mistakes that had piled up and led to an unprecedented tax burden, he seemed to be actively looking for enemies and trying to raise taxes even more. Chasing after some vague goal, he searched Europe and India for new challenges, and instead of sticking to the noble ideals he started with, he turned into the modern-day knight-errant.
It is unpleasant to see character throw itself away. It is more so to see one's-self deceived. Mr. Pitt had merited nothing, but he promised much. He gave symptoms of a mind superior to the meanness and corruption of courts. His apparent candour encouraged expectations; and the public confidence, stunned, wearied, and confounded by a chaos of parties, revived and attached itself to him. But mistaking, as he has done, the disgust of the nation against the coalition, for merit in himself, he has rushed into measures which a man less supported would not have presumed to act.
It's disappointing to see someone throw away their integrity. It's even worse to feel deceived. Mr. Pitt had done nothing to deserve our trust, but he promised a lot. He showed signs of having a mind above the dishonesty and corruption of the political world. His apparent honesty raised our hopes, and the public, feeling overwhelmed, exhausted, and confused by a chaotic mix of parties, began to rally around him. But by wrongly interpreting the public's disdain for the coalition as a sign of his own worth, he has taken bold actions that someone with less backing would never have dared to try.
All this seems to show that change of ministers amounts to nothing. One goes out, another comes in, and still the same measures, vices, and extravagance are pursued. It signifies not who is minister. The defect lies in the system. The foundation and the superstructure of the government is bad. Prop it as you please, it continually sinks into court government, and ever will.
All this seems to show that changing ministers doesn’t really matter. One leaves, another takes their place, and yet the same policies, corruption, and excess continue. It doesn’t matter who the minister is. The problem is with the system. The foundation and the structure of the government are flawed. No matter how you try to support it, it will always revert to being controlled by the court, and it always will.
I return, as I promised, to the subject of the national debt, that offspring of the Dutch-Anglo revolution, and its handmaid the Hanover succession.
I’m coming back, as I promised, to the topic of the national debt, that product of the Dutch-Anglo revolution, and its companion, the Hanover succession.
But it is now too late to enquire how it began. Those to whom it is due have advanced the money; and whether it was well or ill spent, or pocketed, is not their crime. It is, however, easy to see, that as the nation proceeds in contemplating the nature and principles of government, and to understand taxes, and make comparisons between those of America, France, and England, it will be next to impossible to keep it in the same torpid state it has hitherto been. Some reform must, from the necessity of the case, soon begin. It is not whether these principles press with little or much force in the present moment. They are out. They are abroad in the world, and no force can stop them. Like a secret told, they are beyond recall; and he must be blind indeed that does not see that a change is already beginning.
But now it's too late to ask how it all started. Those responsible have already funded it; whether the money was well spent, wasted, or pocketed isn’t their fault. However, it's clear that as the nation continues to think about the nature and principles of government, and begins to understand taxes, making comparisons between those of America, France, and England, it will be nearly impossible to keep things in the same stagnant state they've been in. Some reform must, by necessity, start soon. It's not about whether these principles act with little or great force right now. They're out there. They're in the world, and no power can stop them. Like a secret revealed, they're beyond retrieval; and anyone who doesn’t see that change is already underway must be truly blind.
Nine millions of dead taxes is a serious thing; and this not only for bad, but in a great measure for foreign government. By putting the power of making war into the hands of the foreigners who came for what they could get, little else was to be expected than what has happened.
Nine million dead from taxes is a serious issue; and this is not only because of mismanagement, but largely due to foreign control. By giving the power to wage war to foreigners who came for their own gain, it’s no surprise that things turned out as they have.
Reasons are already advanced in this work, showing that whatever the reforms in the taxes may be, they ought to be made in the current expenses of government, and not in the part applied to the interest of the national debt. By remitting the taxes of the poor, they will be totally relieved, and all discontent will be taken away; and by striking off such of the taxes as are already mentioned, the nation will more than recover the whole expense of the mad American war.
Reasons have already been discussed in this work, indicating that any reforms in taxes should focus on the current expenses of the government rather than the portion that goes toward the national debt. By eliminating taxes on the poor, they will be fully relieved, and all dissatisfaction will disappear; and by removing the aforementioned taxes, the nation will more than cover the entire cost of the disastrous American war.
There will then remain only the national debt as a subject of discontent; and in order to remove, or rather to prevent this, it would be good policy in the stockholders themselves to consider it as property, subject like all other property, to bear some portion of the taxes. It would give to it both popularity and security, and as a great part of its present inconvenience is balanced by the capital which it keeps alive, a measure of this kind would so far add to that balance as to silence objections.
There will only be the national debt left as a topic of dissatisfaction; to address, or rather to avoid this, it would be wise for the stockholders to view it as an asset, just like any other property, which should contribute a portion of the taxes. This would enhance both its popularity and security, and since much of its current drawbacks is offset by the capital it sustains, a measure like this would further improve that balance and quiet objections.
This may be done by such gradual means as to accomplish all that is necessary with the greatest ease and convenience.
This can be achieved through gradual methods that make it easy and convenient to get everything done.
Instead of taxing the capital, the best method would be to tax the interest by some progressive ratio, and to lessen the public taxes in the same proportion as the interest diminished.
Instead of taxing the capital, a better approach would be to tax the interest at a progressive rate and reduce public taxes by the same amount that the interest decreases.
Suppose the interest was taxed one halfpenny in the pound the first year, a penny more the second, and to proceed by a certain ratio to be determined upon, always less than any other tax upon property. Such a tax would be subtracted from the interest at the time of payment, without any expense of collection.
Suppose the interest was taxed half a penny per pound in the first year, a penny more in the second, and then adjusted by a set ratio that’s always less than any other property tax. This tax would be deducted from the interest when paid, with no collection costs involved.
One halfpenny in the pound would lessen the interest and consequently the taxes, twenty thousand pounds. The tax on wagons amounts to this sum, and this tax might be taken off the first year. The second year the tax on female servants, or some other of the like amount might also be taken off, and by proceeding in this manner, always applying the tax raised from the property of the debt toward its extinction, and not carry it to the current services, it would liberate itself.
One halfpenny per pound would reduce the interest and, as a result, the taxes by twenty thousand pounds. The tax on wagons totals this amount, and this tax could be eliminated in the first year. In the second year, the tax on female servants or another similar tax could also be removed. By continuing in this way and always using the tax revenue from the property of the debt to pay it off rather than for current expenses, it would free itself.
The stockholders, notwithstanding this tax, would pay less taxes than they do now. What they would save by the extinction of the poor-rates, and the tax on houses and windows, and the commutation tax, would be considerably greater than what this tax, slow, but certain in its operation, amounts to.
The shareholders, despite this tax, would pay less tax than they currently do. What they would save by eliminating the poor rates, the tax on houses and windows, and the commutation tax would be significantly more than what this tax, which is slow but certain in its effect, adds up to.
It appears to me to be prudence to look out for measures that may apply under any circumstances that may approach. There is, at this moment, a crisis in the affairs of Europe that requires it. Preparation now is wisdom. If taxation be once let loose, it will be difficult to re-instate it; neither would the relief be so effectual, as if it proceeded by some certain and gradual reduction.
It seems wise to consider actions that could be relevant for any upcoming situations. Right now, there’s a crisis in Europe that calls for this. Preparing now is smart. If taxes are allowed to rise unchecked, it will be tough to bring them back down; plus, relief wouldn’t be as effective as if it came from a clear and gradual reduction.
The fraud, hypocrisy, and imposition of governments, are now beginning to be too well understood to promise them any long career. The farce of monarchy and aristocracy, in all countries, is following that of chivalry, and Mr. Burke is dressing aristocracy, in all countries, is following that of chivalry, and Mr. Burke is dressing for the funeral. Let it then pass quietly to the tomb of all other follies, and the mourners be comforted.
The deception, hypocrisy, and oppression of governments are starting to be too obvious to ensure them a long life. The joke of monarchy and aristocracy, in every country, is following the decline of chivalry, and Mr. Burke is preparing for the funeral of aristocracy. Let it then quietly be laid to rest alongside all other foolishness, and let the mourners find comfort.
The time is not very distant when England will laugh at itself for sending to Holland, Hanover, Zell, or Brunswick for men, at the expense of a million a year, who understood neither her laws, her language, nor her interest, and whose capacities would scarcely have fitted them for the office of a parish constable. If government could be trusted to such hands, it must be some easy and simple thing indeed, and materials fit for all the purposes may be found in every town and village in England.
The time isn’t too far off when England will chuckle at itself for hiring people from Holland, Hanover, Zell, or Brunswick at the cost of a million a year—people who didn’t understand its laws, language, or interests, and whose skills barely qualified them for the job of a local constable. If the government could be managed by such people, it must be a pretty straightforward task, and you could find capable candidates in every town and village across England.
When it shall be said in any country in the world, my poor are happy; neither ignorance nor distress is to be found among them; my jails are empty of prisoners, my streets of beggars; the aged are not in want, the taxes are not oppressive; the rational world is my friend, because I am the friend of its happiness: when these things can be said, then may that country boast its constitution and its government.
When it can be said in any country in the world that my poor are happy; there is neither ignorance nor suffering among them; my jails are empty of prisoners, my streets are free of beggars; the elderly are not in need, and taxes are not burdensome; the thinking world is my ally because I support its happiness: when these things can be said, then that country can proudly claim its constitution and its government.
Within the space of a few years we have seen two revolutions, those of America and France. In the former, the contest was long, and the conflict severe; in the latter, the nation acted with such a consolidated impulse, that having no foreign enemy to contend with, the revolution was complete in power the moment it appeared. From both those instances it is evident, that the greatest forces that can be brought into the field of revolutions, are reason and common interest. Where these can have the opportunity of acting, opposition dies with fear, or crumbles away by conviction. It is a great standing which they have now universally obtained; and we may hereafter hope to see revolutions, or changes in governments, produced with the same quiet operation by which any measure, determinable by reason and discussion, is accomplished.
In just a few years, we've witnessed two revolutions: those in America and France. In America, the struggle was lengthy and intense; in France, the nation moved with such a united force that, with no foreign enemy to fight, the revolution achieved power as soon as it began. These examples show that the strongest forces in revolutions are reason and common interest. When these can act freely, resistance fades away in fear or dissolves through understanding. They now have a strong, universal presence, and we can hope to see future revolutions or government changes happen with the same smooth process as any decision reached through reason and discussion.
When a nation changes its opinion and habits of thinking, it is no longer to be governed as before; but it would not only be wrong, but bad policy, to attempt by force what ought to be accomplished by reason. Rebellion consists in forcibly opposing the general will of a nation, whether by a party or by a government. There ought, therefore, to be in every nation a method of occasionally ascertaining the state of public opinion with respect to government. On this point the old government of France was superior to the present government of England, because, on extraordinary occasions, recourse could be had what was then called the States General. But in England there are no such occasional bodies; and as to those who are now called Representatives, a great part of them are mere machines of the court, placemen, and dependants.
When a country changes its views and ways of thinking, it can’t be ruled the same way as before; however, it would be not only wrong but also poor strategy to use force for what should be achieved through reason. Rebellion is about violently opposing the general will of the country, whether by a political group or the government itself. Therefore, every nation should have a way to periodically gauge public opinion regarding the government. In this regard, the old government of France was better than the current government of England, as they could rely on what was called the States General during extraordinary times. But in England, there are no such temporary assemblies; and many of those now known as Representatives are simply tools of the court, government appointees, and dependents.
I presume, that though all the people of England pay taxes, not an hundredth part of them are electors, and the members of one of the houses of parliament represent nobody but themselves. There is, therefore, no power but the voluntary will of the people that has a right to act in any matter respecting a general reform; and by the same right that two persons can confer on such a subject, a thousand may. The object, in all such preliminary proceedings, is to find out what the general sense of a nation is, and to be governed by it. If it prefer a bad or defective government to a reform or choose to pay ten times more taxes than there is any occasion for, it has a right so to do; and so long as the majority do not impose conditions on the minority, different from what they impose upon themselves, though there may be much error, there is no injustice. Neither will the error continue long. Reason and discussion will soon bring things right, however wrong they may begin. By such a process no tumult is to be apprehended. The poor, in all countries, are naturally both peaceable and grateful in all reforms in which their interest and happiness is included. It is only by neglecting and rejecting them that they become tumultuous.
I assume that even though everyone in England pays taxes, only a tiny fraction of them can vote, and the members of one of the houses of parliament only represent themselves. Therefore, the only authority that has the right to act regarding any general reform is the voluntary will of the people. Just as two individuals can agree on this matter, so can a thousand. The goal of these preliminary actions is to determine the overall sentiment of the nation and to follow it. If the nation prefers a flawed government over reform or chooses to pay excessively high taxes without reason, they have the right to do so. As long as the majority doesn't impose conditions on the minority that they don't apply to themselves, there's no injustice, even if there is much error. This error won't last long. Reason and discussion will eventually set things right, no matter how incorrect they may start out. Through this process, there’s no need to fear chaos. The poor in every country are naturally peaceful and appreciative of reforms that enhance their interests and happiness. It’s only when they are neglected and dismissed that they become disorderly.
The objects that now press on the public attention are, the French revolution, and the prospect of a general revolution in governments. Of all nations in Europe there is none so much interested in the French revolution as England. Enemies for ages, and that at a vast expense, and without any national object, the opportunity now presents itself of amicably closing the scene, and joining their efforts to reform the rest of Europe. By doing this they will not only prevent the further effusion of blood, and increase of taxes, but be in a condition of getting rid of a considerable part of their present burthens, as has been already stated. Long experience however has shown, that reforms of this kind are not those which old governments wish to promote, and therefore it is to nations, and not to such governments, that these matters present themselves.
The issues currently capturing the public's attention are the French Revolution and the possibility of widespread governmental change. Of all the nations in Europe, none is as invested in the French Revolution as England. After being enemies for ages, at great expense and without any national benefit, there’s now a chance to peacefully resolve this conflict and unite efforts to reform the rest of Europe. By doing so, they would not only stop more bloodshed and rising taxes, but also lighten a significant portion of their current burdens, as previously mentioned. However, long experience has shown that old governments are typically not in favor of promoting such reforms, so these matters primarily concern the nations themselves, not the governments.
In the preceding part of this work, I have spoken of an alliance between England, France, and America, for purposes that were to be afterwards mentioned. Though I have no direct authority on the part of America, I have good reason to conclude, that she is disposed to enter into a consideration of such a measure, provided, that the governments with which she might ally, acted as national governments, and not as courts enveloped in intrigue and mystery. That France as a nation, and a national government, would prefer an alliance with England, is a matter of certainty. Nations, like individuals, who have long been enemies, without knowing each other, or knowing why, become the better friends when they discover the errors and impositions under which they had acted.
In the earlier part of this work, I discussed a potential alliance between England, France, and America for purposes that will be explained later. Although I don't have direct confirmation from America, I have strong reasons to believe that they are open to considering such a measure, as long as the governments they might partner with behave as legitimate national governments and not as courts shrouded in intrigue and secrecy. It is certain that France, as a nation and a national government, would prefer to align itself with England. Just like individuals, nations that have been long-time enemies, often without truly understanding one another or the reasons behind their hostility, can become better friends once they uncover the misunderstandings and deceptions that have influenced their actions.
Admitting, therefore, the probability of such a connection, I will state some matters by which such an alliance, together with that of Holland, might render service, not only to the parties immediately concerned, but to all Europe.
Admitting, therefore, the likelihood of such a connection, I will outline a few points by which such an alliance, along with that of Holland, could benefit not only the parties directly involved but also all of Europe.
It is, I think, certain, that if the fleets of England, France, and Holland were confederated, they could propose, with effect, a limitation to, and a general dismantling of, all the navies in Europe, to a certain proportion to be agreed upon.
I’m convinced that if the fleets of England, France, and Holland came together, they could effectively suggest a limit and a general reduction of all the navies in Europe, set to an agreed-upon proportion.
First, That no new ship of war shall be built by any power in Europe, themselves included.
First, no new warship shall be built by any power in Europe, including themselves.
Second, That all the navies now in existence shall be put back, suppose to one-tenth of their present force. This will save to France and England, at least two millions sterling annually to each, and their relative force be in the same proportion as it is now. If men will permit themselves to think, as rational beings ought to think, nothing can appear more ridiculous and absurd, exclusive of all moral reflections, than to be at the expense of building navies, filling them with men, and then hauling them into the ocean, to try which can sink each other fastest. Peace, which costs nothing, is attended with infinitely more advantage, than any victory with all its expense. But this, though it best answers the purpose of nations, does not that of court governments, whose habited policy is pretence for taxation, places, and offices.
Second, all the navies currently in existence should be scaled back to, let's say, one-tenth of their current size. This would save France and England at least two million pounds each year, while their relative forces would remain in the same ratio as they are now. If people allow themselves to think, as rational beings should, nothing seems more ridiculous and absurd, aside from any moral considerations, than spending money to build navies, staffing them with sailors, and then sending them out to sea to see which side can sink the other more quickly. Peace, which costs nothing, brings far more benefits than any victory with all its expenses. However, while this approach serves the interests of nations, it doesn't serve those of royal governments, whose established policy revolves around justifying taxation, positions, and appointments.
It is, I think, also certain, that the above confederated powers, together with that of the United States of America, can propose with effect, to Spain, the independence of South America, and the opening those countries of immense extent and wealth to the general commerce of the world, as North America now is.
I believe it's also clear that the combined powers mentioned above, along with the United States, can effectively propose to Spain the independence of South America and open those vast and wealthy countries to global trade, just like North America is now.
With how much more glory, and advantage to itself, does a nation act, when it exerts its powers to rescue the world from bondage, and to create itself friends, than when it employs those powers to increase ruin, desolation, and misery. The horrid scene that is now acting by the English government in the East-Indies, is fit only to be told of Goths and Vandals, who, destitute of principle, robbed and tortured the world they were incapable of enjoying.
With how much more glory and benefit to itself does a nation operate when it uses its power to free the world from oppression and to gain friends, rather than when it uses that power to spread destruction, despair, and suffering. The horrifying situation currently unfolding under the English government in the East Indies is something only suitable for tales about Goths and Vandals, who, lacking any principles, pillaged and tormented a world they were incapable of appreciating.
The opening of South America would produce an immense field of commerce, and a ready money market for manufactures, which the eastern world does not. The East is already a country full of manufactures, the importation of which is not only an injury to the manufactures of England, but a drain upon its specie. The balance against England by this trade is regularly upwards of half a million annually sent out in the East-India ships in silver; and this is the reason, together with German intrigue, and German subsidies, that there is so little silver in England.
The opening of South America would create a huge market for trade and a cash flow for manufactured goods, unlike what we see in the eastern world. The East is already filled with manufacturers, whose imports not only hurt England's own manufacturing but also lead to a loss of its silver. The trade balance against England is consistently more than half a million sent out in silver each year via East India ships; this, along with German schemes and subsidies, is why there is so little silver left in England.
But any war is harvest to such governments, however ruinous it may be to a nation. It serves to keep up deceitful expectations which prevent people from looking into the defects and abuses of government. It is the lo here! and the lo there! that amuses and cheats the multitude.
But any war is a boon to such governments, no matter how destructive it might be to a nation. It helps maintain false hopes that stop people from examining the flaws and abuses of government. It's the "look over here!" and the "look over there!" that entertains and deceives the masses.
Never did so great an opportunity offer itself to England, and to all Europe, as is produced by the two Revolutions of America and France. By the former, freedom has a national champion in the western world; and by the latter, in Europe. When another nation shall join France, despotism and bad government will scarcely dare to appear. To use a trite expression, the iron is becoming hot all over Europe. The insulted German and the enslaved Spaniard, the Russ and the Pole, are beginning to think. The present age will hereafter merit to be called the Age of Reason, and the present generation will appear to the future as the Adam of a new world.
Never has England, and all of Europe, had such a great opportunity as is presented by the two Revolutions in America and France. The former provides freedom with a national champion in the western world, and the latter does the same in Europe. When another nation joins France, despots and poor governments will hardly dare to show their faces. To put it simply, the iron is getting hot all over Europe. The insulted German, the enslaved Spaniard, the Russian, and the Pole are starting to think. This age will come to be known as the Age of Reason, and this generation will be seen by future generations as the Adam of a new world.
When all the governments of Europe shall be established on the representative system, nations will become acquainted, and the animosities and prejudices fomented by the intrigue and artifice of courts, will cease. The oppressed soldier will become a freeman; and the tortured sailor, no longer dragged through the streets like a felon, will pursue his mercantile voyage in safety. It would be better that nations should wi continue the pay of their soldiers during their lives, and give them their discharge and restore them to freedom and their friends, and cease recruiting, than retain such multitudes at the same expense, in a condition useless to society and to themselves. As soldiers have hitherto been treated in most countries, they might be said to be without a friend. Shunned by the citizen on an apprehension of their being enemies to liberty, and too often insulted by those who commanded them, their condition was a double oppression. But where genuine principles of liberty pervade a people, every thing is restored to order; and the soldier civilly treated, returns the civility.
When all the governments of Europe are set up on a representative system, nations will get to know each other, and the hatred and biases stirred up by the schemes and tricks of the courts will fade away. The oppressed soldier will gain freedom, and the mistreated sailor, no longer dragged through the streets like a criminal, will safely pursue his commercial journey. It would be better for nations to continue paying their soldiers for life, giving them their discharge and returning them to freedom and their families, rather than keeping so many in a useless state for society and themselves at the same cost. As soldiers have typically been treated in most countries, they could be considered friendless. Avoided by civilians out of fear they might be foes of liberty and too often disrespected by their commanders, their situation was a double burden. But where true principles of liberty are embraced by the people, everything falls into place; a soldier treated with respect responds with the same respect.
In contemplating revolutions, it is easy to perceive that they may arise from two distinct causes; the one, to avoid or get rid of some great calamity; the other, to obtain some great and positive good; and the two may be distinguished by the names of active and passive revolutions. In those which proceed from the former cause, the temper becomes incensed and soured; and the redress, obtained by danger, is too often sullied by revenge. But in those which proceed from the latter, the heart, rather animated than agitated, enters serenely upon the subject. Reason and discussion, persuasion and conviction, become the weapons in the contest, and it is only when those are attempted to be suppressed that recourse is had to violence. When men unite in agreeing that a thing is good, could it be obtained, such for instance as relief from a burden of taxes and the extinction of corruption, the object is more than half accomplished. What they approve as the end, they will promote in the means.
When thinking about revolutions, it's clear they can come from two different causes: one is to avoid or escape a major disaster, and the other is to achieve something great and positive. We can call these active and passive revolutions. In revolutions that arise from the first cause, people's tempers become heated and bitter; often, the solutions gained through danger are tainted by a desire for revenge. In contrast, revolutions that stem from the second cause engage the heart in a calm and uplifting way. In these cases, reasoned discussion, persuasion, and conviction are the tools used in the struggle, and violence is only resorted to when those methods are suppressed. When people agree that something is good, like reducing taxes and eliminating corruption, they are already more than halfway to achieving it. What they see as the goal, they will support in the means to get there.
Will any man say, in the present excess of taxation, falling so heavily on the poor, that a remission of five pounds annually of taxes to one hundred and four thousand poor families is not a good thing? Will he say that a remission of seven pounds annually to one hundred thousand other poor families—of eight pounds annually to another hundred thousand poor families, and of ten pounds annually to fifty thousand poor and widowed families, are not good things? And, to proceed a step further in this climax, will he say that to provide against the misfortunes to which all human life is subject, by securing six pounds annually for all poor, distressed, and reduced persons of the age of fifty and until sixty, and of ten pounds annually after sixty, is not a good thing?
Will anyone truly say, in light of the current high taxes that weigh so heavily on the poor, that reducing taxes by five pounds a year for one hundred and four thousand struggling families isn’t beneficial? Will they claim that giving seven pounds a year to one hundred thousand other poor families—eight pounds a year to another hundred thousand poor families, and ten pounds a year to fifty thousand needy and widowed families—isn’t a good thing? Furthermore, will they argue that providing financial support to protect against the hardships that everyone faces in life, by ensuring six pounds a year for all poor, distressed, and vulnerable people from ages fifty to sixty, and ten pounds annually after sixty, isn’t a good thing?
Will he say that an abolition of two millions of poor-rates to the house-keepers, and of the whole of the house and window-light tax and of the commutation tax is not a good thing? Or will he say that to abolish corruption is a bad thing?
Will he argue that eliminating two million in poor rates for homeowners, along with completely getting rid of the house and window-light tax and the commutation tax, isn't a good thing? Or will he claim that ending corruption is a bad thing?
If, therefore, the good to be obtained be worthy of a passive, rational, and costless revolution, it would be bad policy to prefer waiting for a calamity that should force a violent one. I have no idea, considering the reforms which are now passing and spreading throughout Europe, that England will permit herself to be the last; and where the occasion and the opportunity quietly offer, it is better than to wait for a turbulent necessity. It may be considered as an honour to the animal faculties of man to obtain redress by courage and danger, but it is far greater honour to the rational faculties to accomplish the same object by reason, accommodation, and general consent.*40
If the good that can be achieved is worth a peaceful, rational, and effortless change, it would be unwise to wait for a disaster that would force a violent one. Given the reforms that are currently happening and spreading across Europe, I don’t think England will want to be the last to act. When the chance and opportunity arise naturally, it's better to take action than to wait for a chaotic necessity. While there may be a certain honor in achieving justice through courage and risk, it’s far more honorable to accomplish the same goal through reason, compromise, and collective agreement.*40
As reforms, or revolutions, call them which you please, extend themselves among nations, those nations will form connections and conventions, and when a few are thus confederated, the progress will be rapid, till despotism and corrupt government be totally expelled, at least out of two quarters of the world, Europe and America. The Algerine piracy may then be commanded to cease, for it is only by the malicious policy of old governments, against each other, that it exists.
As reforms, or revolutions, call them what you want, spread among nations, those nations will create connections and agreements. Once a few are united, the progress will be quick, until tyranny and corrupt governments are completely removed, at least from two areas of the world: Europe and America. The piracy from Algeria can then be ordered to stop, as it only exists due to the spiteful strategies of old governments against one another.
Throughout this work, various and numerous as the subjects are, which I have taken up and investigated, there is only a single paragraph upon religion, viz. "that every religion is good that teaches man to be good."
Throughout this work, as diverse and numerous as the topics I have explored, there is only one paragraph about religion: "Every religion is good if it teaches people to be good."
I have carefully avoided to enlarge upon the subject, because I am inclined to believe that what is called the present ministry, wish to see contentions about religion kept up, to prevent the nation turning its attention to subjects of government. It is as if they were to say, "Look that way, or any way, but this."
I have intentionally refrained from discussing this topic further because I believe the current government wants to keep religious disputes alive to distract the nation from focusing on governance issues. It’s as if they’re saying, "Look anywhere else, but not here."
But as religion is very improperly made a political machine, and the reality of it is thereby destroyed, I will conclude this work with stating in what light religion appears to me.
But since religion is wrongly turned into a political tool, and its true meaning is lost because of this, I'll end this work by sharing how I view religion.
If we suppose a large family of children, who, on any particular day, or particular circumstance, made it a custom to present to their parents some token of their affection and gratitude, each of them would make a different offering, and most probably in a different manner. Some would pay their congratulations in themes of verse and prose, by some little devices, as their genius dictated, or according to what they thought would please; and, perhaps, the least of all, not able to do any of those things, would ramble into the garden, or the field, and gather what it thought the prettiest flower it could find, though, perhaps, it might be but a simple weed. The parent would be more gratified by such a variety, than if the whole of them had acted on a concerted plan, and each had made exactly the same offering. This would have the cold appearance of contrivance, or the harsh one of control. But of all unwelcome things, nothing could more afflict the parent than to know, that the whole of them had afterwards gotten together by the ears, boys and girls, fighting, scratching, reviling, and abusing each other about which was the best or the worst present.
If we imagine a big family of kids who, on a specific day or occasion, decided to show their parents some sign of love and thanks, each of them would come up with a different gift, likely in their own unique way. Some might express their congratulations through poetry or prose, crafting little surprises based on their creativity or what they thought would make their parents happy. Meanwhile, the least creative might just wander into the garden or the field and pick what they thought was the prettiest flower they could find, even if it turned out to be just a simple weed. The parent would feel more pleased by this variety than if all the kids had followed a set plan and given the same gift. That would come off as cold and calculated instead of genuine. However, nothing would upset the parent more than discovering that all the kids had ended up fighting with each other—boys and girls—arguing, scratching, insulting, and bickering over which gift was the best or the worst.
Why may we not suppose, that the great Father of all is pleased with variety of devotion; and that the greatest offence we can act, is that by which we seek to torment and render each other miserable? For my own part, I am fully satisfied that what I am now doing, with an endeavour to conciliate mankind, to render their condition happy, to unite nations that have hitherto been enemies, and to extirpate the horrid practice of war, and break the chains of slavery and oppression is acceptable in his sight, and being the best service I can perform, I act it cheerfully.
Why can't we assume that the great Father of all is happy with different forms of devotion? The worst thing we can do is try to hurt and make each other miserable. Personally, I'm completely convinced that what I'm doing now—trying to bring people together, make their lives better, unite nations that have been enemies, and eliminate the terrible practices of war and break the chains of slavery and oppression—is pleasing in His eyes. Since it's the best service I can offer, I do it gladly.
I do not believe that any two men, on what are called doctrinal points, think alike who think at all. It is only those who have not thought that appear to agree. It is in this case as with what is called the British constitution. It has been taken for granted to be good, and encomiums have supplied the place of proof. But when the nation comes to examine into its principles and the abuses it admits, it will be found to have more defects than I have pointed out in this work and the former.
I don’t think any two people, when it comes to so-called doctrinal issues, truly think the same way if they think at all. Only those who haven’t thought much seem to agree. It’s similar to what’s known as the British constitution. People assume it’s good, and praise has replaced actual evidence. But when the country looks into its principles and the problems it allows, it will uncover more flaws than I’ve highlighted in this and my previous work.
As to what are called national religions, we may, with as much propriety, talk of national Gods. It is either political craft or the remains of the Pagan system, when every nation had its separate and particular deity. Among all the writers of the English church clergy, who have treated on the general subject of religion, the present Bishop of Llandaff has not been excelled, and it is with much pleasure that I take this opportunity of expressing this token of respect.
As for what are referred to as national religions, we can just as easily talk about national gods. It’s either a political maneuver or a leftover from the Pagan system, when each nation had its own specific deity. Among all the writers from the English church clergy who have discussed the overall topic of religion, the current Bishop of Llandaff stands out, and I’m pleased to take this chance to show my respect.
I have now gone through the whole of the subject, at least, as far as it appears to me at present. It has been my intention for the five years I have been in Europe, to offer an address to the people of England on the subject of government, if the opportunity presented itself before I returned to America. Mr. Burke has thrown it in my way, and I thank him. On a certain occasion, three years ago, I pressed him to propose a national convention, to be fairly elected, for the purpose of taking the state of the nation into consideration; but I found, that however strongly the parliamentary current was then setting against the party he acted with, their policy was to keep every thing within that field of corruption, and trust to accidents. Long experience had shown that parliaments would follow any change of ministers, and on this they rested their hopes and their expectations.
I have now covered the entire topic, at least as I see it right now. For the five years I’ve been in Europe, I've intended to give a speech to the people of England about government if the chance came up before I returned to America. Mr. Burke has presented that opportunity to me, and I’m grateful to him. Three years ago, I urged him to suggest a national convention that would be fairly elected to discuss the state of the nation, but I found that, despite the strong parliamentary tide against the party he was with, their approach was to keep everything within that realm of corruption and rely on random events. Long experience had shown that parliaments would adapt to any change in ministers, and that’s where they placed their hopes and expectations.
Formerly, when divisions arose respecting governments, recourse was had to the sword, and a civil war ensued. That savage custom is exploded by the new system, and reference is had to national conventions. Discussion and the general will arbitrates the question, and to this, private opinion yields with a good grace, and order is preserved uninterrupted.
In the past, when disputes arose about governments, people turned to violence, leading to civil wars. That brutal practice is no longer acceptable with the new system, which relies on national conventions. Discussions and the collective will resolve the issue, and private opinions accept this gracefully, maintaining uninterrupted order.
Some gentlemen have affected to call the principles upon which this work and the former part of Rights of Man are founded, "a new-fangled doctrine." The question is not whether those principles are new or old, but whether they are right or wrong. Suppose the former, I will show their effect by a figure easily understood.
Some people have pretended to call the principles that this work and the earlier part of Rights of Man are based on "a trendy idea." The issue isn’t whether those principles are new or old, but whether they are right or wrong. If they are the former, I will illustrate their impact with an example that’s easy to grasp.
It is now towards the middle of February. Were I to take a turn into the country, the trees would present a leafless, wintery appearance. As people are apt to pluck twigs as they walk along, I perhaps might do the same, and by chance might observe, that a single bud on that twig had begun to swell. I should reason very unnaturally, or rather not reason at all, to suppose this was the only bud in England which had this appearance. Instead of deciding thus, I should instantly conclude, that the same appearance was beginning, or about to begin, every where; and though the vegetable sleep will continue longer on some trees and plants than on others, and though some of them may not blossom for two or three years, all will be in leaf in the summer, except those which are rotten. What pace the political summer may keep with the natural, no human foresight can determine. It is, however, not difficult to perceive that the spring is begun.—Thus wishing, as I sincerely do, freedom and happiness to all nations, I close the Second Part.
It’s now around the middle of February. If I were to take a walk in the countryside, the trees would look bare and wintry. As people tend to break off twigs while strolling, I might do the same and, by chance, notice that one single bud on that twig has started to swell. It would be very unreasonable, or rather not reasonable at all, to think this was the only bud in England looking like this. Instead of thinking that way, I would immediately conclude that the same thing is starting, or about to start, everywhere. And while some trees and plants might stay dormant longer than others, and some may not bloom for two or three years, all will have leaves by summer, except those that are dead. What pace the political summer may align with the natural one, no one can predict. However, it’s easy to see that spring has begun. So, sincerely wishing freedom and happiness to all nations, I close the Second Part.
APPENDIX
As the publication of this work has been delayed beyond the time intended, I think it not improper, all circumstances considered, to state the causes that have occasioned delay.
As the release of this work has taken longer than expected, I believe it's appropriate, given the situation, to explain the reasons for the delay.
The reader will probably observe, that some parts in the plan contained in this work for reducing the taxes, and certain parts in Mr. Pitt's speech at the opening of the present session, Tuesday, January 31, are so much alike as to induce a belief, that either the author had taken the hint from Mr. Pitt, or Mr. Pitt from the author.—I will first point out the parts that are similar, and then state such circumstances as I am acquainted with, leaving the reader to make his own conclusion.
The reader will likely notice that some parts of the plan outlined in this work for lowering taxes and certain sections of Mr. Pitt's speech from the opening of this session on Tuesday, January 31, are so similar that it suggests either the author was inspired by Mr. Pitt, or Mr. Pitt was inspired by the author. I will first highlight the similar sections, and then mention any relevant details I know, leaving it to the reader to draw their own conclusions.
Considering it as almost an unprecedented case, that taxes should be proposed to be taken off, it is equally extraordinary that such a measure should occur to two persons at the same time; and still more so (considering the vast variety and multiplicity of taxes) that they should hit on the same specific taxes. Mr. Pitt has mentioned, in his speech, the tax on Carts and Wagons—that on Female Servantsthe lowering the tax on Candles and the taking off the tax of three shillings on Houses having under seven windows.
Considering it as almost an unprecedented case that taxes should be proposed to be removed, it is equally remarkable that such a measure would occur to two people at the same time; and even more so (given the vast variety and multitude of taxes) that they would choose the same specific taxes. Mr. Pitt mentioned in his speech the tax on carts and wagons, the tax on female servants, the reduction of the tax on candles, and the elimination of the three-shilling tax on houses with fewer than seven windows.
Every one of those specific taxes are a part of the plan contained in this work, and proposed also to be taken off. Mr. Pitt's plan, it is true, goes no further than to a reduction of three hundred and twenty thousand pounds; and the reduction proposed in this work, to nearly six millions. I have made my calculations on only sixteen millions and an half of revenue, still asserting that it was "very nearly, if not quite, seventeen millions." Mr. Pitt states it at 16,690,000. I know enough of the matter to say, that he has not overstated it. Having thus given the particulars, which correspond in this work and his speech, I will state a chain of circumstances that may lead to some explanation.
Every one of those specific taxes is part of the plan outlined in this work and is also proposed to be removed. Mr. Pitt's plan, it’s true, only goes as far as a reduction of three hundred twenty thousand pounds, while the reduction suggested in this work is nearly six million. I've based my calculations on just sixteen and a half million in revenue, still claiming that it was "very nearly, if not quite, seventeen million." Mr. Pitt lists it at 16,690,000. I know enough about the situation to say that he hasn't exaggerated it. Having provided the details that match this work and his speech, I will present a series of events that may help clarify things.
The first hint for lessening the taxes, and that as a consequence flowing from the French revolution, is to be found in the Address and Declaration of the Gentlemen who met at the Thatched-House Tavern, August 20, 1791. Among many other particulars stated in that Address, is the following, put as an interrogation to the government opposers of the French Revolution. "Are they sorry that the pretence for new oppressive taxes, and the occasion for continuing many old taxes will be at an end?"
The first clue for reducing taxes, a result of the French Revolution, can be found in the Address and Declaration from the gentlemen who gathered at the Thatched-House Tavern on August 20, 1791. Among many other details mentioned in that Address is the following question directed at the government opponents of the French Revolution: "Are they upset that the excuse for imposing new oppressive taxes and the reason for keeping many old taxes will be gone?"
It is well known that the persons who chiefly frequent the Thatched-House Tavern, are men of court connections, and so much did they take this Address and Declaration respecting the French Revolution, and the reduction of taxes in disgust, that the Landlord was under the necessity of informing the Gentlemen, who composed the meeting of the 20th of August, and who proposed holding another meeting, that he could not receive them.*41
It’s widely recognized that the people who mostly hang out at the Thatched-House Tavern are connected to the court, and they were so upset about this Address and Declaration regarding the French Revolution and tax cuts that the landlord had to let the gentlemen who made up the meeting on August 20th—who wanted to hold another meeting—know that he couldn't accommodate them.*41
What was only hinted in the Address and Declaration respecting taxes and principles of government, will be found reduced to a regular system in this work. But as Mr. Pitt's speech contains some of the same things respecting taxes, I now come to give the circumstances before alluded to.
What was only suggested in the Address and Declaration about taxes and government principles will be laid out in a clear system in this work. However, since Mr. Pitt's speech covers some of the same topics regarding taxes, I now want to present the circumstances I mentioned earlier.
The case is: This work was intended to be published just before the meeting of Parliament, and for that purpose a considerable part of the copy was put into the printer's hands in September, and all the remaining copy, which contains the part to which Mr. Pitt's speech is similar, was given to him full six weeks before the meeting of Parliament, and he was informed of the time at which it was to appear. He had composed nearly the whole about a fortnight before the time of Parliament meeting, and had given me a proof of the next sheet. It was then in sufficient forwardness to be out at the time proposed, as two other sheets were ready for striking off. I had before told him, that if he thought he should be straitened for time, I could get part of the work done at another press, which he desired me not to do. In this manner the work stood on the Tuesday fortnight preceding the meeting of Parliament, when all at once, without any previous intimation, though I had been with him the evening before, he sent me, by one of his workmen, all the remaining copy, declining to go on with the work on any consideration.
The situation is this: This publication was meant to be released just before Parliament's meeting, and to make that happen, a significant portion of the text was handed to the printer in September. The rest of the text, which includes the part similar to Mr. Pitt's speech, was provided to him a full six weeks before Parliament's meeting, and he was informed of the intended release date. He had almost finished the entire document about two weeks prior to the Parliament meeting and had shared a proof of the next sheet with me. It was ready enough to be published on schedule, as two other sheets were also prepared for printing. I had previously told him that if he thought he would be pressed for time, I could have part of the work completed at another printing press, but he asked me not to do that. This is how things stood on the Tuesday two weeks before the Parliament meeting when suddenly, without any warning—despite having been with him the night before—he sent me all the remaining copy through one of his workers, refusing to continue with the project under any circumstances.
To account for this extraordinary conduct I was totally at a loss, as he stopped at the part where the arguments on systems and principles of government closed, and where the plan for the reduction of taxes, the education of children, and the support of the poor and the aged begins; and still more especially, as he had, at the time of his beginning to print, and before he had seen the whole copy, offered a thousand pounds for the copy-right, together with the future copy-right of the former part of the Rights of Man. I told the person who brought me this offer that I should not accept it, and wished it not to be renewed, giving him as my reason, that though I believed the printer to be an honest man, I would never put it in the power of any printer or publisher to suppress or alter a work of mine, by making him master of the copy, or give to him the right of selling it to any minister, or to any other person, or to treat as a mere matter of traffic, that which I intended should operate as a principle.
To explain this unusual behavior, I was completely confused, as he stopped right where the discussion about systems and principles of government ended, and where the plan for lowering taxes, educating children, and supporting the poor and elderly began. What baffled me even more was that, when he first started printing, and before he had seen the entire manuscript, he offered a thousand pounds for the copyright, along with the future copyright of the earlier part of the Rights of Man. I told the person who brought me this offer that I wouldn’t accept it, and I hoped it wouldn’t be brought up again, explaining that even though I believed the printer was honest, I would never give any printer or publisher the power to suppress or change my work by handing over the copyright, or allow them to sell it to any minister or anyone else, treating something that I intended as a principle merely as a business deal.
His refusal to complete the work (which he could not purchase) obliged me to seek for another printer, and this of consequence would throw the publication back till after the meeting of Parliament, otherways it would have appeared that Mr. Pitt had only taken up a part of the plan which I had more fully stated.
His refusal to finish the work (which he couldn't buy) forced me to look for another printer, and as a result, this would delay the publication until after the meeting of Parliament; otherwise, it would have seemed that Mr. Pitt had only adopted part of the plan that I had explained more thoroughly.
Whether that gentleman, or any other, had seen the work, or any part of it, is more than I have authority to say. But the manner in which the work was returned, and the particular time at which this was done, and that after the offers he had made, are suspicious circumstances. I know what the opinion of booksellers and publishers is upon such a case, but as to my own opinion, I choose to make no declaration. There are many ways by which proof sheets may be procured by other persons before a work publicly appears; to which I shall add a certain circumstance, which is,
Whether that gentleman, or anyone else, had seen the work, or any part of it, is something I can’t confirm. However, the way the work was returned, the specific timing, and the fact that it happened after his offers are all suspicious factors. I'm aware of what booksellers and publishers think about such situations, but as for my own opinion, I prefer not to say anything. There are various ways that proof sheets can be obtained by others before a work is publicly released; I would also like to mention one more thing, which is,
A ministerial bookseller in Piccadilly who has been employed, as common report says, by a clerk of one of the boards closely connected with the ministry (the board of trade and plantation, of which Hawkesbury is president) to publish what he calls my Life, (I wish his own life and those of the cabinet were as good), used to have his books printed at the same printing-office that I employed; but when the former part of Rights of Man came out, he took his work away in dudgeon; and about a week or ten days before the printer returned my copy, he came to make him an offer of his work again, which was accepted. This would consequently give him admission into the printing-office where the sheets of this work were then lying; and as booksellers and printers are free with each other, he would have the opportunity of seeing what was going on.—Be the case, however, as it may, Mr. Pitt's plan, little and diminutive as it is, would have made a very awkward appearance, had this work appeared at the time the printer had engaged to finish it.
A bookseller in Piccadilly, who reportedly has ties to a clerk from one of the boards closely linked to the ministry (the board of trade and plantations, led by Hawkesbury), has been trying to publish what he calls my Life (I wish his own life and those of the cabinet were as impressive). He used to have his books printed at the same printing house I used, but when the earlier part of Rights of Man was released, he took his work away in a huff. About a week or ten days before the printer returned my copy, he approached the printer with a new offer for his work, which was accepted. This would naturally give him access to the printing house where the sheets for this work were then sitting, and since booksellers and printers share information freely, he would get a chance to see what was happening. Regardless of the circumstances, Mr. Pitt's plan, as small and insignificant as it is, would have looked quite awkward if this work had been released at the time the printer had promised to complete it.
I have now stated the particulars which occasioned the delay, from the proposal to purchase, to the refusal to print. If all the Gentlemen are innocent, it is very unfortunate for them that such a variety of suspicious circumstances should, without any design, arrange themselves together.
I have now stated the details that caused the delay, from the proposal to buy to the refusal to print. If all the gentlemen are innocent, it's very unfortunate for them that such a range of suspicious circumstances have, without any intention, lined up together.
Having now finished this part, I will conclude with stating another circumstance.
Having now completed this section, I will finish by mentioning another point.
About a fortnight or three weeks before the meeting of Parliament, a small addition, amounting to about twelve shillings and sixpence a year, was made to the pay of the soldiers, or rather their pay was docked so much less. Some Gentlemen who knew, in part, that this work would contain a plan of reforms respecting the oppressed condition of soldiers, wished me to add a note to the work, signifying that the part upon that subject had been in the printer's hands some weeks before that addition of pay was proposed. I declined doing this, lest it should be interpreted into an air of vanity, or an endeavour to excite suspicion (for which perhaps there might be no grounds) that some of the government gentlemen had, by some means or other, made out what this work would contain: and had not the printing been interrupted so as to occasion a delay beyond the time fixed for publication, nothing contained in this appendix would have appeared.
About two weeks or three weeks before the meeting of Parliament, a small raise of about twelve shillings and sixpence a year was added to the soldiers' pay, or rather their pay was reduced by that much. Some people who knew that this work would include a plan for reforming the poor conditions of soldiers wanted me to add a note indicating that the section on that topic had been with the printer for several weeks before the pay increase was suggested. I chose not to do this, as it might come off as vain or try to stir suspicion (which there might not be any basis for) that some officials in the government had somehow figured out what this work would include: and if the printing had not been delayed beyond the scheduled publication date, nothing in this appendix would have been published.
Thomas Paine
Thomas Paine
THE AUTHOR'S NOTES FOR PART ONE AND PART TWO
1 (return)
[ The main and uniform maxim
of the judges is, the greater the truth the greater the libel.]
1 (return)
[ The main and consistent rule of the judges is, the more true the statement, the more damaging the libel.]
2 (return)
[ Since writing the above,
two other places occur in Mr. Burke's pamphlet in which the name of the
Bastille is mentioned, but in the same manner. In the one he introduces it
in a sort of obscure question, and asks: "Will any ministers who now serve
such a king, with but a decent appearance of respect, cordially obey the
orders of those whom but the other day, in his name, they had committed to
the Bastille?" In the other the taking it is mentioned as implying
criminality in the French guards, who assisted in demolishing it. "They
have not," says he, "forgot the taking the king's castles at Paris." This
is Mr. Burke, who pretends to write on constitutional freedom.]
2 (return)
[ Since writing the above, two other instances appear in Mr. Burke's pamphlet where he mentions the Bastille in a similar way. In one, he brings it up in a somewhat vague question, asking: "Will any ministers who currently serve such a king, with even a semblance of respect, wholeheartedly follow the orders of those whom just recently, in his name, they had sent to the Bastille?" In the other, the act of taking it is noted as indicating wrongdoing by the French guards who helped tear it down. "They have not," he says, "forgotten the takeover of the king's castles in Paris." This is Mr. Burke, who claims to write on constitutional freedom.]
3 (return)
[ I am warranted in asserting
this, as I had it personally from M. de la Fayette, with whom I lived in
habits of friendship for fourteen years.]
3 (return)
[ I can confidently say this because I heard it directly from M. de la Fayette, with whom I shared a friendship for fourteen years.]
4 (return)
[ An account of the
expedition to Versailles may be seen in No. 13 of the Revolution de Paris
containing the events from the 3rd to the 10th of October, 1789.]
4 (return)
[You can find a description of the trip to Versailles in No. 13 of the Revolution de Paris, covering the events from October 3rd to October 10th, 1789.]
5 (return)
[ It is a practice in some
parts of the country, when two travellers have but one horse, which, like
the national purse, will not carry double, that the one mounts and rides
two or three miles ahead, and then ties the horse to a gate and walks on.
When the second traveller arrives he takes the horse, rides on, and passes
his companion a mile or two, and ties again, and so on—Ride and
tie.]
5 (return)
[ In some parts of the country, there's a practice where two travelers share one horse, which, like the national budget, can’t carry two people at once. One person rides two or three miles ahead, ties the horse to a gate, and then continues on foot. When the second traveler arrives, they take the horse, ride ahead, and tie it again, continuing this way—Ride and tie.]
6 (return)
[ The word he used was
renvoye, dismissed or sent away.]
6 (return)
[ The word he used was
"renvoye," which means dismissed or sent away.]
7 (return)
[ When in any country we see
extraordinary circumstances taking place, they naturally lead any man who
has a talent for observation and investigation, to enquire into the
causes. The manufacturers of Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield, are
the principal manufacturers in England. From whence did this arise? A
little observation will explain the case. The principal, and the
generality of the inhabitants of those places, are not of what is called
in England, the church established by law: and they, or their fathers,
(for it is within but a few years) withdrew from the persecution of the
chartered towns, where test-laws more particularly operate, and
established a sort of asylum for themselves in those places. It was the
only asylum that then offered, for the rest of Europe was worse.—But
the case is now changing. France and America bid all comers welcome, and
initiate them into all the rights of citizenship. Policy and interest,
therefore, will, but perhaps too late, dictate in England, what reason and
justice could not. Those manufacturers are withdrawing, and arising in
other places. There is now erecting in Passey, three miles from Paris, a
large cotton manufactory, and several are already erected in America. Soon
after the rejecting the Bill for repealing the test-law, one of the
richest manufacturers in England said in my hearing, "England, Sir, is not
a country for a dissenter to live in,—we must go to France." These
are truths, and it is doing justice to both parties to tell them. It is
chiefly the dissenters that have carried English manufactures to the
height they are now at, and the same men have it in their power to carry
them away; and though those manufactures would afterwards continue in
those places, the foreign market will be lost. There frequently appear in
the London Gazette, extracts from certain acts to prevent machines and
persons, as far as they can extend to persons, from going out of the
country. It appears from these that the ill effects of the test-laws and
church-establishment begin to be much suspected; but the remedy of force
can never supply the remedy of reason. In the progress of less than a
century, all the unrepresented part of England, of all denominations,
which is at least an hundred times the most numerous, may begin to feel
the necessity of a constitution, and then all those matters will come
regularly before them.]
7 (return)
[ Whenever we witness extraordinary events in any country, it naturally prompts anyone with a knack for observation and investigation to look into the causes. The manufacturers in Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield are the main producers in England. How did this happen? A bit of observation can clarify the situation. The majority of the people in those areas do not belong to what is known in England as the established church. They or their ancestors (it hasn’t been long ago) fled from the persecution found in chartered towns, where test-laws are particularly enforced, and created a sort of refuge for themselves in those locations. It was the only refuge available at the time, as the rest of Europe was worse off. However, the situation is now changing. France and America welcome everyone and grant them all the rights of citizenship. Thus, policy and self-interest will, though perhaps too late, determine in England what reason and justice could not. Those manufacturers are moving away and establishing operations elsewhere. A large cotton factory is being built in Passey, three miles from Paris, and several have already been set up in America. Shortly after the rejection of the Bill to repeal the test-law, one of the wealthiest manufacturers in England said in my presence, "England, Sir, is not a country for a dissenter to live in—we have to go to France." These are facts, and it’s only fair to acknowledge them to both sides. Primarily, it has been the dissenters who have brought English manufacturing to its current peak, and those same individuals have the ability to carry it away. Even though those industries may persist in those locations, the foreign market will be lost. There are often extracts in the London Gazette from certain acts aimed at preventing machines and individuals, as much as possible, from leaving the country. These indicate that the negative impacts of the test-laws and church establishment are becoming increasingly recognized; however, the remedy of force can never replace the remedy of reason. In the span of less than a century, the unrepresented portion of England, across all denominations, which is at least a hundred times more numerous, may start to realize the need for a constitution, after which these issues will be properly addressed.]
8 (return)
[ When the English Minister,
Mr. Pitt, mentions the French finances again in the English Parliament, it
would be well that he noticed this as an example.]
8 (return)
[ When the English Minister, Mr. Pitt, talks about the French finances again in the English Parliament, it would be good for him to point this out as an example.]
9 (return)
[ Mr. Burke, (and I must take
the liberty of telling him that he is very unacquainted with French
affairs), speaking upon this subject, says, "The first thing that struck
me in calling the States-General, was a great departure from the ancient
course";—and he soon after says, "From the moment I read the list, I
saw distinctly, and very nearly as it has happened, all that was to
follow."—Mr. Burke certainly did not see an that was to follow. I
endeavoured to impress him, as well before as after the States-General
met, that there would be a revolution; but was not able to make him see
it, neither would he believe it. How then he could distinctly see all the
parts, when the whole was out of sight, is beyond my comprehension. And
with respect to the "departure from the ancient course," besides the
natural weakness of the remark, it shows that he is unacquainted with
circumstances. The departure was necessary, from the experience had upon
it, that the ancient course was a bad one. The States-General of 1614 were
called at the commencement of the civil war in the minority of Louis
XIII.; but by the class of arranging them by orders, they increased the
confusion they were called to compose. The author of L'Intrigue du
Cabinet, (Intrigue of the Cabinet), who wrote before any revolution was
thought of in France, speaking of the States-General of 1614, says, "They
held the public in suspense five months; and by the questions agitated
therein, and the heat with which they were put, it appears that the great
(les grands) thought more to satisfy their particular passions, than to
procure the goods of the nation; and the whole time passed away in
altercations, ceremonies and parade."—L'Intrigue du Cabinet, vol. i.
p. 329.]
9 (return)
[ Mr. Burke, (and I have to say he's really not familiar with French affairs), talked about this topic and mentioned, "The first thing that caught my attention in calling the States-General was a significant break from the old ways";—and he shortly added, "From the moment I read the list, I clearly saw, almost exactly as it happened, everything that was going to follow."—Mr. Burke definitely didn't foresee everything that would happen. I tried to make him understand, both before and after the States-General met, that there would be a revolution; but I couldn't get him to see it, and he wouldn't believe it. So how he could clearly see all the details when he missed the bigger picture is beyond me. Regarding the "break from the old ways," apart from the weak nature of the comment, it shows that he doesn't understand the context. The break was necessary based on the understanding that the old ways were ineffective. The States-General of 1614 were called at the start of the civil war during Louis XIII's minority; but by organizing them by orders, they only added to the confusion they were supposed to resolve. The author of L'Intrigue du Cabinet, who wrote before anyone considered a revolution in France, commented on the States-General of 1614, saying, "They kept the public in suspense for five months; and based on the issues raised and the passion with which they were discussed, it seemed that the powerful (les grands) were more focused on fulfilling their own desires than on securing the nation's interests; and all the time was spent in arguments, ceremonies, and show."—L'Intrigue du Cabinet, vol. i. p. 329.]
10 (return)
[ There is a single idea,
which, if it strikes rightly upon the mind, either in a legal or a
religious sense, will prevent any man or any body of men, or any
government, from going wrong on the subject of religion; which is, that
before any human institutions of government were known in the world, there
existed, if I may so express it, a compact between God and man, from the
beginning of time: and that as the relation and condition which man in his
individual person stands in towards his Maker cannot be changed by any
human laws or human authority, that religious devotion, which is a part of
this compact, cannot so much as be made a subject of human laws; and that
all laws must conform themselves to this prior existing compact, and not
assume to make the compact conform to the laws, which, besides being
human, are subsequent thereto. The first act of man, when he looked around
and saw himself a creature which he did not make, and a world furnished
for his reception, must have been devotion; and devotion must ever
continue sacred to every individual man, as it appears, right to him; and
governments do mischief by interfering.]
10 (return)
[ There’s one key idea that, if it resonates correctly in a legal or religious context, will prevent anyone—be it an individual, a group, or a government—from going astray regarding religion. This idea is that before any human-made governments existed, there was, in a way, a covenant between God and humanity from the very beginning. Since the relationship and condition of each person with their Creator cannot be altered by any human laws or authorities, the religious devotion that forms part of this covenant cannot even be subjected to human laws. All laws must align with this pre-existing covenant rather than try to adjust the covenant to fit the laws, which, aside from being human, came after. The first act of a person, upon realizing they are created and seeing a world prepared for them, must have been one of devotion, and this devotion should always remain sacred to each person, as it seems right to them; governments cause harm when they interfere.]
11 (return)
[ See this work, Part I
starting at line number 254.—N.B. Since the taking of the Bastille,
the occurrences have been published: but the matters recorded in this
narrative, are prior to that period; and some of them, as may be easily
seen, can be but very little known.]
11 (return)
[ See this work, Part I starting at line number 254.—N.B. Since the fall of the Bastille, the events have been published: but the matters recorded in this narrative are from before that time; and some of them, as can be easily seen, are not well known.]
12 (return)
[ See "Estimate of the
Comparative Strength of Great Britain," by G. Chalmers.]
12 (return)
[See "Estimate of the Comparative Strength of Great Britain," by G. Chalmers.]
13 (return)
[ See "Administration of
the Finances of France," vol. iii, by M. Neckar.]
13 (return)
[ See "Managing France's Finances," vol. iii, by M. Neckar.]
14 (return)
[ "Administration of the
Finances of France," vol. iii.]
14 (return)
[ "Managing France's Finances," vol. iii.]
15 (return)
[ Whether the English
commerce does not bring in money, or whether the government sends it out
after it is brought in, is a matter which the parties concerned can best
explain; but that the deficiency exists, is not in the power of either to
disprove. While Dr. Price, Mr. Eden, (now Auckland), Mr. Chalmers, and
others, were debating whether the quantity of money in England was greater
or less than at the Revolution, the circumstance was not adverted to, that
since the Revolution, there cannot have been less than four hundred
millions sterling imported into Europe; and therefore the quantity in
England ought at least to have been four times greater than it was at the
Revolution, to be on a proportion with Europe. What England is now doing
by paper, is what she would have been able to do by solid money, if gold
and silver had come into the nation in the proportion it ought, or had not
been sent out; and she is endeavouring to restore by paper, the balance
she has lost by money. It is certain, that the gold and silver which
arrive annually in the register-ships to Spain and Portugal, do not remain
in those countries. Taking the value half in gold and half in silver, it
is about four hundred tons annually; and from the number of ships and
galloons employed in the trade of bringing those metals from South-America
to Portugal and Spain, the quantity sufficiently proves itself, without
referring to the registers.
15 (return)
Whether English commerce brings in money or whether the government sends it out after it's received is something that the involved parties can best explain; however, the existence of a shortfall cannot be disproven by either side. While Dr. Price, Mr. Eden (now Auckland), Mr. Chalmers, and others were debating whether the amount of money in England was more or less than it was at the time of the Revolution, they overlooked the fact that since the Revolution, at least four hundred million pounds have been imported into Europe. Therefore, the amount in England should at least be four times greater than it was at the time of the Revolution, to be in line with Europe. What England is currently achieving through paper currency is what she could have done with hard money if gold and silver had entered the country proportionally or had not been sent out. She is trying to use paper to regain the balance lost through money. It’s clear that the gold and silver arriving each year in the registered ships to Spain and Portugal do not stay in those countries. With half the value in gold and half in silver, this amounts to about four hundred tons annually. The number of ships and galleons used to transport these metals from South America to Portugal and Spain sufficiently proves this, without needing to refer to the registers.
In the situation England now is, it is impossible she can increase in money. High taxes not only lessen the property of the individuals, but they lessen also the money capital of the nation, by inducing smuggling, which can only be carried on by gold and silver. By the politics which the British Government have carried on with the Inland Powers of Germany and the Continent, it has made an enemy of all the Maritime Powers, and is therefore obliged to keep up a large navy; but though the navy is built in England, the naval stores must be purchased from abroad, and that from countries where the greatest part must be paid for in gold and silver. Some fallacious rumours have been set afloat in England to induce a belief in money, and, among others, that of the French refugees bringing great quantities. The idea is ridiculous. The general part of the money in France is silver; and it would take upwards of twenty of the largest broad wheel wagons, with ten horses each, to remove one million sterling of silver. Is it then to be supposed, that a few people fleeing on horse-back or in post-chaises, in a secret manner, and having the French Custom-House to pass, and the sea to cross, could bring even a sufficiency for their own expenses?
In the current situation in England, it's impossible for her to increase her money supply. High taxes not only reduce individuals’ wealth but also diminish the nation’s money capital by encouraging smuggling, which relies on gold and silver. Because of the political strategies the British Government has pursued with the inland powers of Germany and the continent, it has made enemies of all the maritime powers, necessitating a large navy. However, even though the navy is built in England, the naval supplies must be bought from abroad, and those purchases often require payment in gold and silver. Some misleading rumors have circulated in England to suggest an influx of money, including claims about French refugees bringing large amounts. This idea is absurd. The majority of money in France is silver, and it would take more than twenty of the largest broad wheel wagons, with ten horses each, to transport one million pounds' worth of silver. So, can we really believe that a few individuals fleeing on horseback or in carriages, secretly, while navigating through French customs and crossing the sea, could carry even enough for their own expenses?
When millions of money are spoken of, it should be recollected, that such sums can only accumulate in a country by slow degrees, and a long procession of time. The most frugal system that England could now adopt, would not recover in a century the balance she has lost in money since the commencement of the Hanover succession. She is seventy millions behind France, and she must be in some considerable proportion behind every country in Europe, because the returns of the English mint do not show an increase of money, while the registers of Lisbon and Cadiz show an European increase of between three and four hundred millions sterling.]
When we talk about millions of dollars, we should remember that such large sums can only build up in a country slowly over a long period of time. The most frugal approach that England could take now wouldn't recover in a century the amount it has lost in money since the start of the Hanover dynasty. It is seventy million behind France, and it must be significantly behind every other country in Europe, because the reports from the English mint don’t indicate an increase in money, while the records from Lisbon and Cadiz show a European increase of between three and four hundred million pounds.
16 (return)
[ That part of America
which is generally called New-England, including New-Hampshire,
Massachusetts, Rhode-Island, and Connecticut, is peopled chiefly by
English descendants. In the state of New-York about half are Dutch, the
rest English, Scotch, and Irish. In New-jersey, a mixture of English and
Dutch, with some Scotch and Irish. In Pennsylvania about one third are
English, another Germans, and the remainder Scotch and Irish, with some
Swedes. The States to the southward have a greater proportion of English
than the middle States, but in all of them there is a mixture; and besides
those enumerated, there are a considerable number of French, and some few
of all the European nations, lying on the coast. The most numerous
religious denomination are the Presbyterians; but no one sect is
established above another, and all men are equally citizens.]
16 (return)
[The area of America commonly known as New England, which includes New Hampshire, Massachusetts, Rhode Island, and Connecticut, is mainly populated by people of English descent. In New York, about half the population is Dutch, with the rest being English, Scottish, and Irish. In New Jersey, there is a mix of English and Dutch, along with some Scottish and Irish. In Pennsylvania, about a third are English, another third are Germans, and the rest are Scottish and Irish, with some Swedes. The states to the south have a higher proportion of English compared to the middle states, but all of them have a mix; in addition to those mentioned, there are a significant number of French and a few people from all the European nations along the coast. The most common religious group is the Presbyterians; however, no single sect is prioritized over the others, and all individuals are equally considered citizens.]
17 (return)
[ For a character of
aristocracy, the reader is referred to Rights of Man, Part I., starting at
line number 1457.]
17 (return)
[ If you want to learn about a character of nobility, check out Rights of Man, Part I., starting at line number 1457.]
18 (return)
[ The whole amount of the
assessed taxes of France, for the present year, is three hundred millions
of francs, which is twelve millions and a half sterling; and the
incidental taxes are estimated at three millions, making in the whole
fifteen millions and a half; which among twenty-four millions of people,
is not quite thirteen shillings per head. France has lessened her taxes
since the revolution, nearly nine millions sterling annually. Before the
revolution, the city of Paris paid a duty of upwards of thirty per cent.
on all articles brought into the city. This tax was collected at the city
gates. It was taken off on the first of last May, and the gates taken
down.]
18 (return)
[ The total amount of assessed taxes in France for this year is three hundred million francs, equivalent to twelve and a half million sterling. The additional taxes are estimated at three million, bringing the total to fifteen and a half million. Divided among twenty-four million people, that’s just under thirteen shillings per person. Since the revolution, France has reduced its taxes by almost nine million sterling each year. Before the revolution, the city of Paris imposed a duty of over thirty percent on all goods entering the city. This tax was collected at the city gates and was removed on May 1st last year, with the gates taken down.]
19 (return)
[ What was called the livre
rouge, or the red book, in France, was not exactly similar to the Court
Calendar in England; but it sufficiently showed how a great part of the
taxes was lavished.]
19 (return)
[What was known as the livre rouge, or the red book, in France, wasn’t exactly the same as the Court Calendar in England; however, it clearly illustrated how a significant portion of the taxes was wasted.]
20 (return)
[ In England the
improvements in agriculture, useful arts, manufactures, and commerce, have
been made in opposition to the genius of its government, which is that of
following precedents. It is from the enterprise and industry of the
individuals, and their numerous associations, in which, tritely speaking,
government is neither pillow nor bolster, that these improvements have
proceeded. No man thought about government, or who was in, or who was out,
when he was planning or executing those things; and all he had to hope,
with respect to government, was, that it would let him alone. Three or
four very silly ministerial newspapers are continually offending against
the spirit of national improvement, by ascribing it to a minister. They
may with as much truth ascribe this book to a minister.]
20 (return)
[ In England, the advancements in agriculture, useful arts, manufacturing, and commerce have emerged despite the government’s tendency to rely on past practices. These changes have come from the initiative and hard work of individuals and their many collaborations, in which, to put it simply, government serves neither as a support nor a distraction. When people were planning or carrying out these tasks, they didn't concern themselves with the government or who was in power; all they hoped for from the government was to be left alone. A few rather foolish government newspapers consistently undermine the spirit of national progress by crediting it to a minister. They could as easily claim this book was written by a minister.]
21 (return)
[ With respect to the two
houses, of which the English parliament is composed, they appear to be
effectually influenced into one, and, as a legislature, to have no temper
of its own. The minister, whoever he at any time may be, touches it as
with an opium wand, and it sleeps obedience.
21 (return)
[ Regarding the two houses that make up the English parliament, they seem to be effectively merged into one and, as a legislature, lack an independent spirit. The minister, no matter who it is at any given time, influences it like it's under a spell, causing it to obediently fall asleep.
But if we look at the distinct abilities of the two houses, the difference will appear so great, as to show the inconsistency of placing power where there can be no certainty of the judgment to use it. Wretched as the state of representation is in England, it is manhood compared with what is called the house of Lords; and so little is this nick-named house regarded, that the people scarcely enquire at any time what it is doing. It appears also to be most under influence, and the furthest removed from the general interest of the nation. In the debate on engaging in the Russian and Turkish war, the majority in the house of peers in favor of it was upwards of ninety, when in the other house, which was more than double its numbers, the majority was sixty-three.]
But if we examine the unique strengths of the two houses, the difference becomes so significant that it highlights the flaw in giving power to those who may not make sound judgments. As poor as the representation is in England, it’s a big step up compared to what’s known as the house of Lords; people hardly pay attention to what this so-called house is doing. It also seems to be heavily influenced and the least connected to the general interests of the nation. During the debate about getting involved in the Russian and Turkish war, the majority in the house of peers supporting it was over ninety, while in the other house, which has more than double the members, the majority was only sixty-three.
The proceedings on Mr. Fox's bill, respecting the rights of juries, merits also to be noticed. The persons called the peers were not the objects of that bill. They are already in possession of more privileges than that bill gave to others. They are their own jury, and if any one of that house were prosecuted for a libel, he would not suffer, even upon conviction, for the first offense. Such inequality in laws ought not to exist in any country. The French constitution says, that the law is the same to every individual, whether to Protect or to punish. All are equal in its sight.]
The discussion about Mr. Fox's bill regarding the rights of juries deserves attention. The individuals referred to as peers weren't the target of that bill. They already have more privileges than what the bill provides to others. They serve as their own jury, and if anyone from that group were prosecuted for a libel, they wouldn't face punishment, even if convicted, for the first offense. Such discrepancies in laws shouldn't exist in any country. The French constitution states that the law is the same for everyone, whether it serves to protect or to punish. All are equal in its eyes.
22 (return)
[ As to the state of
representation in England, it is too absurd to be reasoned upon. Almost
all the represented parts are decreasing in population, and the
unrepresented parts are increasing. A general convention of the nation is
necessary to take the whole form of government into consideration.]
22 (return)
[ Regarding the state of representation in England, it's too ridiculous to debate. Almost all the represented areas are losing population, while the unrepresented areas are growing. A national convention is needed to evaluate the entire structure of government.]
23 (return)
[ It is related that in the
canton of Berne, in Switzerland, it has been customary, from time
immemorial, to keep a bear at the public expense, and the people had been
taught to believe that if they had not a bear they should all be undone.
It happened some years ago that the bear, then in being, was taken sick,
and died too suddenly to have his place immediately supplied with another.
During this interregnum the people discovered that the corn grew, and the
vintage flourished, and the sun and moon continued to rise and set, and
everything went on the same as before, and taking courage from these
circumstances, they resolved not to keep any more bears; for, said they,
"a bear is a very voracious expensive animal, and we were obliged to pull
out his claws, lest he should hurt the citizens." The story of the bear of
Berne was related in some of the French newspapers, at the time of the
flight of Louis Xvi., and the application of it to monarchy could not be
mistaken in France; but it seems that the aristocracy of Berne applied it
to themselves, and have since prohibited the reading of French
newspapers.]
23 (return)
[ It is said that in the canton of Berne, Switzerland, it has been a long-standing tradition to keep a bear at public expense, and the community was taught to believe that without a bear, they would face disaster. A few years ago, the current bear fell ill and passed away too suddenly for another to take its place right away. During this time, the people noticed that the crops grew, the wine harvest thrived, the sun and moon continued their cycles, and everything remained the same as before. Gaining confidence from these observations, they decided not to keep any more bears; for they said, "a bear is a very greedy and costly animal, and we had to pull out his claws to prevent him from hurting the citizens." The story of the bear of Berne was mentioned in some French newspapers during the flight of Louis XVI, and its implications for monarchy were clear in France; however, it seems the aristocracy of Berne took it personally and subsequently banned the reading of French newspapers.]
24 (return)
[ It is scarcely possible
to touch on any subject, that will not suggest an allusion to some
corruption in governments. The simile of "fortifications," unfortunately
involves with it a circumstance, which is directly in point with the
matter above alluded to.]
24 (return)
[ It's hard to bring up any topic without hinting at some kind of corruption in governments. The comparison to "fortifications," sadly, includes an element that directly relates to the issue mentioned above.]
Among the numerous instances of abuse which have been acted or protected by governments, ancient or modern, there is not a greater than that of quartering a man and his heirs upon the public, to be maintained at its expense.
Among the many cases of abuse that have been committed or overlooked by governments, both ancient and modern, there’s nothing worse than forcing a man and his family to live off the public, to be supported at taxpayers’ expense.
Humanity dictates a provision for the poor; but by what right, moral or political, does any government assume to say, that the person called the Duke of Richmond, shall be maintained by the public? Yet, if common report is true, not a beggar in London can purchase his wretched pittance of coal, without paying towards the civil list of the Duke of Richmond. Were the whole produce of this imposition but a shilling a year, the iniquitous principle would be still the same; but when it amounts, as it is said to do, to no less than twenty thousand pounds per annum, the enormity is too serious to be permitted to remain. This is one of the effects of monarchy and aristocracy.
Humanity makes a provision for the poor; but what right, whether moral or political, does any government have to decide that a person known as the Duke of Richmond should be supported by the public? Yet, if the rumors are accurate, not a single beggar in London can buy their meager amount of coal without contributing to the Duke of Richmond's civil list. Even if the total from this tax was just a shilling a year, the unjust principle would still stand; but when it reportedly amounts to no less than twenty thousand pounds a year, the issue is too significant to ignore. This is one of the consequences of monarchy and aristocracy.
In stating this case I am led by no personal dislike. Though I think it mean in any man to live upon the public, the vice originates in the government; and so general is it become, that whether the parties are in the ministry or in the opposition, it makes no difference: they are sure of the guarantee of each other.]
In presenting this case, I have no personal grudge. While I find it petty for anyone to take advantage of the public, the real issue starts with the government; and it's so widespread now that it doesn't matter if the individuals are in the ruling party or in opposition—they can always count on each other's support.
25 (return)
[ In America the increase
of commerce is greater in proportion than in England. It is, at this time,
at least one half more than at any period prior to the revolution. The
greatest number of vessels cleared out of the port of Philadelphia, before
the commencement of the war, was between eight and nine hundred. In the
year 1788, the number was upwards of twelve hundred. As the State of
Pennsylvania is estimated at an eighth part of the United States in
population, the whole number of vessels must now be nearly ten thousand.]
25 (return)
[ In America, the growth of commerce is greater in proportion than in England. Right now, it’s at least fifty percent higher than at any time before the revolution. The highest number of ships that departed from the port of Philadelphia before the war was between eight and nine hundred. In 1788, that number exceeded twelve hundred. Since Pennsylvania is estimated to account for one-eighth of the population of the United States, the total number of vessels must now be nearly ten thousand.]
26 (return)
[ When I saw Mr. Pitt's
mode of estimating the balance of trade, in one of his parliamentary
speeches, he appeared to me to know nothing of the nature and interest of
commerce; and no man has more wantonly tortured it than himself. During a
period of peace it has been havocked with the calamities of war. Three
times has it been thrown into stagnation, and the vessels unmanned by
impressing, within less than four years of peace.]
26 (return)
[ When I heard Mr. Pitt talk about how he views the balance of trade in one of his parliamentary speeches, it seemed to me that he didn’t really understand the nature and importance of commerce; no one has misused it more than he has. During peacetime, it has suffered from the consequences of war. Three times it has faced stagnation, and ships have been left without crews due to impressment, all within less than four years of peace.]
27 (return)
[ Rev. William Knowle,
master of the grammar school of Thetford, in Norfolk.]
27 (return)
[ Rev. William Knowle, head of the grammar school in Thetford, Norfolk.]
28 (return)
[ Politics and
self-interest have been so uniformly connected that the world, from being
so often deceived, has a right to be suspicious of public characters, but
with regard to myself I am perfectly easy on this head. I did not, at my
first setting out in public life, nearly seventeen years ago, turn my
thoughts to subjects of government from motives of interest, and my
conduct from that moment to this proves the fact. I saw an opportunity in
which I thought I could do some good, and I followed exactly what my heart
dictated. I neither read books, nor studied other people's opinion. I
thought for myself. The case was this:—
28 (return)
[ Politics and self-interest have been so closely linked that the world, having been deceived so often, has a reason to be wary of public figures. However, when it comes to me, I feel completely at ease about this. When I first entered public life nearly seventeen years ago, I didn’t approach government topics out of self-interest, and my actions since then demonstrate this. I saw an opportunity where I believed I could make a difference, and I followed what my heart told me to do. I didn’t read books or rely on other people’s opinions. I thought for myself. Here’s how it was:—
During the suspension of the old governments in America, both prior to and at the breaking out of hostilities, I was struck with the order and decorum with which everything was conducted, and impressed with the idea that a little more than what society naturally performed was all the government that was necessary, and that monarchy and aristocracy were frauds and impositions upon mankind. On these principles I published the pamphlet Common Sense. The success it met with was beyond anything since the invention of printing. I gave the copyright to every state in the Union, and the demand ran to not less than one hundred thousand copies. I continued the subject in the same manner, under the title of The Crisis, till the complete establishment of the Revolution.
During the time when the old governments in America were suspended, both before and at the start of hostilities, I was impressed by the order and decorum with which everything was managed. I realized that a little more than what society naturally does was all the government that was needed, and that monarchy and aristocracy were scams and burdens on humanity. Based on these beliefs, I published the pamphlet *Common Sense*. Its success was more significant than anything since the printing press was invented. I gave the copyright to every state in the Union, and the demand reached at least one hundred thousand copies. I continued to explore the topic in the same way under the title *The Crisis* until the Revolution was fully established.
After the declaration of independence Congress unanimously, and unknown to me, appointed me Secretary in the Foreign Department. This was agreeable to me, because it gave me the opportunity of seeing into the abilities of foreign courts, and their manner of doing business. But a misunderstanding arising between Congress and me, respecting one of their commissioners then in Europe, Mr. Silas Deane, I resigned the office, and declined at the same time the pecuniary offers made by the Ministers of France and Spain, M. Gerald and Don Juan Mirralles.] I had by this time so completely gained the ear and confidence of America, and my own independence was become so visible, as to give me a range in political writing beyond, perhaps, what any man ever possessed in any country, and, what is more extraordinary, I held it undiminished to the end of the war, and enjoy it in the same manner to the present moment. As my object was not myself, I set out with the determination, and happily with the disposition, of not being moved by praise or censure, friendship or calumny, nor of being drawn from my purpose by any personal altercation, and the man who cannot do this is not fit for a public character.
After the declaration of independence, Congress unanimously and without my knowledge appointed me as Secretary in the Foreign Department. I was pleased with this, as it allowed me to understand the capabilities of foreign courts and how they conducted their business. However, a misunderstanding arose between Congress and me regarding one of their commissioners in Europe, Mr. Silas Deane, leading me to resign from the position. At the same time, I declined financial offers from the Ministers of France and Spain, M. Gerald and Don Juan Mirralles. By this time, I had fully gained the attention and trust of America, and my own independence had become so clear that I had a level of freedom in political writing that perhaps no one else has experienced in any country, and even more surprisingly, I maintained that freedom undiminished until the end of the war and continue to enjoy it to this day. Since my goal was never about myself, I started with the resolve—and fortunately with the mindset—not to be swayed by praise or criticism, friendship or slander, nor to be distracted from my purpose by any personal disputes, and anyone who cannot do this is not suited for public life.
When the war ended I went from Philadelphia to Borden-Town, on the east bank of the Delaware, where I have a small place. Congress was at this time at Prince-Town, fifteen miles distant, and General Washington had taken his headquarters at Rocky Hill, within the neighbourhood of Congress, for the purpose of resigning up his commission (the object for which he accepted it being accomplished), and of retiring to private life. While he was on this business he wrote me the letter which I here subjoin:
When the war ended, I traveled from Philadelphia to Bordentown, on the east bank of the Delaware, where I have a small property. Congress was meeting at Princeton, fifteen miles away, and General Washington had set up his headquarters at Rocky Hill, near Congress, to resign his commission (since the goal for which he accepted it had been achieved) and retire to private life. While he was handling this, he wrote me the following letter:
"Rocky-Hill, Sept. 10, 1783.
Rocky Hill, Sept. 10, 1783.
"I have learned since I have been at this place that you are at Borden-Town. Whether for the sake of retirement or economy I know not. Be it for either, for both, or whatever it may, if you will come to this place, and partake with me, I shall be exceedingly happy to see you at it.
"I’ve learned that you are at Borden-Town. I'm not sure if it’s for relaxation or to save money. Whether it’s for one reason, both, or something else entirely, if you come here and join me, I’ll be really happy to see you."
"Your presence may remind Congress of your past services to this country, and if it is in my power to impress them, command my best exertions with freedom, as they will be rendered cheerfully by one who entertains a lively sense of the importance of your works, and who, with much pleasure, subscribes himself, Your sincere friend,
"Your presence might remind Congress of the contributions you've made to this country, and if I can influence them, count on my utmost efforts. I'll do so gladly, as I fully appreciate the significance of your work, and I take great pleasure in signing off as your sincere friend."
G. Washington."
G. Washington.
During the war, in the latter end of the year 1780, I formed to myself a design of coming over to England, and communicated it to General Greene, who was then in Philadelphia on his route to the southward, General Washington being then at too great a distance to communicate with immediately. I was strongly impressed with the idea that if I could get over to England without being known, and only remain in safety till I could get out a publication, that I could open the eyes of the country with respect to the madness and stupidity of its Government. I saw that the parties in Parliament had pitted themselves as far as they could go, and could make no new impressions on each other. General Greene entered fully into my views, but the affair of Arnold and Andre happening just after, he changed his mind, under strong apprehensions for my safety, wrote very pressingly to me from Annapolis, in Maryland, to give up the design, which, with some reluctance, I did. Soon after this I accompanied Colonel Lawrens, son of Mr. Lawrens, who was then in the Tower, to France on business from Congress. We landed at L'orient, and while I remained there, he being gone forward, a circumstance occurred that renewed my former design. An English packet from Falmouth to New York, with the Government dispatches on board, was brought into L'orient. That a packet should be taken is no extraordinary thing, but that the dispatches should be taken with it will scarcely be credited, as they are always slung at the cabin window in a bag loaded with cannon-ball, and ready to be sunk at a moment. The fact, however, is as I have stated it, for the dispatches came into my hands, and I read them. The capture, as I was informed, succeeded by the following stratagem:—The captain of the "Madame" privateer, who spoke English, on coming up with the packet, passed himself for the captain of an English frigate, and invited the captain of the packet on board, which, when done, he sent some of his own hands back, and he secured the mail. But be the circumstance of the capture what it may, I speak with certainty as to the Government dispatches. They were sent up to Paris to Count Vergennes, and when Colonel Lawrens and myself returned to America we took the originals to Congress.
During the war, at the end of 1780, I came up with a plan to go to England and shared it with General Greene, who was in Philadelphia on his way south, while General Washington was too far away to contact immediately. I was really convinced that if I could make it to England unnoticed and stay safe long enough to publish something, I could help the country see the foolishness and incompetence of its Government. I noticed that the factions in Parliament had done all they could against each other, and no new ideas were getting through. General Greene completely supported my plans, but after the incident with Arnold and Andre, he changed his mind out of concern for my safety and urged me in a letter from Annapolis, Maryland, to abandon the idea, which I did, albeit reluctantly. Soon after, I accompanied Colonel Lawrens, the son of Mr. Lawrens, who was then imprisoned in the Tower, to France on a mission from Congress. We arrived at L'orient, and while I waited there, he went ahead, and something happened that reignited my previous plan. An English packet ship traveling from Falmouth to New York, carrying Government dispatches, was captured and brought into L'orient. It’s not unusual for a packet to be captured, but that the dispatches came along with it is hard to believe, as they are typically secured in a bag at the cabin window, weighted down with cannonballs, and ready to be sunk at a moment’s notice. However, I state this as fact, because the dispatches ended up in my hands, and I read them. The capture, as I learned, happened through the following trick: the captain of the "Madame" privateer, who spoke English, approached the packet pretending to be the captain of an English frigate and invited the packet captain on board. Once he had done that, he sent some of his crew back to their ship and secured the mail. Regardless of how the capture happened, I speak with certainty about the Government dispatches. They were sent to Paris for Count Vergennes, and when Colonel Lawrens and I returned to America, we took the originals to Congress.
By these dispatches I saw into the stupidity of the English Cabinet far more than I otherwise could have done, and I renewed my former design. But Colonel Lawrens was so unwilling to return alone, more especially as, among other matters, we had a charge of upwards of two hundred thousand pounds sterling in money, that I gave in to his wishes, and finally gave up my plan. But I am now certain that if I could have executed it that it would not have been altogether unsuccessful.]
By these messages, I gained insight into the foolishness of the English Cabinet much more than I could have otherwise, and I revived my earlier plan. However, Colonel Lawrens was so reluctant to return alone, especially since we had a responsibility for more than two hundred thousand pounds sterling in cash, that I went along with his wishes and ultimately abandoned my plan. But now I’m convinced that if I had been able to carry it out, it wouldn’t have been entirely unsuccessful.
29 (return)
[ It is difficult to
account for the origin of charter and corporation towns, unless we suppose
them to have arisen out of, or been connected with, some species of
garrison service. The times in which they began justify this idea. The
generality of those towns have been garrisons, and the corporations were
charged with the care of the gates of the towns, when no military garrison
was present. Their refusing or granting admission to strangers, which has
produced the custom of giving, selling, and buying freedom, has more of
the nature of garrison authority than civil government. Soldiers are free
of all corporations throughout the nation, by the same propriety that
every soldier is free of every garrison, and no other persons are. He can
follow any employment, with the permission of his officers, in any
corporation towns throughout the nation.]
29 (return)
[ It's hard to pinpoint how charter and corporation towns originated unless we think of them as linked to some type of garrison duty. The times in which they emerged support this idea. Most of these towns served as garrisons, and the corporations were responsible for managing the town gates when there was no military garrison present. Their ability to allow or deny entry to outsiders led to the practice of granting, selling, and buying freedom, which seems more like garrison authority than a civil government role. Soldiers are exempt from all corporations across the nation in the same way that every soldier is exempt from every garrison, and no one else is. With their officers' approval, they can pursue any job in any corporation town throughout the country.]
30 (return)
[ See Sir John Sinclair's
History of the Revenue. The land-tax in 1646 was L2,473,499.]
30 (return)
[ See Sir John Sinclair's History of the Revenue. The land tax in 1646 was £2,473,499.]
31 (return)
[ Several of the court
newspapers have of late made frequent mention of Wat Tyler. That his
memory should be traduced by court sycophants and an those who live on the
spoil of a public is not to be wondered at. He was, however, the means of
checking the rage and injustice of taxation in his time, and the nation
owed much to his valour. The history is concisely this:—In the time
of Richard Ii. a poll tax was levied of one shilling per head upon every
person in the nation of whatever estate or condition, on poor as well as
rich, above the age of fifteen years. If any favour was shown in the law
it was to the rich rather than to the poor, as no person could be charged
more than twenty shillings for himself, family and servants, though ever
so numerous; while all other families, under the number of twenty were
charged per head. Poll taxes had always been odious, but this being also
oppressive and unjust, it excited as it naturally must, universal
detestation among the poor and middle classes. The person known by the
name of Wat Tyler, whose proper name was Walter, and a tiler by trade,
lived at Deptford. The gatherer of the poll tax, on coming to his house,
demanded tax for one of his daughters, whom Tyler declared was under the
age of fifteen. The tax-gatherer insisted on satisfying himself, and began
an indecent examination of the girl, which, enraging the father, he struck
him with a hammer that brought him to the ground, and was the cause of his
death. This circumstance served to bring the discontent to an issue. The
inhabitants of the neighbourhood espoused the cause of Tyler, who in a few
days was joined, according to some histories, by upwards of fifty thousand
men, and chosen their chief. With this force he marched to London, to
demand an abolition of the tax and a redress of other grievances. The
Court, finding itself in a forlorn condition, and, unable to make
resistance, agreed, with Richard at its head, to hold a conference with
Tyler in Smithfield, making many fair professions, courtier-like, of its
dispositions to redress the oppressions. While Richard and Tyler were in
conversation on these matters, each being on horseback, Walworth, then
Mayor of London, and one of the creatures of the Court, watched an
opportunity, and like a cowardly assassin, stabbed Tyler with a dagger,
and two or three others falling upon him, he was instantly sacrificed.
Tyler appears to have been an intrepid disinterested man with respect to
himself. All his proposals made to Richard were on a more just and public
ground than those which had been made to John by the Barons, and
notwithstanding the sycophancy of historians and men like Mr. Burke, who
seek to gloss over a base action of the Court by traducing Tyler, his fame
will outlive their falsehood. If the Barons merited a monument to be
erected at Runnymede, Tyler merited one in Smithfield.]
31 (return)
[ Recently, several court newspapers have frequently mentioned Wat Tyler. It’s not surprising that his memory is slandered by court sycophants and those who profit from the public. However, he played a crucial role in curbing the rage and injustice of taxation in his time, and the nation owes a lot to his bravery. Here’s a brief history: During the reign of Richard II, a poll tax of one shilling per person was imposed on everyone in the nation, regardless of their status, affecting both the poor and the rich, for anyone over the age of fifteen. If there was any favoritism in the law, it was toward the rich, as no one could be taxed more than twenty shillings for themselves, their family, and their servants, no matter how many there were; while other families with fewer than twenty members were taxed per person. Poll taxes had always been unpopular, but this one was particularly oppressive and unjust, which understandably led to widespread resentment among the poor and middle classes. The person known as Wat Tyler, whose real name was Walter and who worked as a tiler, lived in Deptford. When the tax collector came to his house, he demanded tax for one of Tyler's daughters, who Tyler insisted was under fifteen. The tax collector insisted on verifying this and began an inappropriate examination of the girl, which enraged the father. Tyler struck him with a hammer, killing him. This incident escalated the discontent. The local residents rallied behind Tyler, and in just a few days, according to some accounts, he was joined by over fifty thousand men and chosen as their leader. With this force, he marched to London to demand the abolition of the tax and a resolution of other grievances. The Court, finding itself in a desperate situation and unable to resist, agreed, with Richard leading the effort, to hold talks with Tyler in Smithfield, making many noble promises, typical of courtiers, to address the injustices. While Richard and Tyler were discussing these matters, both mounted on horseback, Walworth, who was then the Mayor of London and a loyal servant of the Court, seized the opportunity and, like a cowardly assassin, stabbed Tyler with a dagger. Amid a few others who attacked him, he was quickly killed. Tyler seems to have been a brave and selfless man. All his proposals to Richard were based on more just and public grounds than those made to John by the Barons, and despite the flattery of historians and people like Mr. Burke, who try to obscure the Court's disgraceful actions by slandering Tyler, his reputation will endure beyond their lies. If the Barons deserved a monument at Runnymede, Tyler deserves one in Smithfield.]
32 (return)
[ I happened to be in
England at the celebration of the centenary of the Revolution of 1688. The
characters of William and Mary have always appeared to be detestable; the
one seeking to destroy his uncle, and the other her father, to get
possession of power themselves; yet, as the nation was disposed to think
something of that event, I felt hurt at seeing it ascribe the whole
reputation of it to a man who had undertaken it as a job and who, besides
what he otherwise got, charged six hundred thousand pounds for the expense
of the fleet that brought him from Holland. George the First acted the
same close-fisted part as William had done, and bought the Duchy of Bremen
with the money he got from England, two hundred and fifty thousand pounds
over and above his pay as king, and having thus purchased it at the
expense of England, added it to his Hanoverian dominions for his own
private profit. In fact, every nation that does not govern itself is
governed as a job. England has been the prey of jobs ever since the
Revolution.]
32 (return)
[ I happened to be in England during the celebration of the 100th anniversary of the Revolution of 1688. The figures of William and Mary have always seemed pretty awful; he was trying to overthrow his uncle, and she was trying to do the same to her father, all to seize power for themselves. However, since the nation wanted to acknowledge this event, I was upset to see it attribute the entire reputation of the occasion to a man who treated it like a gig and who, on top of everything else, charged six hundred thousand pounds for the cost of the fleet that brought him over from Holland. George the First acted just as stingily as William had and bought the Duchy of Bremen with the money he extracted from England—two hundred and fifty thousand pounds in addition to his salary as king—thereby purchasing it at England's expense and adding it to his Hanoverian territories for his personal gain. In fact, any nation that doesn’t govern itself is treated like a gig. England has been a target of such schemes ever since the Revolution.]
33 (return)
[ Charles, like his
predecessors and successors, finding that war was the harvest of
governments, engaged in a war with the Dutch, the expense of which
increased the annual expenditure to L1,800,000 as stated under the date of
1666; but the peace establishment was but L1,200,000.]
33 (return)
[ Charles, just like those before and after him, realized that war was a way for governments to gain resources, so he entered into a conflict with the Dutch. The cost of this war raised the yearly expenses to £1,800,000, as noted in 1666; however, the budget for peace was only £1,200,000.]
34 (return)
[ Poor-rates began about
the time of Henry VIII., when the taxes began to increase, and they have
increased as the taxes increased ever since.]
34 (return)
[ Poor rates started around the time of Henry VIII, when taxes began to rise, and they have continued to rise along with taxes ever since.]
35 (return)
[ Reckoning the taxes by
families, five to a family, each family pays on an average L12 7s. 6d. per
annum. To this sum are to be added the poor-rates. Though all pay taxes in
the articles they consume, all do not pay poor-rates. About two millions
are exempted: some as not being house-keepers, others as not being able,
and the poor themselves who receive the relief. The average, therefore, of
poor-rates on the remaining number, is forty shillings for every family of
five persons, which make the whole average amount of taxes and rates L14
17s. 6d. For six persons L17 17s. For seven persons L2O 16s. 6d. The
average of taxes in America, under the new or representative system of
government, including the interest of the debt contracted in the war, and
taking the population at four millions of souls, which it now amounts to,
and it is daily increasing, is five shillings per head, men, women, and
children. The difference, therefore, between the two governments is as
under:
35 (return)
[ Calculating taxes by families, with five people in a family, each family pays an average of £12 7s. 6d. per year. To this amount, we need to add the poor rates. While everyone pays taxes on the products they consume, not everyone pays poor rates. About two million people are exempt: some because they aren't housekeepers, others due to inability, and the poor themselves who receive assistance. Therefore, the average poor rate for the remaining families is forty shillings for each family of five, making the total average of taxes and rates £14 17s. 6d. For six people, it's £17 17s. For seven people, it's £20 16s. 6d. The average tax in America, under the new representative government system, including interest from the debt incurred during the war, and considering the population at four million and growing, is five shillings per person, including men, women, and children. The difference between the two governments is as follows:
England America L s. d. L s. d. For a family of five persons 14 17 6 1 5 0 For a family of six persons 17 17 0 1 10 0 For a family of seven persons 20 16 6 1 15 0
England America L s. d. L s. d. For a family of five persons 14 17 6 1 5 0 For a family of six persons 17 17 0 1 10 0 For a family of seven persons 20 16 6 1 15 0
36 (return)
[ Public schools do not
answer the general purpose of the poor. They are chiefly in corporation
towns from which the country towns and villages are excluded, or, if
admitted, the distance occasions a great loss of time. Education, to be
useful to the poor, should be on the spot, and the best method, I believe,
to accomplish this is to enable the parents to pay the expenses
themselves. There are always persons of both sexes to be found in every
village, especially when growing into years, capable of such an
undertaking. Twenty children at ten shillings each (and that not more than
six months each year) would be as much as some livings amount to in the
remotest parts of England, and there are often distressed clergymen's
widows to whom such an income would be acceptable. Whatever is given on
this account to children answers two purposes. To them it is education—to
those who educate them it is a livelihood.]
36 (return)
[ Public schools don’t really meet the needs of the poor. They are mostly located in corporate towns, leaving out rural towns and villages, or if they are included, the distance leads to a lot of wasted time. For education to truly help the poor, it needs to be available right where they live, and I believe the best way to achieve this is to allow parents to cover the expenses themselves. In every village, especially as they grow older, there are always individuals of all genders who are capable of taking on such a task. Twenty children at ten shillings each (which would only be for about six months each year) would equal what some clergy earn in the most remote areas of England, and there are often widows of struggling clergymen who would welcome such an income. Anything given for this purpose serves two functions. For the children, it’s an education; for those who teach them, it’s a means of support.]
37 (return)
[ The tax on beer brewed
for sale, from which the aristocracy are exempt, is almost one million
more than the present commutation tax, being by the returns of 1788,
L1,666,152—and, consequently, they ought to take on themselves the
amount of the commutation tax, as they are already exempted from one which
is almost a million greater.]
37 (return)
[ The tax on beer brewed for sale, which the aristocracy is exempt from, is nearly one million more than the current commutation tax. According to the returns of 1788, it amounts to L1,666,152, so they should cover the commutation tax since they are already exempt from a tax that's almost a million higher.]
38 (return)
[ See the Reports on the
Corn Trade.]
38 (return)
[ Check out the Reports on the Corn Trade.]
39 (return)
[ When enquiries are made
into the condition of the poor, various degrees of distress will most
probably be found, to render a different arrangement preferable to that
which is already proposed. Widows with families will be in greater want
than where there are husbands living. There is also a difference in the
expense of living in different counties: and more so in fuel.
39 (return)
[ When inquiries are made about the state of the poor, it's likely that various levels of hardship will be uncovered, suggesting that a different plan may be better than the one currently proposed. Widows with children will generally have greater needs than families with husbands present. Additionally, the cost of living varies across different counties, and this is especially true for fuel.
Suppose then fifty thousand extraordinary cases, at the rate of ten pounds per family per annum L500,000 100,000 families, at L8 per family per annum 800,000 100,000 families, at L7 per family per annum 700,000 104,000 families, at L5 per family per annum 520,000 And instead of ten shillings per head for the education of other children, to allow fifty shillings per family for that purpose to fifty thousand families 250,000 ————— L2,770,000 140,000 aged persons as before 1,120,000 ————— L3,890,000
Suppose then fifty thousand exceptional cases, at the rate of ten pounds per family per year £500,000 100,000 families, at £8 per family per year £800,000 100,000 families, at £7 per family per year £700,000 104,000 families, at £5 per family per year £520,000 And instead of ten shillings per person for the education of other children, to allocate fifty shillings per family for that purpose to fifty thousand families £250,000 ————— £2,770,000 140,000 elderly persons as before £1,120,000 ————— £3,890,000
This arrangement amounts to the same sum as stated in this work, Part II, line number 1068, including the L250,000 for education; but it provides (including the aged people) for four hundred and four thousand families, which is almost one third of an the families in England.]
This setup totals the same amount as mentioned in this work, Part II, line number 1068, including the £250,000 for education; but it supports (including the elderly) four hundred and four thousand families, which is nearly one third of all the families in England.
40 (return)
[ I know it is the opinion
of many of the most enlightened characters in France (there always will be
those who see further into events than others), not only among the general
mass of citizens, but of many of the principal members of the former
National Assembly, that the monarchical plan will not continue many years
in that country. They have found out, that as wisdom cannot be made
hereditary, power ought not; and that, for a man to merit a million
sterling a year from a nation, he ought to have a mind capable of
comprehending from an atom to a universe, which, if he had, he would be
above receiving the pay. But they wished not to appear to lead the nation
faster than its own reason and interest dictated. In all the conversations
where I have been present upon this subject, the idea always was, that
when such a time, from the general opinion of the nation, shall arrive,
that the honourable and liberal method would be, to make a handsome
present in fee simple to the person, whoever he may be, that shall then be
in the monarchical office, and for him to retire to the enjoyment of
private life, possessing his share of general rights and privileges, and
to be no more accountable to the public for his time and his conduct than
any other citizen.]
40 (return)
[ I know that many of the most insightful people in France believe (there will always be those who see further into events than others), not only among the general public, but also among many key members of the former National Assembly, that the monarchy won't last many years in that country. They have realized that just as wisdom can't be inherited, neither should power be; and that for someone to deserve a million pounds a year from a nation, they should have a mind that can grasp everything from the smallest details to the vast universe, which, if they did, they wouldn't accept the salary. However, they didn't want to appear to push the nation faster than its own reasoning and interests would allow. In all the discussions I've attended on this subject, the consensus has been that when the time comes, according to the general opinion of the nation, a respectful and generous approach would be to give a substantial gift in full ownership to whoever is in the monarchical position at that time, allowing them to retire to enjoy private life, holding their share of rights and privileges, and being no more accountable to the public for their actions and conduct than any other citizen.]
41 (return)
[ The gentleman who signed
the address and declaration as chairman of the meeting, Mr. Horne Tooke,
being generally supposed to be the person who drew it up, and having
spoken much in commendation of it, has been jocularly accused of praising
his own work. To free him from this embarrassment, and to save him the
repeated trouble of mentioning the author, as he has not failed to do, I
make no hesitation in saying, that as the opportunity of benefiting by the
French Revolution easily occurred to me, I drew up the publication in
question, and showed it to him and some other gentlemen, who, fully
approving it, held a meeting for the purpose of making it public, and
subscribed to the amount of fifty guineas to defray the expense of
advertising. I believe there are at this time, in England, a greater
number of men acting on disinterested principles, and determined to look
into the nature and practices of government themselves, and not blindly
trust, as has hitherto been the case, either to government generally, or
to parliaments, or to parliamentary opposition, than at any former period.
Had this been done a century ago, corruption and taxation had not arrived
to the height they are now at.]
41 (return)
[ The gentleman who signed the address and declaration as chairman of the meeting, Mr. Horne Tooke, is generally thought to be the one who wrote it and has talked a lot in praise of it, so he's been playfully accused of complimenting his own work. To spare him from this awkward situation and to save him from repeatedly having to mention the author, as he has done, I want to say clearly that since I saw an opportunity to benefit from the French Revolution, I wrote the publication in question and shared it with him and some other gentlemen, who; fully supporting it, held a meeting to make it public and contributed fifty guineas to cover the cost of advertising. I believe that right now, in England, there are more people acting on selfless principles and determined to examine the nature and practices of government themselves, instead of blindly relying, as has often been the case in the past, on government in general, or on parliaments, or on parliamentary opposition, than ever before. If this had happened a century ago, corruption and taxation wouldn't have reached the level they are at now.]
-END OF PART II.-
-END OF PART II.-
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!